Ioannis Therios Olives
Ioannis Therios Olives
Ioannis Therios Olives
SERIES
Series Editors: Jeff Atherton, Professor of Tropical
Horticulture, University of the West Indies, Barbados, and
Alun Rees (retired) former Head of Crop Science, Glasshouse
Crops Research Institute, Horticultural Consultant and Editor
of the Journal of Horticultural Science and Biotechnology.
This series examines economically important horticultural crops selected from
the major production systems in temperate, subtropical and tropical climatic
areas. Systems represented range from open eld and plantation sites to
protected plastic and glasshouses, growing rooms and laboratories. Emphasis is
placed on the scientic principles underlying crop production practices rather
than on providing empirical recipes for uncritical acceptance. Scientic
understanding provides the key to both reasoned choice of practice and the
solution of future problems.
Students and staff at universities and colleges throughout the world involved
in courses in horticulture, as well as in agriculture, plant science, food science
and applied biology at degree, diploma or certicate level, will welcome this
series as a succinct and readable source of information. The books will also be
invaluable to progressive growers, advisers and end-product users requiring an
authoritative, but brief, scientic introduction to particular crops or systems. Keen
gardeners wishing to understand the scientic basis of recommended practices
will also nd the series very useful.
The authors are all internationally renowned experts with extensive
experience of their subjects. Each volume follows a common format covering all
aspects of production, from background physiology and breeding, to propagation
and planting, through husbandry and crop protection, to harvesting, handling and
storage. Selective references are included to direct the reader to further
information on specic topics.
Titles Available:
1. Ornamental Bulbs, Corms and Tubers A.R. Rees
2. Citrus F.S. Davies and L.G. Albrigo
3. Onions and Other Vegetable Alliums J.L. Brewster
4. Ornamental Bedding Plants A.M. Armitage
5. Bananas and Plantains J.C. Robinson
6. Cucurbits R.W. Robinson and D.S. Decker-Walters
7. Tropical Fruits H.Y. Nakasone and R.E. Paull
8. Coffee, Cocoa and Tea K.C. Willson
9. Lettuce, Endive and Chicory E.J. Ryder
10. Carrots and Related Vegetable Umbelliferae V.E. Rubatzky, C.F. Quiros
and P.W. Simon
11. Strawberries J.F. Hancock
12. Peppers: Vegetable and Spice Capsicums P.W. Bosland and E.J. Votava
13. Tomatoes E. Heuvelink
14. Vegetable Brassicas and Related Crucifers G. Dixon
15. Onions and Other Vegetable Alliums, 2nd Edition J.L. Brewster
16. Grapes G.L. Creasy and L.L. Creasy
17. Tropical Root and Tuber Crops: Cassava, Sweet Potato, Yams and
Aroids V. Lebot
18. Olives I. Therios
OLIVES
Ioannis Therios
School of Agriculture
Aristotle University
Thessaloniki
Greece
CONTENTS
PREFACE
ix
xi
CHEMICAL SYMBOLS
xv
1
HISTORY OF OLIVE GROWING
2
THE OLIVE: ORIGIN AND CLASSIFICATION
3
MORPHOLOGY AND TAXONOMY OF THE OLIVE
13
4
STRUCTURE AND COMPOSITION OF THE OLIVE FRUIT
25
5
HECTAREAGE, NUMBER OF TREES AND PRODUCTION OF
OLIVE OIL AND TABLE OLIVES
33
6
ROOTSTOCKS
43
7
MAJOR TRENDS IN OLIVE FARMING SYSTEMS
49
8
CLIMATIC AND SOIL CONDITIONS
51
v
vi
Contents
9
FLOWER BUD INDUCTION AND DIFFERENTIATION
81
10
FLOWERING, POLLINATION, FERTILIZATION AND FRUITING
93
11
ALTERNATE BEARING
105
12
FRUIT THINNING
109
13
SYSTEMS OF PLANTING AND CANOPY TRAINING
113
14
PROPAGATION OF OLIVE TREES
125
15
IRRIGATION OF THE OLIVE
151
16
WATER USE EFFICIENCY BY THE OLIVE
167
17
STRESS-INDUCED ACCUMULATION OF PROLINE AND MANNITOL
175
18
MINERAL NUTRITION OF THE OLIVE
179
19
GROWTH AND SALT TOLERANCE OF THE OLIVE
211
20
PRUNING
221
21
OLIVE RIPENING
229
22
OLIVE FRUIT HARVESTING
245
Contents
vii
23
OLIVE VARIETIES
255
24
TABLE OLIVES
271
25
OLIVE OIL
279
26
OLIVE MILL PRODUCTS AND ENVIRONMENTAL IMPACT OF
OLIVE OIL PRODUCTION
295
27
OLEUROPEIN, OLIVE LEAF EXTRACT, OLIVE OIL AND THE
BENEFITS OF THE MEDITERRANEAN DIET TO HUMAN HEALTH
303
28
BIOLOGICAL AND INTEGRATED OLIVE CULTURE
319
29
CHEMICAL AND INTEGRATED WEED MANAGEMENT IN OLIVE
ORCHARDS
325
30
PESTS AND DISEASES
335
31
BIOTECHNOLOGICAL ASPECTS OF OLIVE CULTURE
353
REFERENCES
357
INDEX
399
PREFACE
2, 4, 5-T
2, 4-D
2iP
3-CPA
ABA
ACC
ACE
ADP
AFLP
AMP
AOS
ATP
BA
BAP
BMI
BN
BNOA, NOA
CAP
CBF1
CCC
CEC
CHA
CK
CLRV
CMS
COR
CTP
CuMV
DNA
DNOC
2, 4, 5-trichlorophenoxyacetic acid
2, 4-Dichlorophenoxyacetic acid
6-(, -dimethylallylamino)-purine
3-chlorophenoxy--propionamide
Abscisic acid
1-aminocyclopropane-1 carboxylate
Acetylcholinesterase
Adenosine diphosphate
Amplied fragment length polymorphism
Adenosine monophosphate
Active oxygen species
Adenosine triphosphate
6-benzylamino purine or benzyladenine
Benzylamino purine
Body mass index
Nutrient medium
-naphthoxyacetic acid
Common agricultural policy
Regulator of cold acclimation
(2-chloroethyl)trimethylammonium chloride or
Chlormequat
Cation exchange capacity
Chlorogenic acid
Cytokinin
Cherry leaf roll virus
Cytoplasmic male sterility
Cold Regulated protein
Cytidine triphosphate
Cucumber mosaic virus
Deoxyribonucleic acid
4, 6-dinitro-ortho-cresol
xi
xii
DNP
DTA
ECe
ECw
EDTA
ERD
ETc'
Ethephon
Ethrel
ETo
FASN
FDF
Fenoprop
FMN
FTIR spectroscopy
Fts
Fv
GA3
GA4
GAs
GC
GDH
GGA
gMS
GOGAT
GS
gs
HER2
HPLC
Hsp
IAA
IBA
iNOs
ISSR
Kc
KGA3
KIN
KIN
KMnO4
Kp'
KS1
LAI
LAR
2, 4- Dinitrophenol
Differential thermal analysis
Electrical conductivity
Electrical conductivity of irrigation water
Ethylenediamine tetraacetic acid
Early responsive to dehydration
Actual water requirements
2-chloroethyl phosphonic acid
see Ethephon
Potential evapotranspiration
Fatty acid synthase (human gene)
Fruit detachment force
see 2, 4, 5-TP
Flavin mononucleotide
Fourier transform infrared spectroscopy
Filamentous temperature sensitive proteins
Variable uorescence
Gibberellic acid
Gibberellin
Gibberellins
Gas chromatography
Glutamic dehydrogenase
2-chloroethyl-tris-2-methoxy-ethoxy silane or Alsol
Genic male sterility
Glutamate-2-oxoglutarate amido transferase
Glutamic synthetase
Leaf conductance
Cancer genes
High pressure liquid chromatography
Heat stress proteins
Indole-3-acetic acid
Indole-3-butyric acid
Inductible nitric oxide synthase
Inter-simple sequence repeats
Crop coefcient
Potassium gibberellate
6-furfurylamino purine, syn N-furfuryladenine or
Kinetin
Cold induce
Potassium permanganate
Coefcient related to tree transpiration
Coefcient related to soil evaporation
Leaf area index
Leaf area ratio
LC
LDL
LEA
LFDI
LLC
L-Name
LOX
LPS
LSC
LT1
LVI
M
MI
MH
mOM
mRNA
MS medium
MSMA
MYB
N
NAA
NAAm
NADP
NADPH
NAR
NIF
NMR
NPA
NR
OD
OLE
Oleaster
OM
OMWW
OP
PAR
PCD
PDO
PEA 3
PEP
PGI
Pn
PPF
xiii
Liquid chromatography
Low density lipoprotein
Late embryogenesis abundant proteins (prevent protein
aggregation)
Low frequency decit irrigation
Liquidliquid chromatography
N(G)nitro-L-arginine methyl ester
Lipoxygenase
Lipopolysaccharide
Liquidsolid chromatography
Low temperature inducer
Low volume irrigation
Manganese
Maturity index
Maleic hydrazide
modied olive medium
messenger RNA
Murashige and Skoog medium
Veliuron
Gene of cold tolerance, drought and salt stress
Newtons
1-naphthaleneacetic acid
naphthaleneacetamide or NAAmide
Nicotinamide adenine dinucleotide phosphate
Reduced NADP
Net assimilation rate
Near infrared
Nuclear magnetic resonance
N-1-naphthylphthalamic acid
Nitrate reductase
Optical density
Olive leaf extract
Wild olive
Olive medium
Olive mill waste water
Osmotic pressure
Photosynthetic active radiation
Programmed cell death
Protected designation of origin
A transcriptional repressor of HER 2 gene amplication
Phosphoenol pyruvate
Protected geographical indication
Photosynthetic rate
Photosynthetic photon ux
xiv
PRD
PWP
Q10
RAPD
RBCs
RD
RDI
RGR
RI
RNA
ROS
rRNA
RuDP
SA
SADH
SAM
SAR
SCAR
SDI
SLRV
SNP
SOD
SOS
sRNA
SSR
TDZ
TIBA
TLC
UV
Vmax
VPD
WHO
WPM
WUE
Zeatin
13C
leaf
p
S or
soil
CHEMICAL SYMBOLS
B
C
Ca
CaCl2
CaCO3
Cl
Cu
Fe
H
H2PO4
H2SO4
HPO42
K
KCl
Mg
Mn
Mo
N
NH4+
O
P
S
SO42
Zn
Boron
Carbon
Calcium
Calcium chloride
Calcium carbonate
Chloride
Copper
Iron
Hydrogen
Dihydrogen phosphate anion
Sulfuric acid
Monohydrogen phosphate
Potassium
Potassium chloride
Magnesium
Manganese
Molybdenum
Nitrogen
Ammonium cation
Oxygen
Phosphorus
Sulfur
Sulfate anion
Zinc
xv
1
HISTORY OF OLIVE GROWING
The olive tree marks the route leading towards a higher stage of civilization. As
a native plant the olive tree was well known in the Mediterranean basin many
thousands of years ago. Hence, in the city of Kymi on the Greek island of Evia,
leaf fossils of Olea noti were found in carboniferous deposits dating back to the
Oligocene period.
Archaeological excavations have revealed the existence of olive leaf fossils
dating back to the Palaeolithic and Neolithic eras (37,000 BC) on Santorini
Island, Greece (Therios, 2005b). Furthermore, some ndings are reported for
the cretaceous strata of Provence, France and for North Africa. Olive pollen
was found in Greece, indicating its culture in this area. Hence, olive pollen
grains appear around the year 6000 BC (Epirus, western Greece) and around
3200 BC in Thessaly and eastern-central Greece.
Olive culture is very old. Fossilized remains of the olive trees ancestor were
found near Livorno in Italy, dating back 20 million years ago, although actual
cultivation probably did not occur in that area until the 5th century BC. Olive
trees are the oldest and one of the most important fruit trees (Standish, 1960).
Olive culture has been closely linked to the glory and decline of advanced
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
Chapter 1
civilizations. The olive tree is the greatest gift of God, since it symbolizes peace
with its leaves and joy with its golden oil (see web site: History. Olives and
Mythology).
The olive is regarded as a symbol of euphoria, purity, victory and honour,
and olive shoots have been used to honour victory, peace and wisdom (Greek
olive oil). An olive shoot was returned by a dove to Noah on the ark, proving the
end of the great cataclysm. During the Olympic Games in Ancient Greece olive
wreaths were given to winners. Since olive trees offered food supplies,
agricultural communities were stable, evidenced by population growth, and
such societies existed for many years. Based on their productive olive orchards,
the Greek and Roman Empires developed into great economic forces;
destruction of olive orchards resulted in the decline of these once-great
establishments. Olive trees and olive oil have engaged the intellect, the senses
and the passions of the Greeks for as long as 4000 years; olive oil maintained a
sacred place in the Greek religion. Hence, in the Greek Orthodox religion olive
oil was used for both baptism and illumination of churches and houses; the
sacred lamp that was used in ancient Greece to light houses at night was
fuelled by olive oil. Furthermore, aged olive oil was used in sacred rituals of the
church at weddings. According to Herodotus (500 BC), the growing and export
of olive products were so sacred that olive culture was allowed to be performed
only by eunuchs and virgins (see web site: World Mythology Encyclopedia).
According to Greek mythology (Psilakis, 1996) Athena, the goddess of
wisdom, struck her spear into the earth and an olive tree appeared (see web site:
Stories of Athena). Athenas gift of the olive, which was useful for food, medicine,
perfume and fuel, was considered to be a more peaceful gift than Poseidons horse.
Athena planted the original olive tree in the Acropolis, Athens (see Fig. 1.1).
Thus, this location, where the rst olive tree grew, was named Athena
(Athens) to honour the goddess Athena. According to the mythology this
original olive tree still exists at the ancient sacred site and all Greek olive
orchards originated from leafy cuttings from the original tree. As stated by
Homer, the ancient olive tree in Athens was already 10,000 years old, and it
was forbidden to cut down any olive tree; the penalty for this was execution.
Athletes who competed in the ancient Olympic stadium (775 BC) were crowned
with a wreath made of olive shoots. The rst plantings and hand harvesting of
olive trees date back to 3500 BC, during the Minoan civilization (Evans, 1903;
Cadogan 1980) on the island of Crete (see Fig. 1.2).
Extensive plantings in Greece started in the year 700 BC. The signicant
Cretan civilization was active until 1450 BC, when it was devastated by an
earthquake after the explosion of the volcano of Santorini. In the ruins of
Knossos and Festos palaces large olive oil jars were found, and other discoveries
provide evidence of the commodities traded between cities and between
neighbouring countries (see Fig. 1.3).
The Minoan civilization (Hood, 1971) and its dominance in the islands
and the continental area of Greece could have been partly due to the existence
Fig. 1.1. The goddess of wisdom, Athena, with the olive tree she planted in the
Acropolis, Athens, according to Greek mythology (Psilakis and Kastanas, 1999).
Fig. 1.2. Hand-harvesting of olive trees on Crete during the period of the Minoan
civilization (Psilakis and Kastanas, 1999).
Chapter 1
Fig. 1.3. Large earthen jars for olive oil storage in the Minoan palace at Knossos,
Crete (Psilakis and Kastanas, 1999).
southern Italy and North Africa during the 8th century BC and subsequently
spread into southern France. In Israel, King Solomon and King David
expanded the practice of olive cultivation. Mohammed, the prophet of Islam,
suggested 1400 years ago to his believers that they apply olive oil to their
bodies. The use of olive oil is common in many religions and cultures. During
baptism in the Christian church, holy oil may be used as anointment. Like the
grape, the Christian missionaries brought the olive tree with them to
California, North America, not only for food but also for ceremonial use. Olive
oil was used to anoint the early kings of the Greeks and the Jews, and has also
been used to anoint the dead in many civilizations.
Evidence indicates that the olive was also cultivated in Syria and Palestine
from the 4th millennium BC. In Egypt the olive tree was also cultivated, as
indicated by a papyrus written around 1550 BC. Furthermore, mummies from
the 20th to the 25th dynasties discovered in Egypt were found to be wearing
olive wreaths.
More recent archaeological investigation has provided considerable evidence
concerning the existence of olives in ancient Israel. The olive tree was already
being cultivated by the Neolithic period, as evidenced by the recovery of olive
stones from excavations in Jericho. At most Palestinian sites, olive wood is not
found in large quantities until the Early Bronze Age, when extensive olive
cultivation coincided with the onset of urbanization (Goor, 1962).
Archaeological remains of olive wood provide more specic information.
The earliest wood remains yet found in ancient Israel belong to Olea europaea,
dating to 42,950 BC. The olive was one of the basic agricultural products in the
economy of Israel. In Egypt, excavation at the site of Karanis in the Fayoum
region has revealed that olive trees thrived in the area and that olive oil
production was carried out there on a large scale, at least in the 3rd century BC.
During the colonial period olives were dispersed by explorers and colonists.
In 1560 olive cuttings were carried to Peru by Spanish explorers. In the early
1700s, Jesuits established missions in Mexico and Baja California. Franciscans
founded their rst mission in California at San Diego in 1769. The olive tree
was introduced to California by the Franciscans as they marched north
establishing missions. A visitor to mission San Fernando in 1842 saw an olive
orchard in healthy productivity. Subsequently, over the intervening years, olive
trees have been planted in several waves and many of these older groves
(80150 years old) still exist in California, mostly in the northern part of the
state. However, in southern California population pressure has resulted in the
land being very expensive for olive growing.
Early olive plantings were established at a number of sites in New South
Wales, South Australia, Western Australia, Victoria and, to a lesser extent, in
other Australian states (Smyth, 2002). In the second half of the 20th century,
interest in olive growing coincided with the post-war migration of people from
European countries who were familiar with olive cultivation. Production of both
olive oil and table olives in Australia is increasing, especially of quality products.
Chapter 1
Today, the Australian olive industry is a signicant player in the domestic market
but not yet at an international level. Many changes during recent decades have
contributed to this agricultural success story. First, cultural changes have
occurred as a result of migration from Europe, due to the dietary changes
introduced by immigrants; this has resulted in a rise in olive oil consumption.
Other factors include the suitability of southern Australia for industrial-scale
olive cultivation, the rise in the Australian economy and the newly gained
horticultural experience (Kailis and Considine, 2002). It is expected that
Australia will soon produce about 1% of the worlds olive products.
The olive tree has been, for a very long time, a cultural element and a
common reference point and trademark for people leaving the Mediterranean
area (Simantirakis, 2003). We nd representation of the olive tree in ancient
coins (Greek and Roman), in the modern Greek drachma (20 cents coin) and in
the French franc (now superseded by the euro). Furthermore, decorations
depicting the olive are found on ancient Greek vessels, silver and golden items
and Egyptian sarcophagi. Famous painters like Renoir, Picasso, Dali and Van
Gogh included olive trees in their paintings. Also, major writers like Homer,
Pindarus, Virgilius (Virgil), Palamas, Seferis, Elytis, Lorca and others gloried
the olive tree in their work.
In our everyday routine the olive tree decorates towels, tablecloths and
gardens with Mediterranean landscapes. Hence, the olive tree is used to
determine the border of the Mediterranean zone: a zone that ends where olive
trees cannot grow and produce. Olive oil has been used both as currency and a
means of paying labourers or professionals; and olive trees were once used as a
dowry given to girls for their marriage.
Olive oil has many health benets when used in the culinary arena. It has
benecial effects on the digestive and cardiovascular systems due to its low
cholesterol content. Other actions include the prevention of wrinkles, dry skin
and acne, lowering of blood pressure, reduced muscular pain and strengthening
of the nails. The belief that olive oil conferred strength and youth has long been
widespread. In ancient Egypt, Greece and Rome it was infused with owers and
herbs to produce both medicines and cosmetics. Excavation in Mycenae, Greece
revealed a list of aromatics (mint, rose, juniper, sesame, etc.) added to olive oil in
the preparation of ointments.
The earlier ways of crushing olives included the use of a mortar and pestle,
and rolling a stone roller over them in a crushing basin. The second step in the
production of olive oil is pressing of the mass resulting from crushing. The rst
signicant advance in the production of olive oil was the use of a lever in a leverand-weights press, the use of which became common during the rst Iron Age.
Olive oil production became a mass production industry during Iron Age II.
WEB SITES
Greek olive oil, mythology and cultural inheritance: https://www.helleas.com/lire
History. Olives and mythology: https://www.itlv.com/encyclopedia/history/myths
Stories of Athena. 1. Greek mythology: https://www.theoi.com/Olympios/AthenaMyths
World Mythology Encyclopedia. Greek mythology: https://www.worldmythology.ws/
greek-mythology/birthof-hermes
2
THE OLIVE: ORIGIN AND
CLASSIFICATION
ORIGIN
The olive is native to the Mediterranean region, tropical and central Asia and
to various parts of Africa. The genus Olea includes at least 3035 species
belonging to the family Oleaceae and subfamily Oleoideae (x = 23). The
cultivated olive (Olea europaea L.) is an evergreen tree derived from tropical and
subtropical species. Fossils from olive species have been found in Italy, France
and in other countries.
The Mediterranean zone was, at one time, within the tropical zone, but
drought and glaciers during the Pleistocene period constituted a means of
natural selection for plants with the ability to avoid glaciers. The glaciers
probably reduced the initial olive tree population, and only plants with the
ability to survive at temperatures of between 5 and 12C survived.
Olive culture was known from the year 4800 BC in Cyprus. The longevity
of the olive tree may explain the great variability among its species. It is
believed that genotypes that were crossed under various climatic conditions
now constitute the species O. europaea. According to recent experimental
results, signicant genotypic variation exists among plants of the same
cultivar; genetic diversity was studied by Angiolillo et al. (1999), and
phylogenetic relations between Olea species by Ouazzani et al. (1993) and
Baldoni et al. (2002). Varieties tolerant to cold are present in the northern
areas of olive culture, although dry summers and mild winters are the most
appropriate climatic conditions for olive trees.
The olive tree originating from the Eastern Mediterranean is one of the
oldest cultures, belonging to the family Oleaceae with 30 genera, among
which there are certain decorative plants. Most of the olive groves belong to
the species O. europaea, with 2x = 46 chromosomes. The species O. europaea
includes many groups and more than 2600 cultivars, many of which may be
ecotypes.
Olea europaea does not seem to be a true species but one group of forms
derived from hybridism and mutation. The tropical and subtropical Afro-Asian
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
10
Chapter 2
Continent
Asia
Oceania
America
Africa
Countries with
a tradition of
olive culture
Countries with
no tradition of
olive culture
Countries that
have started
planting olives
Countries
planting olives
experimentally
Iran
Iraq
USA
Argentina
Chile
Australia
Mexico
Peru
Uruguay
South Africa
Saudi Arabia
China
New Zealand
Brazil
India
Japan
Korea
11
Countries/areas of cultivation
Oceania
New Zealand
Australia
Australia, Java
America
Asia
Africa
Europe
O. apetala
O. paniculata
O. europaea
O. oribunda
O. americana
O. europaea
O. passiora
O. maritima
O. microcarpa
O. attenuata
O. dentata
O. lindley
O. salicifolia
O. dioica
O. cuspidata
O. compacta
O. roxburghiana
O. heyneata
O. glandulifera
O. acuminata
O. europaea
O. chrysophylla
O. laurifolia
O. verrucosa
O. verrucosa brachybotris
O. capensis
O. foveolata
O. concolor
O. exaesprata
O. humilis
O. obtusifolia
O. lancea
O. europaea
O. europaea
Myanmar
India: Calcutta
India
India
Afghanistan, eastern India
India
Asia Minor
12
Chapter 2
3
MORPHOLOGY AND TAXONOMY
OF THE OLIVE
The olive tree is a long-lived evergreen reaching 1000 years of age, or more.
Olive trees have a titanic resistance that renders them almost immortal (see
Fig. 3.1). In spite of cold winters and very hot and dry summers they continue
to grow, bearing fruit that nourishes and heals.
HABIT
The olive tree is an evergreen with greygreen leaves and small, white, fragrant
owers in the spring that produce a lot of pollen (Martin, 1994a). A mature
Fig. 3.1. A very old olive tree growing on the Greek island of Crete. Its age is
estimated to be over 1000 years, its trunk circumference is 15.6 m and its diameter
at 60 cm above the soil level is 4.5 m. This tree is still producing fruit.
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
13
14
Chapter 3
tree can reach a height of 2530 feet (810 m) and live for many hundreds
of years. An olive tree tends to grow densely, with thin branches. Cork cambium
is present and secondary thickening develops from a conventional cambial ring.
The cultivated olive belongs to the family of Oleaceae, genus Olea; the
scientic name is Olea europaea. In this family belong 30 genera and 180
species. The olive cultivars have 2x = 46 chromosomes. Excepting olive, in the
Oleaceae family various genera are classied accordingly:
Fleshy fruit
Dry fruit
Ligustrum
Chionanthus
Fraxinus
Syringa
Forsythia
Olea europaea
euromediterranea
laperrini
cuspidata
15
Asia
O. europaea O. europaea
O. microcarpa
O. maritima
O. passiora
O. heynana
O. attenuata
O. dentata
O. lindley
O. salicifolia
O. dioica
O. cuspidata
O. compacta
O. roxburghiana
O. glandulifera
O. acuminata
O. longifolia
Africa
America
Oceania
O. europaea
O. chrysophylla
O. laurifolia
O. verrucosa
O. branchybotris
O. capensis
O. faveolata
O. concolor
O. exaesprata
O. humilis
O. obtusifolia
O. lancea
O. americana
O. oribunda
O. apetala
O. paniculata
is greater in poor soils. Olive trees do not have a dominant taproot system, and
the root system is restricted to the rst 1 m of soil depth.
The tissue between the tree trunk and the root crown (xylopode) is
characterized by ovoid hypertrophies, containing sphaeroblasts (Therios,
2005b). About 30% of the total carbon xed by the plant is stored in this tissue,
from which the roots are derived. This form of root system may allow more
efcient water absorption after intermittent rainfall, in comparison with a deep
root system. One drought-avoiding response achieved with a deep root system
is to reach into moist soil. The ratio of the root size between irrigated and nonirrigated olive trees is 2.3:1. Irrigation reduces carbon transport to roots.
The functions of the root system depend upon the rootstock, variety, soil
conditions and cultivation practices.
16
Chapter 3
Anchorage
The root is the most efcient anchorage mechanism for the tree when it is very
deep and branched. Such a root system is found most commonly when the
scion is vigourous and when the rootstock is a seedling and not originated from
rooted cuttings. A very deep and branched root system does not grow in
shallow soils or in soils having claypan, hardpan or a sand layer.
Absorption
Trees with a deep and well-branched root system are better adapted to water
and nutrient absorption. Water absorption is a function of soil properties and
the plant itself. The active absorption of nutrient elements requires utilization
of metabolic energy in the form of adenosine triphosphate (ATP).
Synthesis
In the root, gibberellic acids (GAs) and cytokinins are produced in the root tip.
Furthermore, in the root ethylene is synthesized, which at very low
concentration induces root growth and branching (Abeles, 1973). When
stress due to root damage is exerted a signicant amount of ethylene is
produced which, after its transport to the tree top, causes senescence and leaf
abscission. Another growth regulator, abscisic acid (ABA), is produced in the
root cap and, following its transport to leaves, is responsible for stomatal
closure.
Storage
In the root system carbon and nitrogen compounds are stored. Carbon is stored
in the form of starch and soluble carbohydrates, while nitrogen is stored as
amino acids and proteins. The accumulation of certain compounds at the end
of summer and early in autumn exerts a signicant inuence on both the
induction of owering buds and shoot growth the following spring. The storage
role of the root system and the other functions depend on the availability of
photosynthates. Every factor that reduces photosynthetic carbon xation leads
to a reduction in root growth. Under normal conditions, 50% of photosynthates are transported to the root, with 50% of these being utilized in
respiration and growth and the remainder being stored.
Root growth may be affected by the following factors:
PRUNING Severe pruning tends to reduce root growth during spring. This is
due to the fact that shoot growth precedes root growth and all photosynthates
are used for top and not for root growth.
17
Trunk
The olive trunk is cylindrical, with an uneven surface, bearing a lot of
swellings. The wood is yellowish and darker towards the centre of the trunk.
The graceful, billowing appearance of the olive tree can be rather attractive. In
an all-green garden its greyish foliage serves as an interesting counterpoint.
The attractive gnarled branching pattern is also quite distinctive. The trees are
tenacious, easily sprouting back even when cut to the ground.
Main branches
The branches originate at a height of 1.2 m in the classical olive grove and at
2040 cm in the modern dense olive plantings. The number of branches is three
or more. The main branches give secondary and tertiary branching bearing the
leaves, owers and fruits. The small shoots are classied into four categories:
Vegetative shoots bearing only vegetative buds and producing new shoots
and leaves.
Fruit-bearing shoots bearing owering buds; their number is greater in the
low-vigour trees.
Mixed shoots bearing vegetative and owering buds concurrently; the
owers and fruits are borne at the base of the mixed shoots.
Water sprouts originating from the trunk, branches and the thick shoots;
these are very vigourous, grow vertically and they should be removed,
unless they are going to substitute for a low-vigour branch or stem.
Leaves
The leaves of olive trees are greygreen and are replaced at 23 year intervals
during the spring after new growth appears. The olives feather-shaped leaves
18
Chapter 3
grow opposite one another. Their skin is rich in tannins, giving the mature leaf
its greygreen appearance. Leaves have stomata on their lower surface only
(Fernndez et al., 1997). Stomata are nestled in peltate trichomes (see Fig. 3.2),
restricting water loss and protecting leaves against UV radiation
(Karabourniotis et al., 1992, 1995). The leaves are covered by a layer of wax and
cutin (cuticle). The deposition of cutin in the leaves takes place during leaf
growth and stops when leaf growth terminates. The weight of the cuticle on the
upper leaf surface is 1.4 mg/cm2; the thickness of the cuticle on the upper leaf
surface is 11.5 m, and on the lower one 4.5 m.
On both surfaces peltate trichomes exist and their concentration is
143/mm2 on the lower surface but only 18/mm2 on the upper. Stomates are
present (470/mm2) only on the lower surface (Martin, 1994a; Fernndez et al.,
1997). Leaf age affects stomatal conductance (Gucci et al., 1997b). Stomata
play a signicant role in sensing and driving environmental change
(Hetherlington and Woodward, 2003). The large number of trichomes
signicantly increases the efcient leaf surface, which is three times greater on
the lower surface in comparison with the upper. Both leaf surfaces are difcult to
hydrate and the contact angle of distilled water is 106 for the upper and 125
for the lower leaf surface. Table 3.2 summarizes these characteristics.
The leaves may have juvenile or adult characteristics. The juvenile and
adult phases can be differentiated by several morphological characteristics
such as thorniness, leaf size and shape, pigment accumulation, phyllotaxy and
ability to form adventitious roots (Hackett, 1985). Furthermore, in olive trees a
difference is recorded between juvenile and adult leaves concerning lipid and
protein composition (Garcia et al., 2000). Between the juvenile and mature
Fig. 3.2. Peltate trichomes on the lower surface of olive leaves (from Therios, 2005b).
19
Upper surface
Lower surface
0
18
11.5
106.0
470
143
4.5
125.4
Stomates (n/mm2)
Trichomes (n/mm2)
Cuticle thickness (m)
Contact angle ()
Buds
These are classed as either vegetative or owering. The former are small and
conical, while the latter are spherical and of greater size. Furthermore, latent
buds grow following severe pruning or after frost damage. A proportion of the
buds of the fruit-bearing shoot remains inactive.
20
Chapter 3
Fig. 3.3. Olive inorescence before and after blooming (cv. Chondrolia
Chalkidikis) (from Therios, 2005b).
begins to ower and produce fruit at the age of 8 years. The olive tree produces
both perfect and staminate owers. The perfect owers contain two stamens
and a well-developed ovary (green in colour), while staminate owers contain
an aborted ovary (very small in size) and normal stamens. The percentage of
perfect owers depends on many factors such as the cultivar, the number of
inorescences per plant, the soil moisture and the leaf nitrogen content during
the period of owering differentiation. The phenomenon of ower absorption
was mentioned by Theophrastus for olives in Italy as long ago as 350 BC.
Flower bud induction takes place in winter and 8 weeks before full-bloom
ower formation can be seen under a microscope. During the following 8
weeks ower development proceeds rapidly and owering occurs at the end of
May, or 12 weeks earlier in more southerly areas. The pistil of perfect owers
contains two ovules from which only one is fertilized, giving one seed. Figure
3.4 illustrates the duration of owering for a selection of cultivars over two
separate growing periods.
Fruit
The olive fruit is a drupe, spherical or elliptic in shape and consists of the
exocarp (skin), which contains stomata, the mesocarp (esh), which is the
edible portion of the fruit, and the endocarp (pit), including the seed. The fruit
of the olive tree is purplish black when completely ripe, but a few cultivars are
green when ripe and some olives develop the colour of coppery brown. The size
of the olive fruit is variable, even on the same tree, and depends on cultivar,
fruit load, soil fertility, available water and cultural practices (see Fig. 3.5).
Fig. 3.4. The duration of owering of 11 olive cultivars in two growing periods
(from Therios, 2005b).
Fig. 3.5. Olive tree with fruit setting (from Therios, 2005b).
21
22
Chapter 3
23
Fig. 3.6. Ripening periods of 25 selected Greek olive cultivars. Ripening period: 1,
days 110 of the month; 2, days 1120; 3, days 2131.
24
Chapter 3
4
STRUCTURE AND COMPOSITION
OF THE OLIVE FRUIT
STRUCTURE
The olive fruit can be separated into three distinct anatomical parts: epicarp
(skin), mesocarp (pulp or esh) and woody endocarp (stone), the last
containing the seed; these three fruit components follow distinctive growth
periods (Hartmann, 1949; Duran and Izquierdo, 1964; Farinelli et al., 2002).
Epicarp
This is the protective tissue that accounts for 1.03.0% of the drupe weight.
The skin is covered by a layer of wax, accounting for 4570% of the skin
weight. The skin is green during the early stages of development due to
chlorophyll, and later changes to straw yellow, pink, purple and black. This
colour change is due to varying concentrations of chlorophyll, carotenoids
and anthocyanins (Minguez-Mosquera and Garrido-Fernndez, 1989). The
epicarp plays a signicant role in minimizing mechanical damage and pest
attacks. Furthermore, the epicarp is impermeable to water, affecting the
processing of table olives.
Mesocarp
This is the most important part of the olive fruit, being the edible portion and
comprising 7080% of the whole fruit. The water content of the esh is
7075% of its weight and the oil content ranges between 14 and 15% in green
table olives and up to 30% in black mature olives. The table olives should have
low oil content. However, in certain types of black olives lipid biosynthesis
results in medium to high oil content (Donaire et al., 1984).
Olives contain oxalic, succinic, malic and citric acids and high levels of free
fatty acids. The sugars glucose, fructose, saccharose and mannitol 3.5 to
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
25
26
Chapter 4
6.0% of the esh in total are all present. The sugar content decreases with
maturation. Protein content ranges between 1.5 and 2.2% of the fruit by
weight. The pectic substances cement the cells and affect the texture of the
olive esh. These pectic substances during processing are hydrolysed by
pectinolytic enzymes and the fruit texture becomes softer.
Endocarp (stone)
The endocarp represents 1027% of the olive by weight, the seed comprising
24% of the weight. The seed contains 2227% oil and the shell 1%. Some
important characteristics of the endocarp include size, weight and ease of
separation (cling or free stone).
COMPOSITION
Table olives are characterized by the following parameters: (i) shape and fruit
size; (ii) the ratio of esh to pit; (iii) esh rmness; (iv) skin thickness; (v) stone
size and shape; and (vi) taste of the nal product. Varieties with large fruit size
are used for table olive processing. The time of harvesting for table olive
cultivars depends on the type of the nal product and it is a function of climatic
conditions. The determining factors include the following.
Colour
This depends on the intended use of the olive. Hence, for green olives the colour
will be straw-yellow green, with a deep black skin for black olives due to
anthocyanins, which could be evaluated in situ (Agati et al., 2005). The
amount of esh should not be lower than 70%. Furthermore, the esh should
be rm enough for the processing to be performed without loss of fruit quality.
The composition of the various parts of the olive fruit is presented in Tables 4.1,
4.2 and 4.3.
Table 4.1. Main composition of the olive fruit (from Marsilio, 2006).
Fruit
Pericarp
Pericarp/endocarp
Weight (%)
Epicarp
Epicarp/mesocarp
Pulp
Stone
Seed
7090
1027
13
27
Weight (%)
Moisture
Lipids (oil)
Reducing sugars
Non-reducing sugars
Crude protein (N 6.25)
Fibre
Phenolic compounds
Organic acids
Pectic substances
Minerals
Others
5075
1030
26
0.10.3
12
14
13
0.51.0
0.30.6
0.61.0
37
Epicarp
Mesocarp
Shell
Seed
Alkanes
Squalene
Alkyl esters
Methyl phenyl esters
Alcohols
Aldehydes
Free fatty acids
Pentacyclic triterpene alcohols
Pentacyclic triterpene acids
Free sterols
Steryl esters
Triacylglycerols
2
2
10
2
1
6
63
1
trace
0.1
trace
trace
5
trace
0.2
trace
trace
92
1.7
0.1
7
1.5
0.6
trace
1.1
78
trace
trace
0.3
0.2
8
0.4
4
trace
2
80
Alkanes
The major alkanes are found in both the epicarp and the woody part of the
shell. They are a mixture of C23C33 compounds; of those the odd chains C25,
C27 and C29 dominate. The dominant component in green olives is C29, while
in the black olive it is C27.
28
Chapter 4
chains C26C32. Fatty acids consist of two groups, C16C18 and C22C28.
Alkyl esters are found in signicant amounts in the skin lipids and at trace
levels in the seed and pulp. Two groups are present, C40C44 and C46C56
chains. The dominant chains are C40 and C42 in the rst group and C52 and
C54 in the second one.
Triterpenoids
In the esh and seed are found cycloartenol and methylene cycloartenol.
Furthermore, pentacyclic triterpene acids are found in the epicarp, such as
oleanolic and maslinic acids. Free sterols and terpenes are present in signicant
amounts in the cuticular lipids, and the stony endocarp contains steryl esters.
Among the sterols the most important are -sitosterol, stigmasterol and
campesterol.
Phenols
Olive esh contains 114% (d.w.) phenolic compounds, depending on the
variety (Amiot et al., 1986). The phenolic compounds are important in many
aspects, such as protection of plants from bacteria, fungi and viruses (Hanbury,
1954) and fruit browning as maturation proceeds. Furthermore, phenolic
compounds play signicant roles in human nutrition (Bravo, 1999) and health
(Christakis et al., 1982; Manna et al., 1999). The bitter taste of raw olives is
due to phenols and, especially, oleuropein, which is water soluble (Gutirrez
et al., 1992). Other phenols include ligstroside, verbascoside, 4-hydroxytyrosol,
tyrosol and glucosides or aglycones, 3,4-dihydroxyphenyl glycol and avonoids
(Manna et al., 1999). The concentration of phenols is a function of fruit
maturity and can be as high as 14% (d.w.) in young fruits, though it may be
close to zero in black-type fruits.
The size of the fruit, which is a characteristic of the cultivar and irrigation
method employed (Costagli et al., 2003), is related to phenol concentration.
Hence, varieties with small-sized fruits have a high oleuropein content
compared with large-fruited varieties. As olive fruits mature, oleuropein
concentration is reduced (Amiot et al., 1989) while the levels of oleoside-11methylester and dimethyloleuropein start to increase, reaching maximum
levels when the fruit is black and mature. Therefore dimethyloleuropein is the
major component of black olives. Furthermore, as maturation procceds,
verbascoside concentration increases.
Another phenolic compound, ligustroside, is abundant in the early stage,
but levels decrease during fruit development. The oleuropein content depends
on the variety and its origin. Hence, the Greek and Italian cultivars contain
greater amounts of oleuropein in comparison with the Spanish and Portuguese.
29
Oleuropein
Oleuropein is present in all parts of the olive tree and especially in the leaves, at
concentrations of 6090 mg/g dry weight (Soler-Rivas et al., 2000). Olea
europaea contains, besides oleuropein, other phenolic glucosides such
as verbascoside (ester of caffeic acid and hydroxytyrosol), ligustroside,
dimethyloleuropein (acid derivative of oleuropein) and cornoside. Phenolic
composition differs between the various cultivars. Among the phenolics the
three most important are oleuropein, dimethyloleuropein and verbascoside.
Of all the olive varieties, the small-fruited ones contain high levels of
oleuropein and low amounts of verbascoside, while the opposite is true for the
large-fruited varieties. Other phenolics common in olive cultivars are tyrosol,
hydroxytyrosol and tyrosol glucoside. Furthermore, olive leaves and buds
contain avonoids such as quercetin, kaempferol and hesperitin. Also found in
the olive fruit are the avonol glycosides such as luteolin 7-glucoside, rutin and
anthocyanin (cyanidin, delphinidin).
Oleuropein belongs to the secoiridoids, found very commonly in
the Oleaceae (Damtoft et al., 1993). These compounds are produced from the
secondary metabolism of terpenes. Oleuropein is an ester of hydroxytyrosol.
Oleuropein biosynthesis in the olive commences during secondary
metabolism, via a branching of mevalonic acid. This produces oleosides, which
nally lead to formation of secoiridoids. The carbon skeleton is derived from
mevalonic acid. The precursors for oleuropein in olives are both epoxides of
secologanin and secoxyloganin.
BIOSYNTHESIS
DEGRADATION
HERBIVORES
30
Chapter 4
protein cross-linking and decreases lysine levels. These changes have adverse
effects on herbivores by decreasing the nutritive value of the dietary protein.
The enzyme -glucosidase in organelles converts oleuropein to a glutaraldehyde-like substance. Therefore, oleuropein activated by -glucosidase has
very strong protein-denaturing, protein-cross-linking and lysine-alkylating
activities, and L. obtusifolium has developed an effective defence mechanism,
with oleuropein as a protein cross-linker.
Antioxidant activity of olive oil
Among the phenolic compounds found in extra virgin oils, gallic, caffeic,
vanillic, p-coumaric, syringic, ferulic, homovanillic, hydroxybenzoic, protocatechuic acids, tyrosol and hydroxytyrosol are the most important. During
cooking under domestic conditions the oil is heated to temperatures of up to
190C. Polyphenols of extra virgin oil are stabilizers of -tocopherol during
heating (Andrikopoulos, 1989). Therefore, they contribute to the nutritional
value of cooked foods, and polyphenols prevent the decrease in antioxidant
activity in olive oil during heating.
Olea europaea extracts containing oleuropein and hydroxytyrosol were
found to be much more effective than vitamin E in their antioxidative activities.
These extracts owe their antioxidative properties both to their high oleuropein
content (19% w/w) and to a lower amount of avonoids (1.8% w/w). Tyrosol
showed neither antioxidant nor pro-oxidant activity (Lerutour and Guedon,
1992).
Phenolic biosynthesis
In olive plants the aromatic amino acids, phenylalanine and tyrosine, are
produced via the shikimate pathway. Furthermore, carbohydrates supply carbon
skeletons necessary for the biosynthesis of acetate, shikimic acid and aliphatic
amino acids. The initial reactants are phosphoenolpyruvate and erythrose-4
phosphate, which are produced via the non-oxidative glycolysis of glucose.
Phenylalanine is the precursor of most phenolic compounds. Phenylalanine
ammonia lyase (PAL) is the enzyme involved in phenolic biosynthesis.
Hydroxytyrosol in olive fruits
Hydroxytyrosol is a natural phenolic compound that is present in olive fruits,
table olives, olive oil pomace and waste water produced during processing of
olives. When olives were treated with NaOH, the major phenolic compounds
present were hydroxytyrosol, tyrosol, caffeic acid and p-coumaric acid.
Hydroxytyrosol glucoside is a polar substance and it is logical to expect its
presence in the waste water and not in the olive oil.
Phenolic compounds in various olive varieties
Phenolic compounds in olive fruits are a very important factor in the
evaluation of the quality of virgin olive oil, since they are responsible for its
31
5
HECTAREAGE, NUMBER OF TREES
AND PRODUCTION OF OLIVE OIL
AND TABLE OLIVES
OVERVIEW
Most olive trees, on a worldwide basis, are cultivated in the Mediterranean
region. More than 75% of the global olive production occurs in Europe, which
cultivates 500 million olive trees. Europe is followed by Asia (13%), Africa (8%)
and America (3%). Spain is the leader in olive culture, followed by Italy and
Greece.
The hectareage and number of olive trees worldwide are given in Table 5.1,
the average annual total world production of olives in Fig. 5.1, the global olive
oil production in Table 5.2, the olive oil production in the Mediterranean in
Table 5.3, the EU production of olive oil in Table 5.4 and the world production
of olive oil (percentage of total) in various countries in Fig. 5.2.
In recent decades olive oil production has had periods of growth followed
by stagnation. At the beginning of the 1980s world production was about
Fig. 5.1. The average annual total world production of olives during the period
19982001 (15,090,620 t) (from FAOSTAT, 2003).
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
33
34
Chapter 5
Table 5.1. Hectareage and number of olive trees worldwide (2005). Data
elaborated using the International Olive Oil Council (IOOC) statistics.
Country
Spain
Italy
Greece
Cyprus
Rest of Europe
Total, Europe
Argentina
USA
Mexico
Rest of America
Total, Americas
Turkey
Syria/Lebanon
Palestine
Rest of Asia
Total, Asia
Tunisia
Morocco
Algeria
Rest of Africa
Total, Africa
Others areas
Total, World
Trees (n 1000)
2,340
2,250
670
12
1,203
6,475
70
44
15
11
140
723
168
66
2
959
1,240
222
166
117
1,742
681
10,000
200,000
185,000
133,000
2,450
62,150
7,000
582,600
4,500
1,540
1,570
14,610
72,000
24,160
12,130
240
108,530
52,000
22,000
16,000
4,550
94,000
12,550
800,000
Fig. 5.2. World production of olive oil (percentage of total, 19992000; total
2,033,500 t) (from IOOC).
35
Table 5.2. World production of olive oil (1000 t), 19982000 (from IOOC).
1998/2000
Country
EU1
Spain
France
Greece
Italy
Portugal
Tunisia
Turkey
Morocco
Syria
Algeria
Other
countries
Total
1EU,
1999/2000
Production
Consumption
Export
Production
Consumption
Export
1,698.5
789.2
3.4
473.0
397.0
36.0
215.0
170.0
65.0
115.0
39.5
70.6
1,660.0
500.0
78.8
245.0
705.0
67.0
49.0
97.0
55.0
88.0
35.0
392.2
235.0
75.0
1.0
6.0
140.0
12.5
175.0
60.0
20.0
4.0
0.0
14.6
1,563.0
550.0
3.0
426.0
620.0
40.0
200.0
70.0
40.0
80.0
25.0
55.5
1,679.0
500.0
80.0
245.0
710.0
68.0
65.0
60.0
50.0
85.0
29.0
391.9
257.0
80.0
1.5
7.0
150.0
17.5
120.0
30.0
10.0
5.0
0.0
9.4
2,373.6
2,385.2
508.6
2,033.5
2,359.9
431.4
Production
Spain
Italy
Greece
Portugal
Tunisia
Turkey
33
23
17
8
8
5
1.8 million t, 40% above the value recorded in the mid-1960s. After a relatively
stable period production again increased in the second half of the 1990s, to
reach 2.5 million t. Average world production for the most recent years is about
2.7 million t.
The EU is the dominant producer on the olive oil market. Until 1981 its
425,000 t accounted for only one-third of world production. EU production
after the accession of Greece, Spain and Portugal rose sharply, averaging about
80% of world production.
During the 1990s a rapid rise in production in the EU occurred due to the
doubling of Spains production and an increase of 1618% from Greece and
Italy. The next planned expansion of the EU will have limited impact on EU olive
36
Chapter 5
Table 5.4. Olive oil production in the European Union (1000 t, 19922003) (from
IOOC).
Year
1992/1993
1993/1994
1994/1995
1995/1996
Average
1996/1997
1997/1998
1998/1999
1999/2000
Average
2000/2001
2001/2002
2002/2003
Average
Spain
Italy
Greece
Portugal
France
Total
623.1
550.9
538.8
337.6
512.6
947.3
1077.0
791.9
669.1
871.3
973.7
1411.4
865.0
1083.4
435.0
520.0
448.0
620.0
505.75
370.0
620.0
403.5
735.0
532.1
509.0
656.7
590.0
585.2
310
254.0
350.0
400.0
328.5
390.0
375.0
473.0
420.0
414.5
430.0
358.3
375.0
387.8
22.0
32.1
32.2
43.7
32.5
44.8
42.0
35.1
50.2
43.0
24.6
33.7
29.0
29.1
1.6
2.3
2.0
2.3
2.1
2.5
2.7
3.4
4.1
3.3
3.2
3.6
4.7
3.8
1391.7
1359.3
1371.0
1403.6
1381.4
1754.6
2116.7
1706.9
1878.4
1864.2
1940.5
2463.7
1863.7
2089.3
oil production, since only three of the new members are producers (6000 t for
Cyprus, 400 t for Slovenia and 150 t for Malta, annually). These three
members represent 0.4% of the national guaranteed quantities of the other
member states. The global production of table olives is presented in Table 5.5
and Fig. 5.3.
Olive oil accounts for only about 3% of the global market of edible oil.
World consumption of olive oil has been progressing steadily (see Table 5.6),
Table 5.5. Global production of table
olives (1000 t, 19992000) (from IOOC).
Country
EU1
Spain
France
Greece
Italy
Portugal
Turkey
Morocco
Syria
Argentina
Egypt
Other countries
Total
1EU,
European Union
Production
563.5
380.0
2.0
92.0
80.0
9.5
100.0
85.0
75.0
103.5
40.0
142.5
1109.5
37
Fig. 5.3. World production of table olives (percentage of total, 19992000; total
1,149,500 t) (from IOOC).
Table 5.6. World consumption of olive oil (1000 t, 19952003) (from IOOC).
Year
1995/96
1996/97
1997/98
1998/99
1999/00
2000/01
2001/02
2002/03
EU
USA
Japan
Australia
Canada
Other
EU (%)
1402
1687
1841
1824
1844
1918
1994
2028
105
144
152
159
174
212
221
225
17
26
34
29
28
30
32
33
17
22
18
24
24
31
28
29
14
19
18
19
20
25
24
26
374
473
485
501
480
497
461
490
72.7
71.9
72.2
71.4
71.8
70.7
72.2
71.6
the EU being the worlds largest consumer. Other minor consumers in the
Mediterranean basin are Syria (100,000 t), Turkey (70,000 t), Morocco
(50,000 t) and Tunisia (40,000 t). Of the non-European countries the USA is
the worlds second biggest consumer of olive oil. Appreciable rises were also
recorded in Australia, Japan, Canada and Brazil. The EU is the worlds leading
consumer of olive oil, averaging 1.8 million t, representing 71.6% of world
consumption in 2002/2003. The main consumers in the EU are Spain, Italy
and Greece, together accounting for more than 85% of the unions total
consumption.
Through the 1990s, olive oil consumption showed an increase of 3.3%
in the EU as a whole, but growth was smaller in Greece, Spain and Italy
38
Chapter 5
(2.22.6%). The consumption rate rose much faster in Portugal (9.7%) and
France (10.8%) in the 1990s. The per capita increase in consumption of olive
oil in the EU over that decade is presented in Table 5.7, while EU exports for the
period 19922003 are shown in Table 5.8.
Greek exports consist mainly of extra virgin olive oil (73%), while those of
Italy, Spain and Portugal represent 45, 44 and 21%, respectively. Most of the
EUs exports are directed to the USA, Australia, Japan, Canada and Brazil.
Other major exporters are Turkey (to Canada, the USA, Australia), Tunisia (to
the USA) and Argentina (to Brazil). The average prices of exported olive oil are
given in Table 5.9.
The ratio of the prices of olive oil to other edible oils is 45:1. The difference
in quantities of olive oil produced from year to year results in major variation in
the prices paid to producers; consumer prices tend to be more stable. In Italy
and Greece producer prices for olive oil followed a downward trend in the
1990s. The producer price (/t) for extra virgin olive oil in Italy fell from an
average of 3015.8 to 2318.7 towards the end of the decade. For Greece this
gure dropped from 2708.6 to 1905.2 and in Spain from 2775.9 to 1826.6.
Table 5.7. Apparent consumption of olive oil in the EU (kg per capita) (from IOOC).
Year
1990
2000
Increase (%)
Greece
Spain
Italy
Portugal
France
Other
Whole EU
20.2
25.0
2.2
10.1
12.6
2.2
9.5
12.3
2.6
2.7
6.9
9.7
0.5
1.4
10.8
0.1
0.5
16.1
3.3
4.6
3.3
Spain
Italy
Greece
Portugal
France
Other
Total
1992/93
1993/94
1994/95
1995/96
Average
1996/97
1997/98
1998/99
1999/00
Average
2000/01
2001/02
2002/03
Average
51.6
54.6
54.0
48.8
52.3
66.7
76.2
63.6
87.7
73.6
88.3
112.5
115.0
105.3
90.8
104.8
105.8
90.5
98.0
129.5
123.5
125.3
182.7
140.3
173.0
182.9
200.0
185.3
10.3
9.2
5.5
11.0
9.0
5.2
8.0
5.4
8.2
6.7
10.0
10.0
15.0
11.7
7.5
10.5
13.1
11.8
10.7
17.0
17.4
12.4
17.5
16.1
17.3
16.2
16.0
16.5
0.9
1.1
1.0
1.1
1.0
1.1
1.1
1.0
1.4
1.2
1.3
1.0
1.1
1.1
0.3
2.5
3.1
1.6
1.9
0.7
1.0
0.9
1.0
0.9
1.1
1.7
0.8
1.2
161.4
182.7
182.5
164.8
172.9
220.2
227.2
208.5
298.5
238.6
291.0
324.3
347.9
321.1
39
Table 5.9. Average annual prices (/t) of exported extra virgin and lampante1 olive
oil, 19922002 (from IOOC).
Year
1992/93
1993/94
1994/95
1995/96
Average
1996/97
1997/98
1998/99
Average
1999/00
2000/01
2001/02
Average
Spain
Italy
Greece
2244.5
2424.9
2770.4
3663.9
2775.9
2467.0
1812.2
2325.2
2201.5
1919.8
1712.9
1847.2
1826.6
2151.3
2322.1
2622.4
3473.0
2642.2
2045.4
1564.2
2164.7
1924.8
1782.5
1598.0
1733.3
1704.6
2586.2
2772.8
2855.3
3849.0
3015.8
3564.6
2507.7
2591.1
2887.8
2268.8
2250.0
2437.2
2318.7
2128.1
2287.8
2538.1
3385.8
2585.0
2170.5
1545.1
2122.7
1946.1
1734.7
1547.6
1708.7
1663.7
2265.6
2419.0
2557.8
3592.0
2708.6
2765.1
2011.9
2221.2
2332.7
1841.4
1752.2
2122.1
1905.2
1799.4
1960.6
2118.0
2864.8
2185.7
1986.4
1364.3
1781.8
1710.8
1514.1
1391.4
1482.2
1462.6
1Lampante
oil is of a grade not intended for human consumption; the word derives
from the ancient use of olive oil as a fuel for lamps.
TABLE OLIVES
World production in 2003 was about 1.6 million t (see Table 5.10). There is a
variety of table olives (whole, pitted, sliced, stuffed) and, as observed in the case
of olive oil, the production of table olives uctuates from year to year, due to
both weather conditions and the alternate bearing habit of olive trees. When
the price of olives for the production of table olives is low, part of the yield is used
for oil production. The EU is the largest table olive producer (40%), others being
Turkey (13%), the USA (10%), Morocco (8%), Syria (7%) and Egypt (4%).
Table 5.10. Global production of table olives (1000 t, 19952003) (from IOOC).
Year
EU
Turkey
Syria
USA
Morocco
Egypt
Total
1995/96
1996/97
1997/98
1998/99
1999/00
2000/01
2001/02
2002/03
369
370
486
500
621
576
765
614
120
185
124
178
150
224
75
165
75
90
60
85
93
142
80
170
66
144
91
78
129
60
120
81
85
100
85
95
80
80
90
80
60
25
50
41
85
70
135
300
947
1063
1094
1201
1351
1343
1464
1647
40
Chapter 5
Table 5.11. Table olive production from the EU (1000 t, 19922003) (from IOOC).
Year
1992/93
1993/94
1994/95
1995/96
Average
1996/97
1997/98
1998/99
1999/00
Average
2000/01
2001/02
2002/03
Average
Spain
Italy
Greece
Portugal
France
Total
224
205
236
203
217
244
310
360
431
336
416
575
442
478
70
77
60
86
73
55
80
45
75
64
65
60
60
62
60
60
60
70
63
60
85
85
100
83
85
115
100
100
17
16
10
9
13
9
9
9
13
10
9
12
10
10
2
2
2
1
2
2
2
2
2
2
2
2
2
2
372
360
368
369
367
370
486
500
621
494
576
764
614
651
Table 5.12. Global consumption of table olives (1000 t, 19952003) (from IOOC).
Year
EU
USA
Syria
Brazil
Egypt
Turkey
Total
1995/96
1996/97
1997/98
1998/99
1999/00
2000/01
2001/02
2002/03
352
319
341
392
430
454
525
520
149
173
179
177
184
185
205
205
71
80
65
70
91
110
74
111
47
48
50
48
51
45
51
51
48
29
33
44
77
57
75
160
129
132
127
149
130
125
100
135
1043
1066
1075
1186
1250
1297
1380
1575
41
Spain
Italy
Greece
Portugal
France
Other
Total
120
125
27
17
28
33
348
135
115
22
12
33
55
372
199
145
27
13
39
76
500
WEB SITE
International Olive Oil Council (IOOC): https://www.internationaloliveoil.org
6
ROOTSTOCKS
The planting material for olive orchards is originated from either budded
seedlings or leafy cuttings. Budded plants are preferable, since the rootstock
affords plants a better adaptability to stress conditions. Olea europaea seedlings
and especially those of wild olive are often used with budding or grafting.
However, composite plants show signicant variation concerning tree vigour
and productivity.
Among olives more suitable as rootstocks, with no variation in tree vigour,
are included the rooted cuttings of a vigourous variety. Under orchard
conditions the olive tree has to adjust to certain problems, such as cold stress
(Charlet, 1965), water stress, salinity and, in moist soils, Verticillium wilt and
other pathogen problems (European and Mediterranean Plant Protection
Organization, 2006). One such rootstock is O. oblonga (Hartmann et al., 1971).
Other Olea species do not provide satisfactory rootstocks for olive trees. Genera
and species tested as rootstocks for olives include Phyllirea, Ligustrum, Syringa,
Chionanthus, Forsythia, Fraxinus forestiera, O. verrucosa and O. chrysophylla.
Their compatibility with olives is very limited. In addition to poor growth
characteristics, incompatibility is most evident through unsatisfactory union.
Therefore, a defective union is produced, leading to a defective union structure.
In addition, rooted leafy olive cuttings from low-vigour cultivars can be used as
dwarng rootstocks.
The root system of rooted olive cuttings differs from that of olive seedlings,
at least during the rst years of life, as rooted cuttings have all their roots
originating at the base of the cutting and growing at the same soil level. In
contrast, in plants grafted to seedlings the roots originate along a 40 cm axis
and produce an angle greater than 90. Therefore, such roots grow more
deeply into the soil. Such differences result in roots more tolerant to water
stress and cold.
43
44
Chapter 6
ROLES OF ROOTSTOCKS
The rootstocks of olives affect the size of the tree, its mineral nutrition
(Chatzissavvidis and Therios, 2003), the fruit size and shape and the season of
ripening.
Tree size
New systems of olive planting, such as super-high density, have started to
expand all over the world. Therefore, the reduction of tree vigour is very
important in olive culture. Today dwarfed rootstocks, as in the case of apples,
are not available. Very dwarfed rootstocks are not the most appropriate.
Certain rootstockscion combinations achieve the dwarng effect (Troncoso et
al., 1990; Lavee and Schachtel, 1999). These combinations are exemplied by
the following:
Salt tolerance
Ion toxicity is one way in which salinity can adversely affect olives. Olive trees
are considered moderately tolerant of salinity, though certain cultivars are
Rootstocks
45
more tolerant of salinity than others. However, their responses may differ
depending on the rootstock (Connell and Catlin, 1994). Unfortunately, the
relative responses of olive rootstocks are not known.
Allegra
This is also a rootstock resistant to Verticillium wilt. When Allegra is used as
rootstock the Verticillium is transmitted though the rootstock to the susceptible
scion.
46
Chapter 6
Nevadillo
This is an oil-producing cultivar and is recommended as rootstock for
Sevillano, Mission and Manzanillo cultivars.
Redding Picholine
Redding Picholine is a large-fruited variety and is used as a rootstock for
Sevillano and Mission.
Megaritiki, Chondrolia Chalkidikis, Amphissis, Koroneiki, Agiou
Orous and Matolia
In one experiment own-rooted cvs Megaritiki, Chondrolia Chalkidikis,
Amphissis, Kalamon, Koroneiki, Agiou Orous and wild olives as well as
scion rootstock combinations were grown in a greenhouse (Chatzissavvidis,
2002). The lowest boron (B) concentration in leaves and roots was found in
Kalamon and wild olives, respectively. Megaritiki had higher leaf B concentration when grafted on to Megaritiki or Chondrolia Chalkidikis compared
with own-rooted plants. The same cultivar as own-rooted plants had higher
root B concentration than a rootstock of the other tested cultivars. Budding
reduced stem potash (P) concentration of Megaritiki and Chondrolia
Chalkidikis grafted on to Chondrolia Chalkidikis and Amphissis, respectively.
Chondrolia Chalkidikis, as a rootstock, increased stem potassium (K) in
Megaritiki. Similarly, Amphissis and Megaritiki, as rootstocks of Amphissis,
reduced stem K concentration. Budding of Chondrolia Chalkidikis on to
Chondrolia Chalkidikis or Megaritiki, and Amphissis to Megaritiki, both
reduced stem calcium (Ca) concentration.
In Table 6.1 the concentration of B in four rootstocks (O. oblonga,
Chondrolia Chalkidikis, Matolia and wild olive) at six B concentrations in the
nutrient solution is presented and indicates that the maximum increase of B in
leaves was recorded at a treatment rate of 20 mg B/l in the cultivar Matolia
(897%) (Chatzissavvidis, 2002).
The accumulation of B increased very rapidly in all the treatments and in
a relatively short time. In the following Table (6.2) is presented the correlation
between B concentration in the nutrient solution and mineral concentration in
the leaves of the four rootstocks (O. oblonga, Chondrolia Chalkidikis, Matolia
and wild olive).
Rootstocks
47
Table 6.1. Boron (B) concentration at 30, 60 and 90 days after initiation of the
experiment and percentage change in B concentration at 90 days in comparison
with that at 30 days (from Chatzissavvidis, 2002).
Variety
Olea oblonga
Chondrolia
Chalkidikis
Wild olive
Matolia
Days
Treatment
(B, mg/l)
30
60
90
Change (%,
3090 days)
0.27
1.00
2.50
5.00
10.00
20.00
0.27
1.00
2.50
5.00
10.00
20.00
0.27
1.00
2.50
5.00
10.00
20.00
0.27
2.50
20.00
26
20
24
30
50
83
21
22
25
31
37
55
23
27
25
36
54
111
38
36
23
28
26
34
53
97
147
27
34
29
45
54
153
35
39
38
62
110
114
27
49
56
21
27
49
89
189
239
22
32
37
87
143
126
15
37
118
259
255
24
59
233
17
+34
+104
+193
+279
+187
+6
+49
+47
+180
+283
+129
34
+38
+52
+224
+381
+130
35
+63
+897
In wild olives (2.50 mg B/l) the per cent change represents a period of 60 days.
Use of growth regulators; the GA3 inhibitor uniconazole had too drastic an
effect on tree size. The increased yield due to uniconazole treatment is due
to increased fruit setting; similar growth inhibition was achieved with
paclobutrazol.
Selection of a suitable cultivar for high-density systems.
48
Chapter 6
Table 6.2. The correlation between boron (B) concentration in the nutrient solution
and mineral concentrations in the leaves of Olea oblonga, Chondrolia Chalkidikis,
Matolia and wild olive, used as rootstocks (Chatzissavvidis, 2002).
Olea oblonga
B
N
P
K
Na
Ca
Mg
Fe
Mn
Zn
Chondrolia Chalkidikis
Matolia
Wild olive
Base
Top
Base
Top
Base
Top
Base
+ top
0.934**
0.723**
NS
0.756**
NS
NS
NS
0.877**
NS
0.679**
0.993**
0.698**
NS
0.737**
NS
0.707**
NS
0.635**
NS
NS
0.570**
0.845**
0.440*
0.832**
NS
0.537**
NS
0.530**
NS
NS
0.586**
0.802**
0.563**
0.598**
NS
0.422*
NS
0.549**
NS
NS
0.843**
NS
NS
0.585*
NS
0.877**
NS
NS
NS
NS
0.707**
NS
NS
0.849**
0.563*
0.808**
NS
0.808**
NS
0.777**
0.960**
0.761**
NS
0.532**
NS
0.841**
NS
0.593**
0.456*
NS
N, nitrogen; P, potash; K, potassium; Na, sodium; Ca, calcium; Mg, magnesium; Fe, iron; Mn,
manganese; Zn, zinc.
Statistically signicant differences for P 0.05 (*), 0.01 (**) and < 0.001 (***).
7
MAJOR TRENDS IN OLIVE
FARMING SYSTEMS
The total area under olive cultivation within the EU has evidenced signicant
uctuation within its various member states and areas since the 1970s.
Throughout the 1970s, in all the EU countries, a decrease in the number of
olive groves was recorded. This could be ascribed to EU programmes aimed at
digging out old trees. During the following decade olive cultivation began to
expand in certain Mediterranean countries such as Greece and Spain and, to a
lesser extent, Italy and Portugal.
Signicant changes in cultivation techniques have occurred since the
1970s, involving such as the use of chemical fertilizers, herbicides and
insecticides and modern cultivation and irrigation systems. The expansion of
new plantation systems and the abandonment of the old, traditional ones have
produced signicant environmental consequences. We shall now examine
what changes and progress in olive culture have been at work in the three main
EU olive-producing countries, i.e. Spain, Italy and Greece.
SPAIN
During the mid-1960s olive groves in Spain covered 2.4 million ha, while
during the following decade many old plantations were cleared out and
replaced by arable crops. In 1986, Spain joined the EU and, with the support of
the Common Agricultural Policy (CAP), olive cultivation increased both in
terms of production and the total area of olive groves, partly through the
introduction of new plantations, these new olive plantations replacing arable
crops and grassland areas. In the year 1995 alone 67,000 ha of olives were
planted in Spain and, from 1990 to 1998, about 150,000 ha of new olive
groves were developed. In other words, the average rate of planting from 1990
was around 20,000 ha/year and the total olive area in Spain is now over 2.4
million ha. Plantations developed after 1998, according to the EU support
policy, cannot receive EU aid.
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
49
50
Chapter 7
It was in the 1980s that olive growing became more intensied, with
biological production and chemical pest control being practised in many areas
with the exception of marginal ones. In Spain the use of fertilizers is
increasing, and likewise irrigation in new plantations. Another new technique
introduced to Spain is mechanical harvesting for both new, dense planting
systems and traditional plantations. Biological olive oil production is
increasing, but still represents only a small proportion of the total olive grove
area. Furthermore, integrated pest management systems have been developed
in olive groves in Spain but they represent only a small percentage of the total
area.
ITALY
The latest data from EU surveys indicate that the total olive-growing area is
1.4 million ha, which is greater by about 400,000 ha when compared with the
area in existence in the 1990s. There are signicant differences in planting
trends in various regions. Hence, in some areas old olive trees were grubbed out
and some new and more efcient cultivars planted. Furthermore, many
traditional orchards were transformed into modern, densely planted orchards.
A new trend in Italy is the planting of biological olive groves, and the area of
those in 1997 was 15,200 ha, which still represented a small proportion.
However, their area is now increasing due to nancial support from the EU
(Regulation 2078/92).
GREECE
The area of olive orchards has increased signicantly since the late 1970s. This
is due to the planting of new olive orchards in the high-density system (67 m
between trees and 67 m between rows). Furthermore, olive oil and table olive
production have both increased over the same period. This enhanced
productivity is due to various factors: (i) mechanization; (ii) land levelling; and
(iii) irrigation, wherever there is available water. Other factors responsible
include: (i) the high level of EU support; (ii) high prices for olive oil: (iii)
improvements in olive cultivation and mechanization; (iv) establishment of
new, intensive plantations; (v) biological olive oil production; and (vi) efcient
water use by means of drip irrigation (Metzidakis and Koubouris, 2006).
On many small Greek islands, and also in marginal, semi-mountainous
areas, olive production is generally not intensive due to difcult soil/climatic
conditions (lack of irrigation water, shallow soil, soil inclination and difculties
with mechanization, use of labour in touristic areas, etc.). Under such
circumstances olive production yields only a low income.
8
CLIMATIC AND SOIL CONDITIONS
51
52
Chapter 8
relative humidity is responsible for disease problems. Hail damages olive trees
by damaging the fruits and by increasing the danger of Bacterium savastanoi
infection.
Although olive trees are tolerant to wind, wind-affected areas should not
be used for olive culture. Cold, moist and hot winds during spring reduce ower
fertilization and fruit growth. Furthermore, hot winds during the summer
instigate fruit drop.
Concerning soils, olive trees can grow well even in poor, dry, calcareous
and gravelly soils. However, the best soils for annual bearing are the deep,
sandy-loam soils adequately supplied with nitrogen (N), P, K and water.
Among the fruit trees olives are considered to be very tolerant to water stress.
Root density is positively related to tolerance to water stress and water
absorption. Hence, in olives the ratio of roots:leaves is 74:1, while in Actinidia
chinensis (kiwi fruit) it is 910:1. The root length of olive plants having the
same age as kiwi fruit plants is four times greater in comparison with A.
chinensis.
The available soil volume/tree is signicant. Clay soils that have high
moisture content and immobilize K and P are not suitable for olives. Also, soils
with a hardpan close to the soil surface are not appropriate for olives. Another
factor is that the sodium chloride (NaCl) content of soils should be less than
1g/l.
Olive trees grow and produce in soils with both medium acid and medium
alkaline pH; however, pH values greater than 8.5 reduce growth signicantly.
Furthermore, olives grow with no toxicity problems in soils with a relatively
high boron content (Chatzissavvidis, 2002).
53
canopy, thus affecting water consumption and heat stress. Other important
factors for increasing the tolerance of olive plants include the following:
Root:leaf ratio.
Leaf orientation, size, shape and characteristics of the surface. The existence
of pubescence in leaves reduces heat stress problems.
Leaf thickness, stomata size and distribution.
Optimal root system, which absorbs sufcient water in order to maintain
olive canopy temperature.
54
Chapter 8
55
Fig. 8.1. Olive fruit shrivelling due to low winter temperatures prior to harvesting.
56
Chapter 8
Fig. 8.4. Wood and cambium browning on olive trees after severe winter frosts.
57
58
Chapter 8
Fig. 8.5. The role of osmotin during cold acclimation in the olive. The stabilization
of F-actin and Ca2+ and the induction of programmed cell death (PCD) are
necessary for complete acclimation (from DAngeli and Altamura, 2007).
59
temperature; (iii) stomatal size and density; (iv) electrolytic conductivity; (v)
differential thermal analysis; and (vi) tissue staining.
Visual observations
This is the traditional method of screening chilling and freezing tolerance.
However, this method is not objective and is inuenced by various factors
including wind, relative humidity, and nutritional and water stress of the
plants. With this method scientists record their observations only of the leaf
canopy and not of the root system. At 12C trees are damaged, i.e. leaves die,
leaf abscission occurs and twigs dry up.
Chlorophyll uorescence quenching analysis
This method does not have adequate sensitivity and is too labour intensive.
Electrical resistance
With this method we measure electrical resistance changes within different
plant organs (Mancuso and Rinaldelli, 1996) and, based on the electrical
resistance changes, we determine the critical and freezing temperatures
(Mancuso, 2000). Both critical and freezing temperatures are lower for the
more chill-tolerant genotypes, and the absolute critical temperatures are lower
for the chill-tolerant varieties (8.8C for Ascolana) and higher for the chillsensitive ones (13.6C for Coratina). The sensitivity to chilling of various
organs in the olive follows the order: roots > leaves > shoots > vegetative buds.
Nevertheless, individual components do not represent the cold hardiness
of the whole plant. Therefore, for an estimation of frost damage it is better to
use the entire tree instead of merely parts of the tree.
Measurement of the changes in electrical resistance of olive tissues at low
temperatures consists of a simple, easy, accurate and non-destructive method
to screen those olive varieties having cold tolerance. The absolute critical
temperatures (Mancuso, 2000) for the cultivars Ascolano, Leccino,
Frantoio and Coratina are 8.8, 10.6, 12.6 and 13.6C, respectively.
Stomatal size and density
Stomatal density is used as a criterion for selection of cold-tolerant varieties
(Roselli et al., 1989; Roselli and Venora, 1990). From a study of stomatal
density in some Greek olive varieties we can classify them as follows:
60
Chapter 8
Fig. 8.6. Linear regression between stomatal density and cold tolerance of ten olive
cultivars. Cold tolerance: 1 = hardy, 7 = very susceptible (from Roselli and Venora,
1990).
Fig. 8.7. Parabolic correlation between stomatal perimeter and cold tolerance of
olive trees. Cold tolerance: 1 = hardy, 7 = very susceptible (from Roselli and
Venora, 1990).
In comparison with deciduous fruit trees, olive trees have greater stomatal
density. Figure 8.6 shows the linear correlation between stomatal density and
cold tolerance of ten varieties, while Fig. 8.7 shows the parabolic relationship
between stomatal perimeter and cold tolerance.
Electrolytic conductivity
Electrolytic conductivity is a sensitive method and is utilized to determine
differences between olive cultivars with regard to frost resistance (Murray et al.,
61
1989). Leaves were exposed in a cold room for 4 h, with a controlled drop in
temperature of 7C/h. Determination of the cold tolerance of olive leaves is
achieved by measuring the conductivity of leaf disk extract. Thirty leaf disks,
1 cm in diameter, were placed in a plastic bag and 10 ml of distilled water at
25C added for 6 h. Another 20 disks were incubated for 1 week at room
temperature in order to determine the degree of cold damage. Recording of
damage was conducted with image analysis, being measured by both image
analysis and measurement of electrical conductivity of the leaf disk extract.
The relative release of electrolytes (REL) is calculated from the equation:
REL = [(L1/L2) 100]
where L1 is the rst measurement of electrical conductivity. This represents the
liberation of ions caused by cold damage but also includes ion release under
normal conditions; L2 is the second measurement of electrical conductivity and
represents the conductivity in the dead tissue due to cold. This represents the
total quantity of the electrolyte in the leaf disk. Cold tolerance can be expressed
as LT50 (temperature at which 50% of tissues are damaged).
Differential thermal analysis (DTA)
Olive trees exposed to low temperatures survive either by avoidance of ice
formation in their tissues (supercooling) (Bongi and Palliotti, 1995) or by
increasing their frost hardening and resistance. Supercooling is generally
studied by the differential thermal analysis (DTA) technique (Fiorino and
Mancuso, 2000).
Olive plants survive winter temperatures by deep supercooling of tissue
solutions to temperatures close to those of homogenous nucleation of the
aqueous solution (40C). When this fraction of the solution freezes, an
exotherm can be observed by DTA (Fiorino and Mancuso, 2000). In order to
conduct DTA, excised olive tissues are placed on one side of a thermopile plate
and a dried sample of tissue on the other as a control in order to measure the
differential temperature changes between the two samples during the process
of freezing. The samples are placed in a freezing cabinet and cooled down to
30C at 5C/h. During this process we measure the signals from the
thermopiles.
Tissue staining
Five cross-sections of two to three cells width were cut with a razor blade from
the middle of leaves. Cutting was performed under demineralized water and
maintained under various temperatures for 20 min in a 0.02% solution of
neutral red [3-amino-7-dimethylamino-2-methyl-phenazin (HCl)]. The
samples were stored at 5C for 24 h in order to absorb the dye. For each
different temperature 100 cells per section were examined under a light
microscope (200 magnication). Only living cells absorb the dye and exhibit
62
Chapter 8
0C
5C
10C
12C
14C
16C
20C
Ascolano
Leccino
Frantoio
Coratina
100
100
100
100
100
100
100
100
86
76
73
68
82
66
53
51
79
51
35
36
18
12
0
0
0
0
0
0
63
Olive varieties resistant to cold include the following (Barranco et al., 2005).
The frost-hardiest cultivars are Cornicabra, Arbequina and Picual; other
frost-hardy cultivars include Mission, Leccino, Carolea, Chemlali, Moraiolo
and Picholine. Conversely, the most frost-susceptible variety is Empeltre. The
cultivar Hojiblanca is generally considered cold hardy (Barranco et al., 2000)
and is classed together with Frantoio in the intermediate cold-resistance group.
From the Greek varieties those considered most resistant include the
following: Galatistas, Arvanitolia Serron and Mavrelia Messinias. Kalamon
has medium tolerance and Koroneiki, Amphissis and Chondrolia Chalkidikis
are sensitive to cold.
SOIL CONDITIONS
Important characteristics of soils
Soil is a complex system consisting of varying proportions of four components,
i.e. mineral particles, non-living organic matter, the soil solution and air
occupying the pore space. Furthermore, soil gives shelter to many living
organisms such as bacteria, fungi, algae, protozoa, insects and small animals.
Mineral particles comprise the main part of most soils and the most stable
component. These are derived by weathering of mother rocks or deposition by
water or wind. Organic matter constitutes less than 2% of soil volume, with the
exception of organic soils. The term organic matter includes the various
organic residues such as roots, litter and decomposition products. The solid
matrix forms a pore space which constitutes 3060% of soil volume. The pore
space at eld level is lled with soil solution at 4060%, while the remainder is
lled with air. In saturated soils the entire porosity is lled with water, whilst in
dry soils most of the pore space is lled with air. Excepting organic matter,
water and air, soil provides shelter for microorganisms that help in the decay of
organic matter and release of mineral nutrients. Small animals, such as
earthworms and insects, drill tunnels in the soil, which improve inltration
and water movement.
The properties of a soil depend on soil texture, i.e. size and distribution of
mineral particles, their arrangement and the type of clay minerals. The clay of
soils consists of four minerals, i.e. kaolinite, montmorillonite, vermiculite and
illite. Kaolinite has a 1:1 proportion of silica to aluminum and its crystals have
the least tendency to shrink or swell upon hydration changes. Montmorillonite
and illite have a 2:1 silica:alumina ratio and soils containing these minerals
swell and shrink markedly upon hydration or drought, and crack signicantly
upon drying. The signicant characteristic of clay minerals is that, during
replacement of silicon or aluminum with other cations, they develop a negative
charge, which determines their efciency in holding cations or their cation
exchange capacity (CEC). Furthermore, the organic matter content contributes
64
Chapter 8
to CEC. The CEC of clay minerals and organic matter is as follows: organic matter
(100300 meq/100 g dry soil) illite, 3, kaolinite, 10, montmorillonite, 100
and vermiculite, 160.
Soil texture
The relative contents of sand, silt and clay in the soil determine soil texture,
including sand, loam, silt, clay and various intermediate classes such as sandy
loam, silt loam or clay loam. The diameter of solid particles in coarse sand is
2.000.20 mm, in ne sand 0.200.02 mm, in silt 0.020.002 mm and in
clay < 0.002 mm.
A sandy loam soil contains 66.6% coarse sand, 17.8% ne sand, 56% silt
and 8.5% clay. A loamy soil contains 27.1% coarse sand, 30.3% ne sand,
20.2% silt and 19.3% clay. Finally, a heavy clay soil contains only 0.9% coarse
sand, 7.1% ne sand, 21.4% silt and 65.8% clay.
Sandy soils have a large volume of non-capillary pore spaces and are
characterized by adequate aeration and drainage. Furthermore, sandy soils
have a low CEC and low water-holding capacity; they are easy to cultivate and
chemically inert. Clay soils have a high surface area and greater water- and
nutrient-holding capacity. The loamy soils contain about equal amounts of
sand, silt and clay and they have intermediate behaviour between clay and
sand. Moreover, such soils are more appropriate for olive cultivation, have good
water- and nutrient-holding capacity and good aeration.
Soil structure
Soil particles are united as aggregates in the form of crumbs, giving rise to the
particular soil texture. Clay particles are occulated when there is good
availability of cations in the soil solution, which neutralize the negative charge
of the clay particles. Hence, neighbouring particles stop repelling each other
and form aggregates in the form of crumbs. The role of iron and/or aluminum
oxides in organic colloids is important in cementing these particles together.
Wetting can destroy aggregation. Furthermore, the predominant ions may
affect soil structure and permeability. Soil saturated with sodium has a poor
structure: it is easily dispersed and does not drain easily.
Soil porosity
The pore space is that fraction of soil lled with air or with soil solution, and
this constitutes at least 50% of the soil volume. The pore space consists of two
types of pore, i.e. capillary and non-capillary. Capillary pores are lled with
65
water after drainage of the soil, while the non-capillary do not hold water and
drain easily after irrigation. Therefore, such pores are lled with air. Sandy soils
have good aeration and drainage, due to the non-capillary pores. However,
such soils have low water-holding capacity. An ideal soil for plant growth has
50% non-capillary and 50% capillary pores.
Soil horizons
Olive groves can be found in areas with a uniform soil texture to a depth of
1.01.5 m. Older, undisturbed soils have denite horizons with different
properties. These horizons are categorized as below, starting from the surface
of the soil:
66
Chapter 8
In the case of when another force, such as soil gravity, is applied, the
previous equation is transformed into the following:
soil = m + p + s+ g
Soil water can also be described by two other terms: eld capacity and
permanent wilting percentage.
Field capacity
This is the water content after drainage 13 days after the soil has been
thoroughly wetted by rain or irrigation. Field capacity is a condition in which
water moves slowly and the water content does not change signicantly
between measurements. The deeper the soil the more time is required for the
surface layer to reach eld capacity. Furthermore, eld capacity depends on soil
characteristics and the condition under which it is measured. Because eld
capacity is a function of soil structure, laboratory measurements are not a very
good estimation of its value under eld conditions.
The moisture equivalent is an estimation of eld capacity, which is the water
content of a wetted and sieved soil sample having been drained by centrifugation
at a gravitational acceleration of 1000 g. In order to measure moisture
equivalent, soil samples are exposed on a pressure plate to a 0.3 bar pressure
and the soil moisture content is an approximation of the moisture equivalent.
Permanent wilting percentage
Permanent wilting percentage (PWP) is the soil water content at which plants
remain permanently wilted. PWP is the lowest limit of soil water and is
measured by cultivating seedlings in well irrigated containers until adequate
growth is achieved. Subsequently, the soil surface is sealed with plastic or
aluminum foil and the plants are allowed to deplete the available soil water,
leading to wilting. When no recovery of plants is recorded in a moist area then
the soil water content measured is termed PWP. The soil water potential at
wilting has a mean value of about 15 bars. Therefore, the percentage of water
content at 15 bars is used as an estimation of PWP. In soils PWP is determined
on soil samples by using a pressure membrane. The appearance of wilting in an
olive tree may be due to the inability of water supply from roots to meet the
transpirational demands of the tree. Other factors responsible for wilting in the
orchard include depth and soil volume where the root system grows, soil water
conductivity, osmotic stresses and other factors.
Readily available soil water
With the term readily available water we mean the amount of water retained in a
soil between eld capacity and the PWP. The available water range has a greater
value in ne-textured soils in comparison with that in coarse-textured. The value
of available water is a function of many variables, such as high rooting depth or
restricted root growth and rate of inltration of water.
67
68
Chapter 8
oven dried at 105C to constant weight. The amount of water in the sample is
determined as the difference in the weight of the soil sample before and after
drying. The water content is determined as the percentage of dry weight of the
soil sample. Also, this can be expressed as water content per unit of volume.
Indirect methods of determining soil water content
NEUTRON PROBE This is the most commonly used indirect method of measuring
soil water. The principle of this method is that hydrogen (H2) atoms can slow
down and scatter fast neutrons. Therefore, counting of low neutrons near a
source of fast neutrons gives an estimation of H2 content of the soil. Since the
main source of H2 in a soil is H2O, this technique provides an estimation of soil
water content. However, in organic soils (organic material contains H2) this may
modify the estimation of water content by this method.
Water has a signicantly higher dielectric constant
than dry soil. Therefore, changes in water content change electrical capacitance,
which varies with temperature and is less affected by the soil solution salt
concentration. Since it is difcult to obtain uniform electrical contact with the
soil, capacitance measurements are neither accurate nor reliable.
ELECTRICAL CONDUCTANCE
THERMAL CONDUCTIVITY
69
Waterlogging
The olive is a species sensitive to waterlogging or root hypoxia, and its
sensitivity is a function of olive cultivar (Hassan and Seif, 1990). Of the tested
cultivars cv. Mission died after a 30-day duration of waterlogging, while the
cv. Kalamon survived for a period of 60 days after waterlogging was imposed.
The mechanism of tolerance to waterlogging is based on the production of
adventitious roots near the soil surface. Some rootstocks, such as O. oblonga,
are tolerant to waterlogging. Waterlogging alters certain metabolic functions
of roots and results in reduced absorption and transport of water and nutrients
(Larson et al., 1991).
70
Chapter 8
GASEOUS POLLUTANTS
Signicant modications of the gas composition of the atmosphere have been
observed in recent years for sulphur dioxide (SO2), carbon dioxide (CO2) and
ozone (O3). These pollutants are present at high concentrations, and for several
months in the Mediterranean region, where the olive plant is mostly cultivated,
reduced growth was observed in annual plants and forest trees (Agrawal and
Agrawal, 2000). However, the data concerning pollutant effect on olive
growth and metabolism are scarce (Minnocci et al., 1995; Vitagliano et al.,
1999).
Sulphur dioxide
Experiments have indicated that differences in SO2 sensitivity were observed
between two olive varieties, Moraiolo and Frantoio (Giorgelli et al., 1994).
Due to EU regulations for the protection of the environment, emissions of SO2
in more recent years have been signicantly reduced.
Carbon dioxide
The CO2 concentration of the atmosphere has increased from 280 to 360
mol/mol in recent times and it is expected to reach 650700 mol/mol by
the year 2075 (Carbon Dioxide Information Analysis Center). Carbon dioxide is
responsible for most of the global greenhouse effect. Exposure of olive plants
(Frantoio and Moraiolo) to elevated CO2 enhanced net photosynthesis and
decreased stomatal conductance (Tognetti et al., 2001, 2002; Sebastiani et al.,
2002a). Chlorophyll concentration decreased in an elevated CO2 environment
in the leaves of only Frantoio. Stomatal density and leaf nutrients did not
differ between treatments.
Ozone
Ozone in the stratosphere protects the living world from exposure to UVB
radiation. In the Mediterranean region O3 concentration is around 40100
ppb and is an atmospheric pollutant. Ozone pollution effects on the varieties
Frantoio and Moraiolo were studied (Vitagliano et al., 1999). Of these two
varieties Moraiolo showed greater visible injury to O3 than did Frantoio.
Therefore, in Mediterranean olive culture, O3 pollution may decrease olive
growth and productivity (Minnocci et al., 1999; Sebastiani et al., 2002b).
71
72
Chapter 8
et al., 2006); (iii) salt stress (Bongi and Loreto, 1989); (iv) temperature (Bongi
et al., 1987); (v) adequate nutrients; (vi) disease control; (vii) leaf area and
anatomy; (viii) leaf inclination; and (ix) the concentration of the carbonxation enzyme, RuBisCo. However, olive productivity is a function of both Pn
and respiration of the various organs. The photosynthetic rate (Pn) is affected
by both the time of day and the season (Proietti and Famiani, 2002). Therefore,
the highest Pn values were recorded in October and the lowest ones in August
and December. The explanation is simple, since the temperature is favourable
during October for photosynthesis and unfavourable during August and
December. Both high and low temperatures affect chloroplast integrity, light
scattering and light reectance. Measurement of Pn in ve Greek olive cultivars
(Hagidimitriou and Pontikis, 2005) indicated that Koroneiki, a droughttolerant cultivar, had the highest Pn and Gs values (21 mol/m2/s), followed
by Megaritiki (18 mol/m2/s), Conservolia (16 mol/m2/s), Lianolia
Kerkiras and Kalamon (both 1314 mol/m2/s).
The Pn is signicantly higher in 1-year old leaves than current-season
leaves early in spring, while later current-season leaves can also supply equal
amounts of assimilates for plant and fruit growth (Bongi et al., 1987). Olive
leaves have a pronounced seasonal variation in Pn, and this is affected by the
cultivars, date and ambient conditions (Hagidimitriou and Pontikis, 2005).
73
the girdling area, photosynthetic activity was restored. The presence of fruits
on the shoot resulted in such a decrease not being observed. Girdling resulted
in a decrease in Gs. The decrease in photosynthesis due to girdling could be
ascribed to assimilate accumulation, implying that Pn should be controlled by
assimilate demand. Therefore, transport of assimilates from source to sink is
the controlling factor of sink growth and the Pn of the source plant. When the
production of photosynthates exceeds their utilization the accumulative sugars
in the leaves become a type of stress factor. Other effects of girdling include the
increase in both percentage of oil in the fruit and ower bud differentiation.
The strength of the incident radiation from the sun, which controls the
Earths overall temperature.
74
Chapter 8
Fig. 8.8. Percentage participation of CO2, water vapour and other factors involved
in the greenhouse effect.
75
Carbon dioxide
Carbon dioxide is released into the atmosphere through both natural and
human processes. Carbon dioxide production and absorption take place
through the carbon cycle in the biosphere. Human processes such as fuel
burning increase the CO2 concentration in the atmosphere; this has increased
by 30% from the late 18th century up to modern times, and is now at a level of
about 370 ppm, while it was recorded at 280 ppm before the Industrial
Revolution. The stomata of leaves therefore play a role in sensing and driving
environmental change (Hetherlington and Woodward, 2003).
Methane
Methane concentration has increased by about 150% since 1750. Methane is
a greenhouse gas produced from both natural and human activities.
Anthropogenic factors result in greater emissions of methane. The level of
atmospheric methane increased from about 1610 ppb in 1983 to 1745 ppb in
1998.
76
Chapter 8
Fig. 8.9. Storm frequency in the northern hemisphere due to climatic changes over
the last 100 years (from Lambert, 1996).
77
Fig. 8.10. Expected change in extreme high temperatures, from the present day to
the year 2090 (from Hangeveld, 2000).
4. The decreased water supply, together with rises in temperature, will decrease
food supplies.
5. Ocean acidication with increased CO2 concentration has negative effects
on and consequences for sh populations and marine ecosystems.
6. Increase in deaths due to heat stress, lack of food, malaria, etc.
7. Increase in the frequency of very intense hurricanes, typhoons and tropical
storms.
8. Loss of an increasing percentage of biodiversity, since various species fail to
adapt to harsh weather conditions. A temperature rise of 2C will lead to
extinction of 1540% of species that are a source of food and medicines.
9. Changes in sea level. The rate of global mean sea level rise during the 20th
century was in the range of 1.02.0 mm/year. The most rapid rise in global sea
level was between 15,000 and 6,000 years ago, with an average rate of
10 mm/year.
78
Chapter 8
(Frenguelli et al., 1989; Gioulekas et al., 1991; Chuine et al., 1998; Galn et al.,
2005). However, higher temperatures could be catastrophic to owering
quality (perfect owers) and therefore it could reduce olive production.
Higher temperatures increase biomass production. Furthermore, in olives
and in other woody species, the inuence of changing climate will depend on
how long the increased CO2 concentrations promote growth and production
and also how the inuence of CO2, temperature and non-availability of water
affects olive fruit and quality.
79
80
Chapter 8
Fig. 8.11. Actual plus estimated increase in atmospheric CO2 concentration over a
period of 115 years (19752090).
Their analysis shows that the best predictions are from thermal time models
based only on spring temperatures (Chuine et al., 1998). The annual owering
date for an individual site may vary by 2930 days within a single decade.
Phenology is the most responsive aspect of nature to warming, and is an
ideal means of demonstrating that warming may already have an inuence on
the natural world. Olive owering and deciduous tree leang are amongst the
easiest processes to record. Furthermore, in deciduous trees any increase in the
mean temperature leads to advancement of harvesting date. Planetary
warming and higher spring temperatures affect the timing of bird migration
and breeding periods.
Breeding for high CO2 concentration and selecting for CO2 response.
Breeding for tolerance to water and heat stress. Certain olive varieties have
proved to be more tolerant to high temperatures or to water stress conditions.
Selection for tolerance to diseases and insects, since an increase in the use
of pesticides and herbicides could threaten drinking water quality.
WEB SITE
Carbon Dioxide Information Analysis Center: https://cdiac.ornl.gov/
9
FLOWER BUD INDUCTION
AND DIFFERENTIATION
INTRODUCTION
Flower bud inorescences are borne in the axil of each leaf. Usually the bud is
formed on the current seasons growth and begins growth the following
season. Lombardo et al. (2006) report observations regarding the oral biology
of 150 Italian olive cultivars. Buds may stay in a dormant condition for more
than 1 year and subsequently begin growth, giving inorescences bearing
owers. Each inorescence contains 1530 owers and this depends on the
cultivar and the prevailing conditions for development.
The owers are small, yellowish white and inconspicuous and contain a
four-segmented calyx and a tubed corolla with four petals (lobes). The ower
also has two stamens and a short style with a two-loculed ovary. The owers
are divided between two categories: perfect, having stamen and pistil, and
staminate (male) owers, where the pistil is aborted while the two stamens are
functional. In the perfect ower the pistil is large, green in colour and lls the
space in the oral tube. Staminate owers are very small and do not ll the
oral tube; the style is greenish white and small.
Flower initiation takes place very early in November and the ower parts
develop during MarchApril, as has been shown by histochemistry. Induction
in the olive may occur about 6 weeks after full bloom, while the initiation is not
visible until 8 months later (February). Various authors report on the time of
oral induction (Hartmann, 1951; Fernndez-Escobar et al., 1992; Cuevas et
al., 1999).
For ower induction, chilling is a prerequisite. Some olive cultivars
(Koroneiki, Mastoidis) in southern Greece require very little chilling, while
other cultivars (Kalamon, Amphissis and cultivars from California and
Spain) require adequate chilling. Experiments in Thessaloniki indicated that
the cultivars Chondrolia Chalkidikis and Amphissis need longer periods of
chilling than do Megaritiki and Koroneiki to satisfy their chilling requirements for ower induction (Hartmann and Porlingis, 1957; Hartmann and
Whisler, 1975; Porlingis and Therios, 1979). The rst appearance of sepal
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
81
82
Chapter 9
primordia occurs during the rst 12 days of April, the beginning of carpel
differentiation was observed during the last 10 days of April and full bloom
took place during the last few days of May or the rst days of June (Porlingis
and Dogras, 1969).
Olive inorescences appear during spring and originate from buds produced
during the previous years vegetative period. Initially, these buds are not
differentiated to owers. However, after exposure to low winter temperatures,
internal changes occur in endogenous inhibitors and promoters, leading to their
differentiation to owering buds and to inorescences (Hartmann et al., 1967).
Exposure of buds to relatively low temperatures is the necessary condition for
owering, and both the level of low temperatures and the cultivar determine to a
great extent the percentages of buds that will produce inorescences.
83
Fig. 9.1. First stages of oral differentiation in olive buds (cv. Chondrolia Chalkidikis).
At the upper right of each microphotograph the date of bud collection is given.
1, vegetative bud; 2, 3, no change is observed; 46, the apical meristem becomes
broader and a new pair of bracts is formed (B1). K, apical stem; , lateral stem;
B, bracts (magnication 30) (from Porlingis and Dogras, 1969 [in Greek]).
has a detrimental inuence on owering, pollination and fruit set. From the
olive owers optimum yield can be achieved when 1 or 2% of these owers
remain as developing fruit 14 days after full bloom. Most of the owers not
setting fruit have abscised.
Olives are polygamousmonoecious since, on the same tree, we may nd
both perfect owers with weak, well-developed ovaries and staminate
(imperfect owers with well-developed stamens and underdeveloped ovary)
(Levin and Lavee, 2005).
The percentage of perfect owers on a tree depends on: (i) the cultivar; (ii)
shoot vigour; and (iii) environmental conditions, such as the lack of soil
moisture during spring, when the inorescences develop. Furthermore, the
leaf:bud ratio affects the percentage of perfect owers. When the leaf:bud ratio
is increased by disbudding, the production of perfect owers is promoted.
Constant temperature (12.5C) or ideal temperature variations during the
24-h period (12.5C for 20 h and 21C for 4 h) promote the development of
imperfect owers, whereas low temperatures or when the temperature varies
(7C for 20 h and 26C for 4 h) increase the percentage of perfect owers.
84
Chapter 9
Fig. 9.2. Further stages of oral differentiation in the olive bud (cv. Chondrolia
Chalkidikis). 7, 8, broadening of the apical meristem and appearance of the
primordial sepal (
); 9, sepal and petal () primordia in the apical meristem; 10, 11,
stamen differentiation (
); 12, carpel differentiation (K) (magnication 20) (from
Porlingis and Dogras, 1969 [in Greek]).
85
Fig. 9.3. Pistil development in the apical ower of the olive inorescence. 13, pistil
formation; 1417, formation and development of ovary, ovules (
), style (
) and
stigma (
I) (13, 14 and 15: magnication 20; 16, 17: magnication 15) (from
Porlingis and Dogras, 1969 [in Greek]).
Juvenility
Juvenility is generally dened as the period during which a plant cannot be
induced to ower. The duration of the juvenile phase in woody plants is quite
variable, and can be quite lengthy (Meilan, 1997). Phase change describes the
period during which a plant undergoes the transition from juvenility to
maturity. This transition is a gradual and continuous process. Phase change
has occurred if the olive plant owers independently of the cause of the
induction of owering.
The juvenile and mature growth phases are often distinguishable by other
morphological characteristics, which in olives can include leaf shape and size,
phyllotaxy and the ability to form adventitious roots and/or buds. The term
maturation describes the transition from juvenility to maturity, while ageing
means loss of vigour and increased complexity. In assessing the ability to ower,
86
Chapter 9
Fig. 9.4. Biennial cycle of vegetative and reproductive processes in the olive (from
Rallo et al., 1994). Dorm, dormancy.
it is necessary to use treatments that are known to induce owering but which
do not promote maturation.
Temperature
Winter chilling
Several climatic factors are apparently critical for olive performance, with
respect to owering, fruit growth and olive oil production and quality. Some
winter chilling is required for oral initiation, but this requirement varies
quantitatively between varieties (Hartmann and Porlingis, 1957; Hackett and
Hartmann, 1963, 1964, 1967; Navarro et al., 1990; Piney and Polito, 1990;
Ferrara et al., 1991; Rallo and Martin, 1991). Varieties originating from Italy,
Spain, northern Greece and California require more winter chilling than those
grown in southern Greece (Crete), Israel or Egypt (Martin et al., 1994a), where
the chilling periods range from 86 to 1400 h (Hartmann and Whisler, 1975).
Temperature uctuation affects owering: uctuation between 2 and 15C for
80 days produced adequate owering, while uctuation between 7 and 18C
produced smaller numbers of inorescences.
A chilling period is required prior to owering. Afterwards, the determination of heat requirements in the rst developing phases of plants has been
87
Growth regulators
The levels of ABA, IAA and GA3 in leaves, nodes and fruits during the
induction, initiation and differentiation periods in the on years (those with a
high percentage of owering and fruit set) were lower than those in the off years
(those with a low percentage of owering and fruit set in the alternate bearing
88
Chapter 9
Table 9.1. Number of inorescences per plant, percentage of ower buds and
number of owers per inorescence of three olive varieties maintained at various
temperatures (from Porlingis and Therios, 1979).
Variety
Treatment
Inorescences/plant (n)
Outdoors
10C
Outdoors + 10C
14C
Outdoors + 14C
Koroneiki
1343
1174
1524
924
1302
Kolovi
228
24
171
11
99
Chondrolia
Chalkidikis
1150
200
765
0
0
76.6a
75.7a
84.9a
56.2b
73.4a
15.8a
2.0c
12.0a
0.9d
4.5b
77.5a
12.7b
48.8a
0.0c
0.0c
Flowers/inorescence (n)
Outdoors
10C
Outdoors + 10C
14C
Outdoors + 14C
18.7a
18.1a
18.3a
14.6c
15.8b
7.6a
7.0a
6.9a
7.6a
8.3a
12.9a
8.6b
12.4a
Different superscript letters within the same column indicate statistically signicant
differences for P < 0.05 (Duncans multiple range test).
cycle). However, GA3 levels during these periods were higher in the on years.
The fact that GA3 decreased and GA4 levels increased during the induction and
initiation periods in the off years suggests that these affect ower bud
formation. Zeatin increase during the induction period in the off year suggests
that an increase in cytokinin during the induction period possibly has a
positive effect on oral formation (lger et al., 1999, 2004).
The ABA content of the inorescences was consistently > 40 nmol/100 g
fresh weight (FW) from early anthesis until full bloom, reaching a maximum
1 week before full bloom. The ABA concentration changes are thought to be
due to the shedding of bracts and imperfect owers during the period of
inorescence development prior to full bloom. After full bloom, endogenous
ABA concentrations fell to < 20 nmol/100 g FW. The ABA content of bark
tissues was about 30 nmol/100 g FW before full bloom. Shedding of old leaves
led to an increase in ABA concentration in bark tissues in late May. Exogenous
application of GA3, asparagine and glutamine affected the induction of
owering buds (Proietti and Tombesi, 1996a).
89
Table 9.2. Number of perfect owers and the number of fruits per plant and per
100 perfect owers of three olive varieties maintained at various temperatures (from
Porlingis and Therios, 1979).
Variety
Treatment
Koroneiki
77.3a
31.9b
35.6b
62.7a
43.5b
1759
1597
1935
1580
1732
9.1
23.6
19.5
18.6
19.4
Kolovi
90.3a
87.9a
90.0a
98.7a
96.5a
60
147
186
16
29
3.8
11.4
17.5
19.0
3.7
Chondrolia
Chalkidikis
84a
90.3a
69.7a
301
66
211
0
0
2.4
4.5
3.2
Different superscript letters within the same column indicate statistically signicant
differences for P < 0.05 (Duncans multiple range test).
Oleuropein levels
Oleuropein levels sharply decreased during the transition from vegetative to
ower buds (Malik and Bradford, 2006b), while levels rapidly increased with
the expansion of fertilized pistils and then sharply declined with fruit
maturation. Exogenous application of oleuropein inhibited owering in
90
Chapter 9
Date of harvesting
The date of harvesting affects signicantly the percentage of ower bud
differentiation. Late harvesting depletes the olive tree and results in a lower
percentage of ower bud differentiation (see Table 9.4 and Fig. 9.5).
Fruit thinning
Olive fruit thinning increases the percentage of owering bud differentiation
and owering. Use of NAA (the auxin, naphthalene acetic acid) at 150 mg/l
increased owering bud differentiation by 60%.
Table 9.3. Sugar, hormone and mineral nutrient concentrations of Memecik olive
at the three oral stages (lger et al., 2004).
Sugar
Fructose (%)
Glucose (%)
Sucrose (%)
Total sugar (%)
IAA (g/g)
Zeatin (g/g)
ABA (g/g)
GA3 (g/g)
GA4 (g/g)
N (%)
P (%)
K (%)
Ca (%)
Mg (%)
Fe (g/g)
Mn (g/g)
Zn (g/g)
Cu (g/g)
Differentiation
Induction
Initiation
0.18c
3.08a
0.23b
3.48b
0.72b
18.09a
0.47a
4.12a
40.62a
1.04a
0.11c
0.59c
2.06a
0.17a
93.77a
33.82a
21.61a
29.13a
0.34a
3.26a
0.36a
3.99a
0.70b
5.42c
0.21b
1.53b
23.70b
0.97b
0.12b
0.91a
1.30b
0.13a
63.98b
22.73b
16.95b
17.77b
0.26b
3.12a
0.37a
3.81ab
1.75a
8.63b
0.15b
3.88a
41.36a
0.61c
0.14a
0.73b
1.98a
0.17a
60. 09b
19.20b
11.21c
16.04b
Different superscript letters within the same column indicate statistically signicant
differences for P < 0.05 (Duncans multiple range test).
91
Effect of defoliation
The percentage of ower bud differentiation decreased after defoliation due to
diseases such as Cycloconium and nutrient and water stress.
Table 9.4. Flower bud differentiation (%) as affected by the date of harvesting and
fertilizer applied.
Date of harvesting
30 November
15 December
25 January
14 March
Fertilizer (urea)
Fertilizer (101010)
Control
6.88
4.05
0.85
0.46
3.48
1.31
0.29
0.20
3.33
1.63
0.81
0.09
Fig. 9.5. The relationships between (a), olive production (kg) and owering
intensity the following year; (b) harvesting date and ower bud differentiation the
following year (from Gucci and Cantini, 2004a).
10
FLOWERING, POLLINATION,
FERTILIZATION AND FRUITING
93
94
Chapter 10
95
Fig. 10.1. Phenological stages of the olive tree. (a) Inorescence development; (b)
ower enlargement (the owers become spherical); (c) full bloom; (d) petal fall and
imperfect owers; (e) fruit set and 1st stage of growth; (f) 2nd stage of fruit growth
(hardening of endocarp begins); (g) 3rd stage of fruit growth (cell enlargement).
and UV radiation. The enzyme superoxide dismutase (SOD) has been found in
olive pollen and catalyses the disproportionation of superoxide radicals (O2),
which is a defensive mechanism against oxidative stress (Aloh et al., 1998).
SOD occurs in three forms, containing manganese (Mn), Fe or Cu.
96
Chapter 10
Table 10.1. The most appropriate pollinators for 21 olive cultivars (Farinelli
et al., 2006).
Main cultivar
Arbequina
Ascolana semitenera
Ascolana tenera
Bella di Spagna
Carolea
Carolea, Kalamon
Carolea, Itrana, Kalamon, Picholine
Maurino
Nocellara etnea
Ascolana semitenera, Bella di Spagna, Leccino,
Maurino, Moresca
Ascolana tenera, Leccino, Nocellara etnea
Ascolana tenera, Manzanillo
Giarraffa, Itrana, Santa Caterina
Ascolana tenera, Carolea, Manzanillo
Arbequina, Ascolana semitenera, Carolea, Giarraffa,
Koroneiki, Leccino, Manzanillo, Maurino
Kalamon (or self-fruitful)
Gordal, Leccino, Maurino, Nocellara etnea,
Picholine, Santa Caterina
Ascolana tenera, Leccino, Manzanillo, Picholine,
Picual
Ascolana semitenera, Carolea, Leccino, Picholine,
Sorani
Bella di Spagna. Giarraffa, Leccino
Ascolana tenera
Ascolana semitenera, Ascolana tenera, Manzanillo,
Maurino, Moresca
Leccino, Maurino
None
Gordal, Marocaine, Moresca, Picholine
Ascolana tenera, Carolea, Leccino
Giarraffa
Gordal sevillana
Grossa di Spagna
Itrana
Kalamon
Koroneiki
Manzanilla
Maurino
Moresca
Nocellara etnea
Pendolino
Picholine
Picual
Santa Caterina
Sorani
Taggiasca
97
Fig. 10.2. (a) Olive inorescence during the period of blooming; the ower parts
(petals, stamens and pistil) are easily distinguishable; (b) olive inorescences with
imperfect owers (male) (cv. Chondrolia Chalkidikis).
98
Chapter 10
Fig. 10.3. Flowering periods of 37 olive cultivars in the Umbria hills of central Italy
(from Antognossi et al., 1975).
et al., 2001), relative humidity, wind and rain. The temperature of the air
should be < 30C. However, very low temperatures reduce the speed of pollen
tube growth, while high temperatures dry out the stigma and do not allow
pollen germination. Wind is important for dissemination of pollen (Griggs et al.,
1975). However, dry and hot winds destroy pollen grains and nullify pollen
germination and pollen tube growth. Rain during the period of blooming also
has a negative inuence on pollen germination. When pollinizers are planted,
their distance from the main cultivar should not be > 30 m, in order to attain
an adequate fruit-setting percentage.
99
Each ower consists of a small calyx, four petals, two stamens and laments
with large anthers and a green pistil with a short style and a large stigma.
Perfect owers have a large green pistil, while imperfect ones are staminate and
do not have a pistil or their pistil is rudimentary (Brooks, 1948).
Pollination in olives occurs through either self-pollination as in the case
of Koroneiki or cross-pollination (Cuevas and Rallo, 1990; Cuevas et al.,
2001), as in Kalamon, and the cultivars are characterized as either selffruitful (Androulakis and Loupassaki, 1990) or non-self-fruitful (Diaz et al.,
2006b) (see Fig. 10.4). In the case of self-pollination, the pollen of a ower
pollinates the pistil of the same ower. The pollen is transferred by gravity, bees
or wind. In cross-pollinated cultivars, the pollen is transferred by wind. Olive
pollen is poor in sugars and therefore bees do not commonly visit olive owers.
(a)
(b)
Fig. 10.4. The cultivar Chondrolia Chalkidikis following (a) self-pollination and
(b) cross-pollination.
100
Chapter 10
When pollen reaches the stigma it germinates, producing the pollen tube,
which conveys the male germ cells (sperm) to the female germ cell (egg). The
pollen tube can be stained for observation by microscopy (Cuevas et al.,
1994b). The pollen tube grows for a few days, reaching the egg cell in the
embryo sac. One sperm cell fuses with the egg, producing the zygote which,
after division, produces the embryo, which is destined to become the olive fruit.
Cold weather reduces the speed of pollen tube growth; in this case, therefore, it
reaches the embryosac late, after deterioration of the latter. After pollination
and fertilization the ovary is transformed into fruit. Each ovary has two
cavities, the locules, each one containing two ovules, i.e. four ovules per ovary.
Only one developed ovule is required for seed formation. The presence of welldeveloped embryo sacs in the ovules and ovule longevity are determining
factors in their capacity for fertilization.
101
Fig. 10.5. High percentage of fruit setting after free pollination of Chondrolia
Chalkidikis.
ovary being relatively large and dark green in color. Imperfect owers have
only stamens and a rudimentary pistil and do not set fruits. The formation of
imperfect owers is due to arrested pistil growth as a consequence of water
stress or N deciency during the period of owering bud differentiation. A small
percentage of setting (12%) is sufcient for a good crop.
Ovarian size
The size of the ovary is affected by water and N availability during the period of
owering bud differentiation. Subsequently, through the process of cell division,
expansion and/or differentiation, ovarian size increases 50-fold (Rapoport et al.,
2004) to produce the olive drupe.
102
Chapter 10
103
FRUIT GROWTH
The olive fruit is a drupe consisting of the pericarp and endocarp. The pericarp
consists of the skin (exocarp) and the esh (mesocarp), the latter producing the
oil. The endocarp consists of a lignied shell which encloses the seed; each seed
consists of the seed coat and the endosperm. The seed also contains an embryo,
two cotyledons, a radicle and a plumule. The shape and size of the olive fruit
depends on the particular cultivar: there are small-, medium- and large-fruited
cultivars.
Olive fruit development follows a double sigmoid curve, very common in
other fruits, having three stages. In the rst stage, growth is fast; the growth is
exponential and is characterized by cell division, and the pit is still growing. In
the second stage the growth slows down or stops. However, at this stage the pit
hardens and attains its nal size. Finally, in the third stage the fruit grows by
cell enlargement.
FURTHER READING
Acebedo, M.M., Caete, M.L. and Cuevas, J. (2000) Processes affecting fruit distribution
and its quality in the canopy of olive trees. Advances in Horticultural Science 14(4),
169175.
Batanero, E., Ledesma, A., Villalba, M. and Rondriguez, R. (1997) Purication, amino
acid sequence and characterization of Ole e 6, a cystein-enriched allergen from
olive tree pollen. FEBS Letters 410, 293296.
Bernier, G., Kinet, J.M. and Sachs, R. (1981) The Physiology of Flowering. Volume II.
Transition to Reproductive Growth. CRC Press, Boca Raton, Florida, pp. 157159.
Chaari-Rkhis, A., Maalej, M., Messaoud, S.O. and Drira, N. (2006) In vitro vegetative
growth and owering of olive tree in response to GA3 treatment. African Journal of
Biotechnology 5(22), 20972302.
Cimato, A., Cantini, C. and Sillari, B. (1990) A method of pruning for the recovery of
olive productivity. Acta Horticulturae 286, 251254.
Cuevas, J. and Polito, V.S. (1997) Compatibility relationships in Manzanillo olive.
Journal of Horticultural Science 32, 10561058.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Sanchez-Zamora, M.A., Uceda, M. and Beltran, G. (2002) The
effect of nitrogen overfertilization on olive tree growth and oil quality. Acta Journal
of Horticulturae 586, 429431.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Benlloch, M., Herrera, E. and Garcia-Novelo, J.M. (2004) Effect
of traditional and slow-release N fertilizers on growth of olive nursery plants and N
losses by leaching. Scientia Horticulturae 101, 3949.
104
Chapter 10
Gioulekas, D., Chatzigeorgiou, G., Lykogiannis, S., Papakosta, D., Mpalafoutis, C. and
Spieksma, F.T.M. (1991) Olea europaea 3-year pollen record in the area of
Thessaloniki, Greece, and its sensitizing signicance. Aerobiologia 7, 5761.
Kitsaki, C.K., Drossopoulos, J.B. and Terzis, S. (1995) Endogenous free abscisic acid in
oral, bark and leaf tissues of olive during anthesis and early fruit development.
Scientia Horticulturae 64, 95102.
Marquez, J.A., Benlloch, M. and Rallo, L. (1990) Seasonal changes of glucose,
potassium and rubidium in Gordal Sevillana olive in relation to fruitfulness. Acta
Horticulturae 286, 191194.
Martin, G., Nishijima, C. and Early, J. (1993) Sources of variation in olive ower and
fruit populations. HortScience 28, 697698.
Navarro, C., Benlloch, M. and Fernndez-Escobar, R. (1990) Biochemical and
morphological changes related to owering in the olive. In: XXIII International
Horticulture Congress, Florence, Italy, Abstract 3196.
Stutte, G.W. and Martin, G.C. (1986) Effect of light and carbohydrate reserves on
owering in olive. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science 111,
2731.
Vitagliano, C., Minocci, A., Sebastiani, L., Panicucci, A. and Lorenzini, G. (1999)
Physiological response of two olive genotypes to gaseous pollutants. Acta
Horticulturae 474, 431433.
11
ALTERNATE BEARING
INTRODUCTION
The productivity of each cultivar is a function of alternate-bearing habit and fruit
abscission before ripening. Alternate bearing is dened as the characteristic of an
olive tree to produce olives every 2 or more years. The year of maximum
production is called the on year, while the year with minimum or no production
is called the off year.
In olive trees we observe two growth ushes, the rst one in spring and the
second in autumn (October), under adequate soil moisture and temperature.
Alternate bearing is directed by various factors such as water stress, warm soil,
climatic factors and the cultivar. Signicant genotypic variation was reported
concerning cultivars, with respect to alternate bearing. The main causal factor
of alternate bearing is the inhibition of ower bud induction by the seed of
growing fruits, and this is due to competition for nutrients.
The two main factors that can reduce the intensity of alternate bearing are
pruning and productivity. Furthermore, the irrigation schedule may reduce
alternate bearing. Mineral nutrition is also a determining factor. Nutrient
deciency, especially of N during the period of ower bud differentiation, affects
vegetative vigour, the size of fruits and the owering of the following spring
(Fernndez-Escobar et al., 1999, 2004b).
105
106
Chapter 11
GIRDLING
Many horticultural techniques such as girdling can increase ower initiation
and fruit set in the off years (Hartmann, 1950; Lavee et al., 1983; Ben-Tal and
Lavee, 1984; Li et al., 2003). Girdling increases soluble sugar and starch
content in leaves and shoot bark above the girdle during the off year. Trees
during the on year do not accumulate carbohydrates above the girdle.
Furthermore, girdling reduces soluble sugar and starch concentrations below
the girdle in both on and off trees. Girdling affects carbohydrate-related gene
expression (Weiss and Goldschmidt, 2003).
ENDOGENOUS HORMONES
Endogenous plant hormones play a signicant role in alternate bearing (Lavee,
1989; lger et al., 1999). ABA and GA3 have a direct role in ower bud
initiation, while IAA and IAA-like compounds have an indirect role in the
initiation of ower buds. Furthermore, exogenous application of growth
regulators (Ben-Tal and Lavee, 1976; Akilioglu, 1991; Eris and Barut, 1991),
spermine or spermidine (Pritsa and Voyiatzis, 2005) or paclobutrazol (Lavee
and Haskal, 1993) may alleviate the problem.
PROTEIN CONTENT
The total extractable protein content in the leaves of off trees is signicantly
lower than in the leaves of on trees (Lavee and Avidan, 1994). This was
observed in the cultivars Koroneiki, Uovo de piccione, Manzanillo and
Barnea. The least difference was recorded in the leaves of Koroneiki, which
demonstrates the least alternating capacity.
Chlorogenic acid (CHA) is associated with alternate bearing and levels are
high in the alternate years and low in the off years. Injection of exogenous CHA
reduces ower bud differentiation when applied during the secondary
induction period in the autumn and early winter.
In most cases proteins of 28 and 32 kD were present in samples of the off
year leaves, and 22 and 14 kD were in higher concentration in the leaves of the
on trees.
PHENOLIC ACIDS
Endogenous control of alternate-bearing includes the possible involvement of
phenolic acids, with the end product of caffeoylquinic acid (see Fig. 11.1)
(Lavee and Avidan, 1982; Lavee et al., 1986).
Alternate Bearing
107
Shikimic acid
Phenylalanine (Tyrosine)
Cinnamylquinic acid
p-Coumarylquinic acid
5-Caffeoylquinic acid
Cinnamic acid
p-Coumaric acid
Caffeic acid
Fig. 11.1. Pathway for the production of 5-caffeoylquinic acid via cinnamylquinic
acid (from Lavee et al., 1986).
FURTHER READING
Martin, G.C., Ferguson, L. and Polito, V.S. (1994) Flowering, pollination, fruiting,
alternate bearing and abscission. In: Ferguson, L., Sibbett, G.S. and Martin, G.C.
(eds) Olive Production Manual. University of California, Division of Agriculture and
Natural Resources, Berkeley, California, Publication 3353, 1921.
Rallo, L., Martin, G.C. and Lavee, S. (1981) Relationship between abnormal embryo sac
development and fruitfulness in olive. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural
Science 106, 813817.
Rallo, L., Torreo, P., Vargas, A. and Alvarado, J. (1994) Dormancy and alternate
bearing in olive. Acta Horticulturae 356, 127136.
12
FRUIT THINNING
INTRODUCTION
Fruit size is the determining factor in the price offered per kg of raw table olives
to growers. Therefore, the study of factors that tend to increase fruit size is
fundamental. The rst fruit drop takes place after petal fall. During this
process a heavy shedding of undifferentiated or poorly developed olives is
recorded due to fruit competition (Surez et al., 1984). After fruit set the olive
fruit is small, and various factors can inuence its nal size.
The growth of olive fruit is performed initially by cell division and, later, by
cell enlargement. Together with cell enlargement, air spaces increase to a
maximum. The combination of cell division, cell enlargement and air space
appearance results in the olive growth curve. The olive fruit size, especially in
table olives, is increased by the following factors:
109
110
Chapter 12
THINNING METHODS
Generally, olive thinning can be carried out using the following methods:
hand-, mechanical and chemical thinning.
Hand-thinning
Hand-thinning is the removal of owers or fruits manually. Our method is to
leave six to seven fruits per shoot (30 cm). This method incurs a heavy labour
Table 12.1. Factors which increase or decrease fruit thinning (from Westwood, 1978).
Increased thinning
Decreased thinning
Young trees
Moist weather
High relative humidity
High maximum temperature
Softly sprayed water
Slow drying conditions
High concentration of chemicals
Trees of low vigour
Close spacing of trees
Light pruning
Heavy owering
Poor pollination
Previous heavy crop
Addition of wetting agents
Mature trees
Dry weather
Low relative humidity
Temperature lower than maximum
Heavily sprayed water
Fast drying conditions
Low concentration of chemicals
Vigorous trees
Wide planting distances
Severe pruning
Light owering percentage
Adequate pollination
Previous light crop
No inclusion of wetting agents
Fruit Thinning
111
cost. Thinning should be conducted within 3 weeks of full bloom and no later,
otherwise there is no reduction in alternate bearing and fruit size will not be
substantially increased.
As an alternative to hand-thinning, appropriate pruning can thin the
shoots, reduce cropping and increase olive fruit size. Furthermore, this promotes
shoot growth for the following years crop.
Mechanical thinning
Mechanical thinning can be performed by the following methods:
1. Use of a hand-operated spray, with high-pressure water (Westwood, 1978).
2. Use of a mechanical shaker to shake the tree trunk. This method needs skill
to avoid over-thinning. Furthermore, with this method the larger olives are
removed since these fruits obtain a greater directional momentum than small
ones. Also, fruits from the stronger branches are removed more easily.
Therefore, with mechanical thinning it is difcult to achieve the degree of
thinning the grower needs.
Chemical thinning
In recent decades, NAA, l-naphthaleneacetamide (NAAm) and ethephonreleasing ethylene have been tested for thinning table olives (Weis et al., 1988,
1991). Chemical thinning has certain advantages over hand- or mechanical
thinning:
112
Chapter 12
is followed by a light crop (off year) or no crop at all. However, an average crop
achieved with fruit thinning gives a satisfactory crop the following year. Therefore,
fruit thinning results in bearing every year. Furthermore, after thinning, the crop
is moderate, has more available carbohydrates per fruit and matures earlier.
3. Flesh:pit ratio and olive fruit quality. Thinned trees give fruits with a higher
esh:pit ratio and higher oil content. The harvesting cost per kg is signicantly
less from trees with moderate yield and large fruits than from trees with a big
fruit load.
4. Flower bud differentiation. Flower bud differentiation increases as leaf
assimilates and other accumulated reserve materials increase.
For the chemical thinning of olive, NAA is used. The time of application is
very important in the effectiveness of thinning (Lavee and Spiegel-Roy, 1967).
The best time for thinning is 1218 days following full bloom. If NAA is sprayed
earlier, this treatment over-thins the olive tree, while late application is not
effective. The trees should be fully covered with the spray solution, the required
quantity being 1015 l/tree. The suggested NAA concentration is 10 ppm/day
after full bloom, i.e. 100 ppm for spraying after 10 days or 150 ppm for spraying
15 days after full bloom.
The diameter of table olives should be 35 mm at the time of application.
Furthermore, the greater the applied concentration of NAA the greater the
thinning activity (Sibbett and Martin, 1981; Maranto and Krueger, 1994).
13
SYSTEMS OF PLANTING AND
CANOPY TRAINING
SOIL PREPARATION
Under favourable conditions the root system of olive trees, planted at distances
of 6 6 m, covers within a period of 34 years the entire area of the orchard.
Soil preparation includes levelling, deep ploughing, drainage, etc. and should
be performed before planting (Sibbett and Osgood, 1994). Large stones should
be removed to avoid damage to agricultural machinery.
113
114
Chapter 13
(wild olive) are preferred, while in the dense planting systems, plants from leafy
cuttings are the rule. However, until now little progress has been conducted in
the direction of olive rootstocks, since the rootstocks used are seedlings from
wild olives or cultivated varieties, giving plants with various characteristics and
properties. The genera and species tested as olive rootstocks are the following:
Phyllirea, Ligustrum, Syringa, Chionanthus, Forsythia, Fraxinus forestiera, Olea
verrucosa, O. chrysophylla and O. oblonga. These rootstocks do not have good
afnity with O. europaea. Furthermore, rooted cuttings from low-vigour
cultivars could be used as dwarf rootstocks. The root system of rooted cuttings
differs from that of grafted plants. Rooted cuttings have all their roots at the
same level (base of cuttings) and tend to grow horizontally and close to the soil
surface. In grafted plants, by contrast, the roots appear along an axis of 40 cm
and grow at a greater depth. These differences may disappear after a few years,
but they play an important role during the rst few years of growth in the
plants tolerance to drought and frost. The planting material should be healthy
and have adequate branching along the central axis.
115
Area/tree
(m2)
Trees/1000 m2
33
34
35
36
44
45
46
47
48
55
56
57
58
66
67
68
77
78
79
88
89
8 10
99
9 10
10 10
9
12
15
18
16
20
24
28
32
25
30
35
40
36
42
48
49
56
63
64
72
80
81
90
100
111
83
67
55.5
62.5
50
41.5
35.5
31
40
33
28.5
25
27.5
24
21
20.5
18
16
15.5
14
12.5
12
11
10
Spacing at full
production (m)
66
64
65
66
48
85
PLANTING
For planting, trees in 3 l black plastic bags are used. Before planting, these bags
are removed. The depth of planting is a little greater that in the nursery. The
main object in planting is to protect the roots from drying or freezing and to get
them into rm contact with moist soil. Tree holes should be large enough to
accommodate the root system a hole of depth 80100 cm is adequate. Long
roots can be cut back enough to balance the root system. Topsoil should be put
around the roots and rmed in with the foot after the hole is about half-full of
116
Chapter 13
soil. The hole should then be lled the rest of the way up with loose soil. Weeds,
manure and other organic materials should be kept out of the hole at planting
time to avoid damage to the root system. In poor soils, a surface application of
N fertilizer is recommended.
The most serious mistakes made during the establishment of an olive grove
are improper irrigation and lack of weed control, which result in slow growth
rate and tree death within the rst few years of planting. During the early years
of orchard life irrigation water should be applied many times, but the quantity
of the water at each irrigation should be low to medium.
In traditional olive orchards planted on steep land, distances between trees
should be long; short planting distances in muddy soils produce high trees with
low leaf mass and very low productivity. As a general rule for the distances of
planting, the distances between two trees should be double the radius of the top
growth.
Planting distances are a function of the soil fertility, cultivar and planting
system. The ratio of main cultivar:pollinizer may be 1:1, 2:1, 4:1, 8:1, 10:1 or
18.5:1 (see Fig. 13.1). The most common shape for the olive tree is the open
centre tree. This shape allows light interception for the inner part of the top and
increases tree productivity. The distance of planting with this system in areas of
adequate precipitation is 10 10 m, in order to avoid tree crowding. However,
when precipitation is not adequate and the soil is poor, greater distances of
planting are preferable. Olive plants after planting are not pruned for 36
years, to speed up the onset of fruiting and to allow branches to develop at
intervals along the trunk. Subsequently, three to ve branches are selected
and, if the central axis is not pruned, the top of the tree attains the form of a
sphere (spherical shape).
PLANTATION SYSTEMS
Four major types of olive plantation systems are identied: traditional, semiintensive, intensive and organic (Metzidakis and Koubouris, 2006). The
classication of olive production systems on the basis of agro-ecological,
technological and socio-economic criteria is analysed below.
1. Traditional. This is characterized by low-density plantations (< 100
trees/ha) of old trees (> 50 years) planted on moderately steep slopes. This
system has low inputs, no mechanization and results in low yields not
exceeding 10002000 kg/ha and low protability.
2. Semi-intensive. The density in this system is variable, uctuating between
100 and 150 trees/ha. These orchards have productive trees, yielding, for
example, 28004000 kg/ha in Crete.
3. Intensive. Tree density is 250 trees/ha, yielding up to 5000 kg/ha and the
system may be mechanized.
117
Fig. 13.1. Diagram of planting of two olive cultivars at ratios 1:1 (a, b), 2:1 (c), 4:1
(d), 8:1 (e), 10:1 (f) and 18.5:1 (g).
, main cultivar; pollinizer.
118
Chapter 13
Each tree has a single trunk and three to ve branches forming an angle of
45. The height of the trunk is 0.30.4 m for hand-harvested trees or
1.01.2 m for orchards adapted to mechanical harvesting. In mechanically
harvested orchards the branches are more erect.
Polyconic system
This represents a modication of the vase form. Trees trained to a polyconic
vase form have a single trunk (0.81.6 m) and three to six major branches, of
varying orientation, in order to achieve optimum light and space utilization
(Cain, 1972; Jackson, 1980; Connor, 2006). Each branch is trained to a cone.
This system is widespread in Italy, although today its expansion is not
recommended, since it requires high labour input for pruning and harvesting.
Fig. 13.2. Plantation of olive trees in double rows (6 3 m) in the monocone system.
119
from the base to the top of the tree and the tree becomes conical in shape. The
main advantage of this system is that it is appropriate for mechanical
harvesting with trunk shakers (Preziosi et al., 1994). However, it incurs a high
pruning cost since the trees become tall. Trees of the Kalamon cultivar trained
in the monocone system and within a controlled irrigation regime produce
good-quality olive oil (Pallioti et al., 1999; Patumi et al., 2002).
Vasebush system
The vasebush system has a vase form and the trunk and primary branches
originate from the crown of the tree or from a very short trunk. Each plant has
three to six branches. The height of the trees is relatively small, appropriate for
hand-harvesting, and especially for table olives (Fig. 13.3). This system is not
good for mechanical harvesting.
Planting of olive orchards in this form started in the 1950s/60s and the
system continues to be expanded due to its following advantages:
120
Chapter 13
Palmette system
This system is an efcient method for other fruit trees such as pear and apple,
and has been tested in olive culture. It incurs high costs for planting, pruning
and maintenance.
Globe system
This system utilizes single-trunk trees and the shape of the canopy is round,
ellipsoidal or hemispherical. The canopy is not open, unlike the vase form, and
is occupied by secondary branches. Light penetration in this system is
inadequate and yields are generally poor (Gucci and Cantini, 2004b). At
planting the central axis is left alone and its terminal parts ll the centre of the
canopy. To avoid excessive tree height the primary branches are shortened. The
globe system is appropriate for traditional, non-irrigated orchards.
121
High-density system
High density is a recent olive-growing technique, and many workers have
reported their experiences with it (Fontanazza and Cappelletti, 1993; Dag et al.,
2006; Tous et al., 2006). The main features are listed below:
1. Increase in global food demands. The world population increase and the
improvement in living standards has led to increased food consumption.
Increase in total yield is achieved by both increasing the cultivated area and
increasing the yield per unit of area, which is feasible with high-density systems.
2. Lack of labour. Technological, nancial and social progress have, as a
consequence, forced many rural manual workers to move to the cities for better
conditions. The consequence of this is that the number of people working in
olive groves is now signicantly reduced.
3. Lifespan of the olive tree. Social and economical conditions change very
rapidly, as do the preferences of consumers. For this reason the lifespan of olive
trees today does not have the signicance it previously had.
4. The time required for the olive trees to bear fruit. It is now more important
to reduce the required time necessary for olive trees to start bearing than to
achieve long-lived trees. In the traditional olive orchards full fruit bearing was
achieved within 78 years of planting. This long period does not encourage
olive planting in fertile soils where other crops might be more productive
densely planted orchards start producing within 34 years. In traditional olive
orchards, parents plant olive trees for the benet of their children, while in the
modern, high-density systems orchards are planted for the benet of the
present generation and less so for the following.
5. Density of olive planting. The area of the orchard covered by the tree
canopy depends on the tree age, shape of tree and the tree number/unit area.
In traditional olive orchards many years are required for achievement of the
maximum coverage of the area by the treetops. In high-density planting soil
coverage is rapid, leading to optimum use of the soil.
6. Volume of the treetops. During orchard establishment the tree
arrangement and the distance of planting are based on the maximum
dimensions that the canopy allows. A smaller treetop volume secures denser
planting. The productivity per unit area of the soil covered by the tops is greater
in densely planted orchards. Hence, the correlation between the yield per unit
soil area covered and the dimension of the tops is negative.
The establishment of dense plantings does not differ from the planting of
classical olive orchards concerning the techniques used and soil preparation.
In the case of dense planting intercropping is avoided. However, in the case of
intercropping the following parameters should be taken into account:
122
Chapter 13
APPROPRIATE VARIETIES
When selecting cultivars the best ones for a high-density system are the lowvigour varieties with compact growth habit, early bearing and fructication in
clusters. Such cultivars are the clone Arbequina IRTA-118, Arbosana-643,
Ioanenca, Canetera, FS-17, Urano, Askal and Koroneiki. Of those
varieties the three most appropriate for super-high-density systems are
Arbequina, Arbosana and Koroneiki (Tous et al., 2004). These varieties grow
upright (compact), have a central leader and very few lateral branches, are selfcompatible, very precocious and produce olive oils of excellent quality. Due to
heavy crop load and the annual bearing habit their size is medium. Among
these three varieties Arbequina is the most frequently planted variety for highand super-high-density plantings in Spain. Arbequina is considered frost hardy
and well adapted to different soil types. It withstands temperatures down to
6C (22F) with no apparent problems. The fruit has an oil content of 2022%
and is quite aromatic and fruity, with very little pungency or bitterness and a
short shelf life of about 1 year. The tree is relatively small, with low vigour and
can be shaped and kept small by pruning. The inorescences are long, with
2227 owers. The fruit is small (1.51.8 g) and round in shape. At maturation
the fruit is uniformly dark black and the stone is large (1820%).
The second recommended variety is Arbosana, which matures 3 weeks
later and has 25% less vigour than Arbequina, is more sensitive to water stress
and presents more vigourous regrowth after pruning. The oil of Arbosana is
more bitter to the taste than that of Arbequina, with a fruity and pleasant
avour. This cultivar is characterized by high productivity and resistance to low
temperatures, leaf drop and olive knot (Pseudomonas savastanoi). The clone is
propagated asexually and it produces 1920% olive oil. Its leaves are small in size,
5870 mm in length and 1112 mm in width. The colour of the upper surface is
green and that of the lower surface chrysolite green. The petiole is short, 5 mm.
The fruit is early in maturation; it matures by the fourth week of October and is
elliptical in shape. Composition of the oil is: palmitic acid (C 16:0), 1.3%; esteric
acid (C 18:0), 2.0%; oleic acid (C 18:1), 74%; linoleic acid (C 18:2), 7.66%;
polyphenols K225 (bitterness), 0.24%. The stability of this oil is 13.5 h at 120C.
The third variety is the Greek cultivar Koroneiki, with a high percentage
of fruit set and very small fruit. The oil from Koroneiki is green in colour, very
fruity, medium-bitter and pungent. Its shelf life is > 2 years.
With regard to the other varieties, Canetera is more sensitive to Verticillium
dahliae than is Koroneiki. Arbosana is sensitive to peacock spot, and FS-17 to
Colletotrichum gloeosporioides.
123
SUPER-HIGH-DENSITY ORCHARDS
In the early 1990s, a new densely planted olive orchard appeared in Spain,
which was later introduced to other countries, such as Portugal, Morocco,
Tunisia, France, Chile, Argentina, California and Greece. Today, globally, there
are about 30,000 ha planted to this system, with more than 60% being in
Spain. This system allows mechanization of harvesting and signicant cost
reduction. This is accomplished by using continuous harvesting machines,
thus reducing the harvesting cost by up to 50% in comparison with the system
using trunk shakers. However, the drawbacks of this system are the high
planting cost (many plants), the need for larger-scale orchards, the need for
cultivars with medium to low vigour, the many problems of pests and diseases
like Cycloconium, the need for irrigation and the capital required for the
harvesting machines. To avoid problems with Cycloconium, drier soils are
suggested, with wider tree spacings and application of copper fungicide sprays.
Tree spacing is about 1.32.0 m and about 3.04.3 m between rows.
Modern plantations use greater tree spacing, i.e. 1.52.0 m 4.04.5m
(190220 trees/1000 m2) and rows are oriented eastwest. After 34 years a
hedgerow is formed and the system requires a central leader (monocone), with
one stake per tree. The super-high-density system requires a trellis system or at
least a stake for each tree (Iannotta and Perri, 2006; Vossen, 2006); most
orchards use a single wire for support. Young trees should be tied to the stake
about every 3040 cm and remain unpruned the rst 2 years. At the end of
the second year, the lower (1 m) branches and any suckers should be removed
to avoid interference with the central leader. After the rst harvest (third year)
the large lateral branches (> 2 cm diameter) are cut out; this allows adequate
light interception and penetration into the treetops. Also, in the summer of the
fourth year the trees should be topped to a height of 3.03.3 m; this reduces
the shading of the lower branches and adjacent rows. From the fourth and
subsequent years the trees are pruned by hand to maintain the lower part
(0.61.0 m) clean (no branches), in order to achieve good harvester frame
closure around the trunk. In order to reduce vigour the application of nitrogen
is reduced after the fourth year. At full productivity (78 years old) the
recommended amount of N applied is 5 kg/1000 m2. With regard to P and K,
standard rates are applied. The amount of water applied by drip irrigation is
about 200 m3/1000 m2. Controlled-decit irrigation is utilized after the fourth
year to reduce vigour and improve olive oil quality.
124
Chapter 13
light penetration. The likely yield overall is around 4 t/ha, which is considered
adequate if we take into account that the orchard does not have alternate
bearing and the cost of harvesting is very low.
14
PROPAGATION OF OLIVE TREES
INTRODUCTION
The olive tree, until the second half of the 19th century, had been propagated
only asexually by using large cuttings, ovules or rooted suckers. Later, towards
the end of that century, indirect methods of multiplication such as graftingon seedlings were preferred in order to face the increasing demand for
specimens for new plantings. If we consider the published papers over recent
decades, we nd that the most studied technique by far has been propagation
by cuttings. Furthermore, interest in grafting and propagation by seed
continues. Therefore, it is worthwhile studying all aspects of olive propagation,
from traditional systems to in vitro propagation and other more advanced
biotechnologies (Fabbri, 2006).
PROPAGATION BY SEED
Olives can be propagated very easily. The morphology of olive stones of nine
olive cultivars is given in Fig. 14.1. There are a number of ways of propagating
olive plants (Hartmann et al., 2001; Fabbri et al., 2004). Olive plants may be
grown from seed, but a true cultivar will not be obtained from seed
propagation. Olive seedlings are sometimes used as rootstocks to which some
known cultivars are grafted. Seeds are cracked or treated with sulphuric acid
as an aid to germination because the pits are very hard. Seed propagation aims
at producing seedlings necessary for rootstocks. It is very simple and requires
neither specic equipment nor experience. However, propagation by seed
produces seedlings and grafted plants variable in vigour and size. Seedlings
start fruiting after 1215 years and they have a deep root system, while olive
trees from asexual propagation have a shallow root system and start fruiting
after only 35 years.
125
126
Chapter 14
Fig. 14.1. Olive stones from nine cultivars after separation from the fruit pulp and
cleaning.
127
128
Chapter 14
rows and 5060 cm within rows. The seedlings are grafted into these sites
after 2 years. Also, for chemical treatment, 5% w/v of sodium hydroxide
(NaOH) could be used. Stones are immersed in 5% NaOH for 24 h, under
continuous stirring.
3. Water soaking of kernels for a period of 20 days. The water should be
replaced every 3 days.
4. Seed stratication in a sand:perlite (1:1) mixture in a cold room or outdoors
during winter.
PROPAGATION BY CUTTINGS
When propagating by cuttings the formation of adventitious roots is very
important; these are roots arising from any plant part other than the root and
its branches. Adventitious roots are distinguished by two types: preformed roots
and wound roots. Preformed roots develop on a stem attached to the mother
plant, while wound roots appear after cuttings are prepared. The following
changes take place: (i) initially, the wound surface is covered with suberin,
which protects the wound from desiccation; (ii) subsequently, some living cells
divide and produce callus, while cells close to the vascular cambium and
phloem start to produce adventitious roots (Ozkaya et al., 1997). Callus is an
129
irregular mass of parenchymal cells, which are produced from young cells at
the base of the cutting. The rst roots frequently appear through the callus.
Callus formation is a prerequisite of adventitious root formation. However, in
many species callus formation is independent of rooting. In the case of the olive,
where layers of secondary xylem and phloem are present, adventitious roots
arise from the living parenchymal cells and also from other tissues such as
cambium, phloem and vascular rays. In some cultivars that are difcult to
root, the presence of a sclerenchymatous ring between the phloem and cortex,
outside the area of origin of adventitious roots, produces an anatomical barrier
to rooting.
In rooting of stem cuttings it is important to place the cuttings in the
rooting medium in the correct polarity. Stem cuttings form shoots at the distal
end (close to the shoot tip) and roots at the proximal end (close to the crown of
the plant). When we invert the position of cuttings (upside down) this does not
alter this tendency.
Water stress.
Light (intensity, quality and duration).
Rooting substrate.
Temperature.
Juvenility
In the olive the use of juvenile leafy cuttings taken from the crown of the trunk
root much more readily than those taken from the top of the tree (Porlingis and
Therios, 1976). Experiments with leafy cuttings (cv. Chondrolia Chalkidikis)
indicate that the ability of cuttings to root decreases with increasing height above
130
Chapter 14
the crown of the tree, i.e. by increasing the transformation from juvenile to
mature characteristics. Juvenile olive shoots are characterized by their short leaf
length and greater width, dark green leaves, change in phyllotaxy (two to three
leaves per node instead of two). Some procedures, such as severe pruning, provide
material with signicant rooting potential, since this prevents the transformation
from the juvenile to the adult form. The greater ability of juvenile olive cuttings to
root may be ascribed to increased phenol concentration in comparison with that
in mature plant material. Another possible reason is the greater concentration of
rooting inhibitors that accompanies ageing.
For better results it is necessary to maintain the mother plantings. These
plantings are maintained in the juvenile phase by spraying with growth
regulators such as GA3, cytokinin, TIBA or Alar. In olives, juvenile shoots are
obtained from sphaeroblasts, which are overgrowths on those stems with
meristematic tissues. Another method is to use mount-layering (stool beds) to
root those cultivars considered difcult to root.
131
The selection of season when preparing leafy cuttings is very important for
optimum rooting. Juvenile cuttings give optimum rooting irrespective of the time of
collection, while mature cuttings rooting extremely well under mist can be obtained
during late spring and summer. During winter, rooting is signicantly poorer.
Environmental conditions
High air temperatures during rooting increase water loss from the leaves. The
ideal air temperatures for rooting are 2527C during daytime and 15C at
night. Light exerts a strong inuence on rooting (duration, intensity, quality).
Many reports indicate that a relatively low light intensity given to both stock
plants and cuttings increases the percentage of rooting. This is in accordance
with the etiolation of stock plants or the base of shoots (Mencuccini, 2003),
which has a remarkable action in adventitious root formation, as occurs in the
method of propagation by mound layering. Furthermore, the photoperiod applied
to mother plants has a signicant inuence on rooting. A long photoperiod
increases carbohydrate accumulation and therefore rooting. Concerning light
quality, the light colour affects rooting. However, the active spectrum depends
on the species; in some it is orangered, in others blue.
132
Chapter 14
The rooting substrate supports the cuttings and provides moisture and
oxygen at the base of the cuttings. The rooting substrate affects rooting
percentage and root characteristics due to its porosity, pH and the level of the
nutrients it contains. Rooting media with great porosity, such as sand or
perlite, give an unbranched root system, while very acid or very alkaline media
signicantly reduce rooting. Furthermore, the nutrients that the substrate
contains inuence rooting.
Types of cuttings
In olives propagation by cuttings is divided into the following three categories:
hardwood, semi-hardwood leafy and softwood (Khabou and Trigui, 1999). Of
these, the most important in olive propagation is the semi-hardwood leafy, and
less so hardwood.
Hardwood
These derive from mature hardwood, a method cheap and easy for
propagation. Today, in various parts of Greece these cuttings are also termed
grotharia. The necessary stock material is collected during pruning and derives
from healthy, vigourous and typical specimens of the cultivar trees. The
cuttings are prepared at the end of JanuaryFebruary from shoots 34 years
old and 2.55.0 cm in diameter. The shoots are divided into segments, each of
30 cm, and the leaves are removed. The cuttings are planted with their
physiological base downwards (true polarity). The base of the cutting is soaked
for 24 h in a solution containing 13 ppm IBA. Subsequently, the cuttings are
covered with moist material for 30 days at 1321C. During this period root
initials develop and, after 30 days, the cuttings are planted in the nursery, with
only 34 cm of their structure above the soil.
Leafy
Various factors affect rooting of leafy cuttings, such as: (i) the cultivar (Fouad et
al., 1990); (ii) the carbohydrate level (Rio et al., 1991; Ozkaya and Celik,
1999); (iii) hydrogen peroxide (H2O2) (Sebastiani et al., 2002a; Sebastiani and
Tognetti, 2004); (iv) endogenous auxins (Gaspar et al., 1994); (v) polyamines
(Rugini et al., 1992, 1997); (vi) free amino acids (Sarmiento et al., 1990); (vii)
light quality (Morini et al., 1990); (viii) hormones (Fernandes Serrano et al.,
2002); and (ix) other factors (Gaspar et al., 1997).
For propagation by leafy cuttings, two systems contribute signicantly, the
mist and the fog systems (Fouad et al., 1990). In the case of mist propagation,
cuttings are sprayed with water by an automatic system to maintain a lm of
water on the leaves, which reduces transpiration and lowers air and leaf
temperature. The resultant temperature decrease is by between 5.5 and 8.5C,
in comparison with leaves not sprayed under mist. With mist propagation,
133
134
Chapter 14
1. Perlite is widely used as a rooting medium for leafy cuttings under mist, due
to its high porosity. It is used mostly in combination, at various proportions,
with peat moss.
2. Peat moss is combined with perlite in order to increase the water-holding
capacity of the mixture. The proportions of perlite:peat are either 1:1, 2:1 or
1:3.
3. Vermiculite is used as a mixture of equal parts of vermiculite and perlite.
This combination gives good results, achieving high porosity and adequate
moisture-holding capacity and cation exchange capacity.
The properties of perlite and vermiculite are given in Table 14.1.
The advantages of perlite include the following:
135
Fig. 14.4. Abundant root growth of leafy cuttings planted in plastic holder.
Table 14.1. The properties of perlite and vermiculite (from Therios, 2005a).
Characteristic
Perlite
Vermiculite
Inorganic material
pH
Sterilized material
6.57.5
When fresh it is sterilized
for re-use
Light; safe for staff
None
White
Excellent
Easily available
nutrients
136
Chapter 14
137
Table 14.2. Rooting percentages of various cultivars under mist propagation (from
Therios, 2005b).
Variety
Greek varieties
Kalamon
Chondrolia Chalkidikis
mature
juvenile
Amphissis
Ladolia Patron
Kothreiki
Other varieties
Ascolana
Leccino
Coratina
Frantoio
Sevillana
Manzanillo
Pendolino
Mission
Rooting
success (%)
Date of
planting
IBA concentration
(ppm)
26 May
4000/5 s
60.6
95
68.1
68.1
93.7
26 May
26 May
26 May
26 May
26May
4000/5 s
4000/5 s
4000/5 s
4000/5 s
4000/5 s
99
93
93
96
85
80
67
66
15 July
26 July
26 July
26 July
15 May
15 July
10 February
15 July
4000/5 s
5000/5 s
2500/5 s
5000/5 s
4000/5 s
4000/5 s
100/24 h
4000/5 s
520
PROPAGATION BY SPHAEROBLASTS
Sphaeroblasts are ovular overgrowths of parenchymatic tissue located in the
tree crown or in old wood in the upper part of the tree. They contain latent buds
and are separated, cleaned from the wood and are divided into sections. They
are cut from the tree during the autumn and are subsequently stratied, in a
cool and dark room, into moist sand until March, and afterwards planted in the
nursery. The planting distances in the nursery are 3090 cm from each other
within rows. The sphaeroblasts are planted with their spherical part upwards
and are covered with soil. After 1.53 months the sphaeroblasts are sprouting
and remain in the nursery for 1 year.
PROPAGATION BY SUCKERS
These develop at the crown of the tree and their origin is from sphaeroblasts.
Suckers are taken from the tree when they have acquired an adequate root
system. In order to speed the rooting process the base of the tree is covered with
a thin layer of soil, encouraging root initiation. The rooted suckers are removed
in the spring from the mother plant, with some old wood, and planted in the
138
Chapter 14
139
between olive cultivars and wild olive (O. sativa or oleaster). However,
incompatibility may occur when the olive is grafted on to other genera of
Oleaceae, such as Ligustrum, Forsythia, Syringa, etc., and plants will die after a
short period.
The graft union is completed by cells that develop after grafting. These cells
in contact differentiate into a vascular cambium producing xylem and phloem
elements and a complete vascular continuity by day 60.
A number of studies have been made on the healing of graft unions. The
usual sequence of events in the healing of a graft union is as follows:
1. Freshly cut scion tissue capable of meristematic activity is brought into
contact with cut stock in such a way that the cambial regions of both are in
close proximity. The temperature and relative humidity should be such as to
promote growth activity.
2. The outer layers of the cambial zone of both scion and rootstock produce
parenchymal cells called callus tissue.
3. Some cells of the callus differentiate into new cambium cells.
4. The new cambium cells produce xylem towards the inside and phloem
towards the outside, and establish a vascular connection between the scion
and stock, a prerequisite of efcient graft union. It should be stated that, in the
graft union, there is no intermingling of cell contents.
140
Chapter 14
Polarity in grafting
It is essential that there is proper polarity in the graft union. In grafting, when
two stem pieces are put together the morphologically proximal end of the scion
should be inserted into the morphologically distal end of the rootstock.
However, in grafting a stem piece (scion) on a piece of root, as in the case of root
grafting, the proximal end of the scion should be inserted into the proximal end
of the root piece.
Methods of grafting
Cleft grafting
This method is adapted to topworking trees either in the trunk of a small tree or
in the scaffold branches of a larger tree (Troncoso et al., 1999). In topworking of
olive trees, this should be limited to branches about 2.510.0 cm in diameter.
Cleft grafting is successful if it is carried out in early spring. The scions are made
141
142
Chapter 14
Splice grafting
This is the same as whip grafting, with the exception that the cut is not made in
the stock and scion.
Wedge grafting
This can be performed in late winter or early spring. With a sharp knife a Vwedge is made in the stock, 5 cm long. With a screwdriver the V-shaped chip is
removed and in the space created the scion is inserted. The scion is 1013 cm
long and 1012 mm thick, with two pairs of buds and four leaves. After the
scions are put in place in such a way that the cambiums are in contact, the cut
surfaces are waxed.
Bridge grafting
This is used when the trunk has been injured by agricultural machinery,
winter damage or disease; in the case of bark damage, if the damage is extensive
the tree will die. This type of grafting is conducted early in spring, i.e. the period
when the bark is slipping. The damaged bark is removed down to the level of
healthy tissue. Cuts are made in the bark at both top and bottom of the wound
and scions are inserted into each slot. The scions are xed in place by nails, and
the unions at top and bottom are covered with grafting wax.
T-budding (shield budding)
T-budding is the most common method of budding in nurseries. The rootstock
has a diameter of 625 mm and should be actively growing in order for the
bark to separate easily from the wood. In the rootstock, horizontal and vertical
cuts of 2.53.0 cm are made. The scion consists of a shield of bark containing
one bud. The shield of bark is inserted by pushing it downward under the two
aps of bark, and the bud union is tightly tied with wrapping material or plastic
tape. Two methods of preparing the shield are used; the rst one contains wood
and the second one does not.
Patch budding
In this method, a rectangular patch of bark is removed from the rootstock and
in its place is placed a patch of the scion bark of the same dimensions (Krueger
et al., 2004). This method is technically more difcult than T-budding and is
used in trees with thick bark, like olives. Patch budding requires less scion
wood, it is fast and can be conducted over a longer period. Patch budding
requires that both scion and rootstock have good cambial activity, and
therefore bark that slips. The time for patch budding extends from April to
September, and this period is longer for wood of smaller diameter. The scion
wood consists of vigourous 12-year-old shoots with the diameter of a pencil or
greater. The leaves from the scion are removed and the scions are used
143
144
Chapter 14
Stages of micropropagation
The micropropagation process includes the following stages:
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
145
Concentration (mg/l)
1100
412
600
440
500
1500
340
27.8
37.5
22.3
12.4
14.3
0.25
0.25
0.025
0.83
100
0.5
0.5
5.0
0.05
0.5
2
2194
146
Chapter 14
For satisfactory growth, olives require both NO3 and NH4+, inorganic
nitrogen sources and glutamine. The Ca:N ratio is very important; a ratio of
about 1:11 is used in the OM. The OM contains macronutrients, micronutrients, vitamins and amino acids. As a carbon source, sucrose or mannitol
is used. Mannitol has been proved more effective for olive shoot proliferation
at a concentration of 30 g/l; agar concentration is 0.50.8%. The pH of
the medium is adjusted to 5.75.8 before autoclaving at 121C for 20 min.
The OM also contains growth regulators. The best cytokinin for olive shoot
proliferation is zeatin, at concentrations from 0.5 to 4.0 mg/l, depending on
the cultivar. Other cytokinins such as 6-(,-dimethylallylamino)-purine (2iP)
or BA (6-benzyladenine) are not very effective for olive shoot proliferation,
since very short and thin shoots tend to be produced. Other cytokinin-like
substances such as thidiazuron (TDZ) may be included in the substrate. For
olive shoot proliferation glass jars of 500 cm3 are used. These jars are closed
with glass lids and wrapped in plastic membrane. In each jar, 100 ml of agar
medium is added and ten to 20 explants. The jars are maintained in the growth
room at 2325C, 16 h of photoperiod and 50 mol/m2/s of PAR supplied by
cool white or day light uorescent lamps. Every 34 weeks the explants are
transferred to a fresh substrate.
Shoot elongation
The shoots produced by proliferation are very short and not yet ready for the
rooting stage. Elongation of short shoots is promoted by transferring the
explants to another medium, similar to the previous but containing GA3
(2040 mg/l). When the plantlets obtain an appropriate length (four to ve
nodes) they are ready for the rooting stage. The media used for proliferation
and rooting depend on the cultivar, and Table 14.4 gives the appropriate media
for each cultivar as reported in the literature.
Rooting of explants
Rooting is achieved on the same shoot proliferation medium by decreasing the
macro-element concentration to one-third or one-quarter of the initial.
Sucrose was added at 2% concentration, plus 1 mg/l IBA or NAA. Rooting can
be improved by maintaining the base of the shoots in darkness or by adding
putrescine (1 mM) plus auxin to the rooting substrate. Auxin could also be
applied by dipping the basal part of micro-cuttings in an IBA solution
(100200 ppm, for 10 s) and afterwards planting in auxin-free media. Rooting
could also be achieved with the Agrobacterium rhizogenes strain NCP BB 1855
by wounding the shoot base with a blade contaminated by the bacteria.
Acclimatization of plantlets
Plantlets are removed from the asks under the laminar air ow and their root
system is washed to remove the gel, then dipped in a fungicide solution.
147
Proliferation medium
Rooting medium
OM (zeatin)
OM (IBA or NAA)
50% MS (zeatin + IBA + GA3)
50% Knop/Heller (NAA)
OM (zeatin + 2iP)
BN (NAA or IBA)
50% OM (zeatin)
50% OM (NAA/IBA + Putr)
mOM (zeatin + 2iP)
50% MS (NAA)
WPM (BAP + IBA + GA3)
WPM (IBA)
OM (zeatin or 2iP)
(NAA or IBA)
mMS(zeatin or TIBA)
mMS (IBA-dip method)
mOM (zeatin)
mOM (NAA)
Stage
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Rooting
Putr, the polyamine putrescine; mOM, modied Olive Medium; OM, Olive Medium
formulation; WPM, Woody Plant Medium
Somatic embryogenesis
Plant regeneration via organogenesis and somatic embryogenesis in the olive is
a useful tool for breeding and somaclonal selection (Rugini and Tarini, 1986;
Orinos and Mitrakos, 1991; Leva et al., 1995, 2006; Rugini, 1995; Lambardi
et al., 1999). Regeneration via somatic embryogenesis has been reported using
cotyledonary tissues (Orinos and Mitrakos, 1991; Leva et al., 1995), immature
zygotic embryos (Leva et al., 1995; Garcia et al., 2002) and immature embryo
callus (Orinos and Mitrakos, 1991) in different olive cultivars.
Of the various explant sources (leaf blades, leaf petioles, hypocotyls of
germinated seeds and roots of germinated seeds) roots gave the highest callus
induction. Somatic embryogenesis was induced from root callus on
embryogenesis induction medium containing 5.0 M 2,4-D, 0.5 M kinetin
and 5.0 M NAA, in darkness. Embryo regeneration was achieved by
transferring the callus to a medium containing varying concentrations (0, 5.0,
148
Chapter 14
10.0 and 15.0 M) of 2iP, BA, thidiazuron (TDZ) and kinetin. Sucrose evoked
higher embryogenesis than either fructose or glucose. Sorbitol and mannitol
reduced embryogenesis. Somatic embryos were rooted by transferring them to
a hormone-free medium.
Immature embryos possess a high embryogenetic capability, as shown in
Frantoio and other cultivars (Rugini, 1988). Furthermore, 75-day-old
embryos were able to exhibit embryogenesis.
The study of the origin of somatic embryos (SEs) is of great importance
both for the possible appearance of somaclonal variations and for their
utilization in genetic engineering techniques.
Somatic embryogenesis occurs either indirectly from callus or directly from
cells of organized tissues. Morphogenetic masses develop from both mature
tissues (petioles) and originated primary embryos. By subculturing primary
embryos, highly efcient continuous cycles of direct secondary embryogenesis
were obtained. Histological observations showed early evidence of embryonic
primordia as densely stained groups of ve or more meristematic cells, located
mainly in the epidermal layer of the primary embryos. These primordia evolved
into globular embryos that grew to the cotyledonary stage, through the heartshaped and the torpedo-shaped stages.
Other micropropagation techniques for the olive are described below.
149
2. The use of self-breaking beds. Alginate beds obtained after hardening are
rinsed thoroughly with tap water and then immersed in a monovalent cation
solution followed by another rinsing with running tap water. After sowing in
moist condition, such gel beds gradually swell, become brittle and nally split
spontaneously, thus helping avoid oxygen deciency.
3. Pharmaceutical-type capsules appear to be an efcient coating system for
the production of synthetic seeds, allowing germination and subsequent
development of plantlets. The capsule is lled with 500 l of germination
medium containing gelrite, cotton or vermiculite. Finally, a torpedo-shaped SE
is placed on the internal medium without special sterilization. The capsule is
closed with a cap. Pharmaceutical-type capsules provide the nutritional
requirements of germinating somatic embryos by limiting sugar loss during
planting and germination.
Protoplast culture
The protoplasts isolated from olive organs or tissues can regenerate cell walls and
divide and form colonies and cells, followed by plant regeneration under proper
culture conditions (Adiri, 1975; Mencuccini, 1991; Perri et al., 1994a,b).
The regeneration process from protoplast to plant can be divided into
several phases: (i) cell wall regeneration; (ii) initiation of sustained divisions;
(iii) cell colony and callus formation; and (iv) plant regeneration from these
tissues. Viable protoplasts from seedlings (hypocotyls, cotyledons or cultivarmicropropagated leaves) were obtained by 1.5% Driselase after incubation
with 0.6 mM mannitol and 500 mg/l each of calcium chloride (CaCl2)2H2O
and potassium chloride (KCl). Some divisions were recorded in a BN (a nutrient
medium), which was supplemented with NAA, 2,4-D and zeatin riboside
(Rugini, 1986). Furthermore, Caas et al. (1987) separated protoplasts from
cotyledons by addition of 0.03 mM ornithine.
Growth regulator is the most critical medium component for protoplast
culture. In order to induce sustained divisions, an auxin-type growth regulator
and a cytokinin are generally required. The type and concentration of the
growth regulators vary with variety. In addition, plant hormones have some
effect on protoplast culture. In many cases glucose seems to be a better carbon
source and osmoticum (a controller of water movement, or osmosis) than
other sugars. The most frequently used techniques are: liquid culture, liquid
over agar (or agarose) culture and protoplast-embedded method.
Cryopreservation
Cryogenic methods have been applied to olives for long-term conservation of
germplasm (Lambardi et al., 2002). A 30% survival (Martinez et al., 1999) was
150
Chapter 14
observed for Arbequina shoot tips after their desiccation to 30% moisture
content and direct immersion in liquid nitrogen (196C), followed by a period
at room temperature. The shoot tips that survived remained green and started
to grow after 4 weeks. Furthermore, Canino cultures, with SEs at various
stages of development, can be cryopreserved by vitrication (Lambardi et al.,
2002), with a high percentage of the cryopreserved cultures surviving. These
cultures had a good proliferation rate and morphogenetic potential.
15
IRRIGATION OF THE OLIVE
INTRODUCTION
Water is fundamental for the physiological functions of plant cells and organs,
and it also represents a signicant proportion of the protoplast. Water
represents 8590% of the weight of all living tissues. When the water content
of cells is reduced, physiological activity is reduced and plants begin to wither.
Subsequently, and following resumption of water supplies, the plant returns to
its initial physiological condition. The water content of the various parts of
olive trees is given in Table 15.1.
The water content of olive plants varies, due either to water absorption via
the roots or from water loss by transpiration. The water required for the
physiological functioning of plants is less than 5% of the total quantity of water
absorbed: most of the absorbed water is lost in the form of transpiration. The role
of transpiration is in maintaining the thermal balance of plants, since
transpiration absorbs heat and cools the plant. The transpiration quotient is the
amount of absorbed water (l) to produce 1 kg of dry matter. Factors affecting
water consumption are the cultivar, the relative humidity, wind, temperature
and sunshine. Soil factors, such as fertilization, affect the transpiration rate.
Trees grown in fertile soils require less water. The water needs of olive trees in
areas with a precipitation of 450650 mm/year are completely fullled. When
precipitation is > 650 mm/year, olives can be replaced by other, more efcient,
crops. In contrast, when precipitation is < 450 mm/year, irrigation is necessary.
Table 15.1. The percentages of water, organic matter and ash of olive wood, leaf
and fruit.
Component
Water
Organic matter
Ash
Wood
Leaf
Fruit
32
66
2
54
43
3
53
45
2
151
152
Chapter 15
WATER QUALITY
Rainfall is traditionally the main water supply in many areas of the world in arid
and semi-arid regions. In these areas, irrigation from underground sources
contains excess salts, affecting plant growth (Klein et al., 1994). Furthermore,
the quality of surface water is sometimes compromised by its mixing with poorquality drainage water. A serious problem nowadays is the over-pumping of
groundwater, which lowers the water table and leads to the entrance into
aquifers of sea water. The salt content of irrigation water is usually expressed in
terms of conductivity (Ecw); the units are dS/m at 25C and measurements are
conducted by using conductivity meters. Furthermore, the water quality for
irrigation and the evaporation from the soil surface lead to salt accumulation in
the root zone. The consequence of this is that the Ec of the soil solution is
signicantly higher than that of the irrigation water. The reduced yields in olives
due to salinity can be predicted when the Ec of a soil solution reaches
approximately 36 dS/m. The suitability of irrigation water depends on the total
amount and the type of salts present. Sodium, chloride and boron ions at high
concentrations are toxic. The suitability of irrigation water also depends on the
concentrations of Na, Ca and Mg (me/l), which are used to determine the specic
absorption rate with sodium adsorption ratio (SAR), according to the equation:
SAR = (Na)/(Ca + Mg)/2
153
WATER REQUIREMENTS
Most of the global olive grove hectareage is not irrigated. Furthermore, in areas
where oil or table olive cultivars are under irrigation the water supply is scarce.
However, the new super-high-density plantings require irrigation, and efcient
water use is very important. The water needs of olives are a function of
Table 15.2. Characteristics of water quality for irrigation (from Ayers and Westcot,
1985).
Degree of restriction on use
Irrigation problem
Measurement
None
Slight to
moderate
Severe
Salinity
Ecw (dS/m)
TDs (mg/l)
Ecw (dS/m)
SAR (03)
SAR (36)
SAR (612)
SAR (1220)
SAR (2040)
< 0.7
< 450
< 0.5
> 0.7
> 1.2
> 1.9
> 2.9
> 5.0
0.73.0
4502000
< 0.5
0.70.2
1.20.3
1.90.5
2.91.3
5.02.9
> 3.0
> 2000
< 0.2
< 0.2
< 0.3
< 0.5
< 1.3
< 2.9
SAR
<3
39
>9
meq/l
<3
>3
meq/l
<4
410
> 10
meq/l
mg/l
<3
< 0.7
>3
0.73.0
> 3.0
mg/l
mg/l
Normal range
6.58.4
<5
< 1.5
530
1.58.5
> 30
> 8.5
Inltration
154
Chapter 15
evaporation (E) of water from the orchard soil and the canopy transpiration
(T). Hence, the required water is the sum of these two and is named
evapotranspiration (ET) (Testi et al., 2006). Factors affecting water use are:
solar radiation, temperature, humidity and wind speed. From the total
precipitation only 5060% is stored in the soil, while the rest is subject to
evaporation. The intensity and duration of precipitation determines the
percentage of water stored in the soil, and the relationship between them is
negative.
The rate of water evaporation from the soil surface is high when the soil is
irrigated and decreases as the soil dries out. Therefore, the greater the orchard
area that is wetted the greater the ET is. The modern trend in irrigation is
localized, such as drip irrigation. Planting cover crops increases ET, and their
use is avoided in areas with scarce irrigation water due to the high cost.
Transpiration is affected by various factors, such as total leaf area, solar
radiation intensity and duration, wind speed, etc. The total leaf area is affected
by the size of the tree canopy, the density of planting and the size and health of
leaves. The percentage of the orchard soil shaded by the olive trees correlates
well with the ET.
For ET estimation two methods are used (Testi et al., 2006). The rst of
these measures water loss from a round metal pan 1.2 m in diameter and
25 cm in depth. The pan is placed in an irrigated area of cut grass. Every day
the water loss from the pan is measured, the values being known as Epan.
These values are measured at meteorological stations. In the second method,
the modied Penman equation is used, which is based on measurements of solar
radiation, temperature, relative humidity, wind speed and direction. The values
calculated give an estimation of water use for a close-cut grass referred as ETo.
This method gives a better estimation of water use than Epan. However, these
values are only an estimation, and research is necessary in order to determine
the actual water requirements of various crops (ETc). The relationship between
ETo and ETc is constant, and the ratio ETc:ETo is used to develop crop
coefcients (Kc) (Michelakis et al., 1994; Orgaz et al., 2006). For olives in
California, USA, a Kc of < 0.65 leads to water stress of mature olive trees; a
value of 0.75 produces the best results and veries efcient water use (see
Table 15.3).
A new crop coefcient, Kc = Etc/ETo, can be calculated as the sum of three
components: tree transpiration (Kp), evaporation from the soil (Ksl) and
evaporation from the areas wetted by the emitters (Ks2) (Orgaz et al., 2006;
Testi et al., 2006). With the method of Orgaz et al. (2006) the calculation of the
needed irrigation amount (IA) is improved since various factors, such as soil,
plant and weather, are taken into account (Fernndez, 2006). The K
coefcients, as calculated by Orgaz et al. (2006), are presented in Table 15.4.
The ETo ranges between 1000 and 1400 mm/year for an average rainfall
in the Mediterranean region, equal to 500 mm/year, and for mature olive trees
under localized irrigation the ETc is 600700 m3/1000 m2, so 300400
155
Table 15.3. Average water requirements for clean-cultivated olive orchards in the
Sacramento area, California (from Beede and Goldhamer, 1994).
Month
January
February
March
April
May
June
July
August
September
October
November
December
Total
ETo (mm/month)
Kc
30.4
40.6
73.7
116.8
154.9
185.4
216.0
185.4
137.1
91.4
40.6
25.4
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
0.75
ETc (mm/month)
22.86
30.48
53.34
86.36
116.84
139.70
162.56
139.70
121.14
68.58
25.40
29.32
1297.1
Table 15.4. Water requirements of an olive orchard with mature Picual trees
planted at 10 m 10 m in southern Spain (from Orgaz and Pastor, 2005).
Month
January
February
March
April
May
June
July
August
September
October
November
December
Kp
KS1
KS2
Kc
ETo
(mm/month)
ETc
(mm/month)
0.18
0.19
0.20
0.23
0.27
0.32
0.32
0.31
0.28
0.31
0.28
0.18
0.67
0.65
0.40
0.25
0.13
0.05
0.04
0.05
0.18
0.38
0.68
0.72
0.00
0.00
0.00
0.04
0.03
0.03
0.03
0.03
0.03
0.04
0.00
0.00
0.85
0.84
0.60
0.51
0.43
0.40
0.39
0.38
0.49
0.73
0.96
0.90
33.2
45.9
87.1
110.4
154.1
169.5
210.8
182.3
122.1
80.6
42.6
29.6
28.2
38.6
52.4
56.8
66.8
67.3
81.3
70.1
59.9
58.8
40.9
26.9
Kp, coefcient related to tree transpiration; KS1, coefcient related to soil evaporation;
KS2, coefcient related to evaporation from the soil surface wetted by the emitters;
Kc, crop coefcient; ETo, potential evapotranspiration; ETc, actual water requirement.
m3/1000 m2 must be applied by irrigation. These values are not applied for
super-high-density (SHD) plantings or for young olive trees. According to
Grattan et al. (2006), with regard to SHD plantings of Arbequina I-18 (1.5 m
3.9 m), the ETc was 600 m3/1000 m2, while the required irrigation was 75%
of ETc, i.e. 450 m3/1000 m2.
156
Chapter 15
157
al., 1996). However, environmental factors affect H2O and CO2 exchange to
varying degrees, causing variations in water use efciency. Water stress limits
stomatal conductance, photosynthesis, non-stomatal factors and assimilation
(see Figs 15.115.4). Sap ow patterns showed a steep diurnal morning
increase and a pronounced seasonal reduction throughout summer. The daily
alterations in stomatal conductance in olive leaves (cm/s) are presented in
Fig. 15.1. Reduction in soil water from 100% of evapotranspiration to 66%,
and afterwards to 33%, signicantly reduced stomatal conductance. The
maximum stomatal opening was recorded at 09.00 h and the minimum at
15.00. With regard to water potential, this was reduced (more negative values)
at 12.00 h, but later was increased due to stomatal closing (see Fig. 15.2).
Measurement of Pn in the cultivars Koroneiki and Mastoides indicated
that the maximum photosynthetic rate (Pn) was 1214 mol/m2/s (see Fig.
15.3). Furthermore, when a decrease in water potential value () was
observed, the pressure potential was reduced (see Fig. 15.4) in those cultivars.
The changes in values in eight olive cultivars indicate varying
osmoregulatory capacity. Cultivars whose value decreases rapidly under salt
stress conditions such as Chondrolia Chalkidikis, Manzanillo and
Amygdalolia are able to absorb water under adverse environmental
conditions and to adjust osmotically fairly rapidly; therefore, these cultivars
suffer less. In contrast, cultivars such as Megaritiki and Amphissis, with a
constant leaf value as the of the soil solution is reduced, suffer more under
conditions of increased salinity (see Table 15.5). The olive tree is characterized
by its ability to adapt to water-poor environments (Connor, 2005).
Fig. 15.1. Diurnal changes in stomatal conductance (22 September) in the leaves of
the cultivar Koroneiki as a function of the irrigation regime (100, 66 and 33% of
evapotranspiration).
158
Chapter 15
Fig. 15.2. Diurnal changes in water potential in the leaves of the cultivar Koroneiki
as a function of the irrigation regime (100, 66 and 33% of evapotranspiration).
Fig. 15.3. The relationship between photosynthetic rate (Pn) and stomatal
conductance in the cultivars Mastoides and Koroneiki (data from an experiment
with various levels of water application).
The hydraulic resistance of the whole tree, estimated from sap ow and leaf
water potential, revealed changes in the liquid/water path from soil to leaves. Stem
and root hydraulic conductivity in the olive can be reduced under drought stress
due to cavitation. The maximum value of stomatal conductance was recorded
early in the morning and decreased throughout the day, with the lowest values in
159
Fig. 15.4. The relationship between pressure potential (p) and water potential ()
in the cultivars, Mastoides and Koroneiki (data from an experiment with various
levels of water application).
Table 15.5. The osmoregulatory capacity of eight selected Greek olive cultivars
(from Therios, unpublished data).
Cultivar
Chondrolia Chalkidikis
Manzanillo
Amygdalolio
Frantoio
Adramyttini
Megaritiki
Amphissis
Koroneiki
160
Chapter 15
161
Measuring sap ow
Transpiration and water uptake by the roots could be estimated from sap ow
measurements (Fernndez et al., 1999, 2001; Giorio and dAndria, 2002;
Tognetti et al., 2004).
Infrared thermography
With this method we can determine the appropriate time for irrigation, but not
the required amount of water. This technique is expensive, requires image
analysis with the appropriate software but is suitable for use in hot and dry
conditions. Furthermore, we can determine variability within the orchard due
to both soil and tree conditions.
162
Chapter 15
Table 15.6. The critical periods of water stress for olives, and their effects.
Growth stage
Shoot growth
First stage of fruit growth
Cell division
Cell enlargement
(3rd stage of fruit growth)
evapotranspiration rate. When drip irrigation is applied, two emitters per tree
should be used and, in the case of mini-sprayers, these are positioned upside
down to reduce the wetted radius. Nitrogen application through the irrigation
system increases the vegetative growth of young trees.
As trees grow, their root system grows too, and a wider area of the olive
grove has to be irrigated and the water quantity increased. This can be
accomplished by placing the mini-sprayers in an upright position and, in the
case of drip irrigation, by adding another drip laterally.
163
Decit irrigation
Due to irrigation water scarcity, growers must apply less water, i.e. follow a
decit irrigation approach that provides less than the olive tree needs, in such a
164
Chapter 15
165
content and stability; since polyphenols are water soluble the water content of
the fruit can inuence the amount of polyphenols remaining in the oil after
processing. Increasing the degree of irrigation may affect oil avour, becoming
bland. Minimally to moderately irrigated trees produce oils that are fruitier,
with a balanced ratio of bitterness and pungency (see Table 15.7).
If a producer wants to increase the intensity of bitterness and pungency
they should limit water application. An irrigation system supplying 40% of ETc
gives good oil extractability and maintains excellent oil chemical parameters.
Imax
D1
D2
220.6
2.4
11.4
234.4
359.6
0.32
156.70
4.28
5.26
13.80
1.12
0.07
0.13
3.40
77.0
2.99
0.61
0.39
0.30
0.17
230.2
1.4
10.6
242.2
447.0
0.29
149.90
3.74
7.96
13.11
1.16
0.05
0.11
3.25
77.9
2.98
0.64
0.43
0.27
0.09
225.0
2.2
11.2
238.4
542.6
0.37
169.98
4.40
4.44
12.65
1.04
0.07
0.11
3.31
78.7
2.74
0.59
0.40
0.28
0.13
R
210.0
2.4
8.6
221.0
1183.8
0.57
228.49
5.24
5.64
11.36
1.03
0.06
0.09
3.48
79.0
3.52
0.67
0.45
0.23
0.10
Signicance
***
***
***
**
*
**
**
**
*
*
166
Chapter 15
water should be appropriately treated before use, for both health protection
and avoidance of crop damage. Only in the USA, Australia and South Africa
have any specic regulations been established for re-use of waste water. In
several EU countries regulations and codes of practices concerning the use of
treated waste water for irrigation are under preparation or revision (Angelakis
et al., 2002). Irrigation with waste water is now a common practice in many
countries.
The nutrient content of waste water is benecial for olives. However, high
nutrient concentrations may constitute a source of pollution or may be toxic to
plants. This may cause underground or surface water pollution, excessive
vegetative growth and reduction in quality.
The nutrients in waste water essential for plants are nitrogen, phosphorus,
potassium, zinc, boron and sulphur. The N content of municipal waste water
after secondary treatment ranges from 20 to 60 mg/l. Therefore, the N in
treated waste water may be in excess of crop needs. Phosphorus levels in
secondary treated waste water vary from 6 to 15 mg/l, and those of K range
from 10 to 30 mg/l; with regard to other nutrients, waste water contains
adequate amounts of S, Zn, Cu and B. Treated waste water contains enough B
for plant nutrition and, in some cases, B is often found in excess, causing
toxicity. The most toxic ions in treated waste water are Na, Cl and B. Olive is
tolerant to waste water containing B at a level of up to 1 mg/l. The greatest
concern with regard to the re-use of waste water, however, is the presence of
pathogens.
16
WATER USE EFFICIENCY BY THE OLIVE
INTRODUCTION
The olive tree is very efcient in its use of water. As an illustration, it requires
312 g water to produce 1 g dry matter, whereas other evergreen plants such as
Citrus and Prunus species require 400 and 500 g, respectively. Water
consumption by the olive is 30 and 40% of that of Citrus and Prunus species,
respectively. The mechanisms conferring high water use efciency (WUE)
include the ability of the olive leaves to tolerate very low values (Connor,
2005) and osmotic adjustment via the synthesis of osmoregulatory solutes
(Morgan, 1984). Furthermore, the use of growth retardants increases the
drought resistance of olive plants (Frakulli and Voyiatzis, 1999).
Short growth cycle; the plant completes its life cycle before the appearance
of any water decit.
Limited leaf area (small leaves), closure of stomata and thick cuticle.
167
168
Chapter 16
papi
Pa (ra + rs + rm)
Efciency (%)
Drip-microsprinkler
New sprinkler
Older sprinkler
Basin
Contour ood
Furrow
9095
7585
6580
7580
6065
4060
169
el ea
Pa (ra + rs)
(pa pl)
(el ea)
WUE =
(ra + rs)
(ra + rs + rm)
(13C/12C) air
(13C/12C) dry matter
The value ranges between 13 and 28 for C3 plants and between 1 and
7 for C4 plants. Another way of expressing is:
= 0.0044 + 0.0256 pi/pa
where pi = internal space partial pressure of CO2; pa = atmospheric partial
pressure of CO2.
170
Chapter 16
aperture, due to its concentration in the apoplast of the leaf epidermis. In the
case of calcifuges, high levels of Ca2+ in the rhizosphere could reduce the
coupling of stomatal conductance to assimilation, and this reduces water use
efciency by increasing apoplasmic Ca2+ in the leaf. Nitrogen sources could
alter stomatal conductance by activating nitrate entry into guard cells.
Another inorganic anion involved in stomatal opening is Cl. Therefore, the
stomatal conductance of NH4+-fed plants is 2040% lower than that of those
fed on NO3.
Deciency of certain elements is accompanied by organic carbon efux, as
soluble, low-relative molecular mass compounds (Raven et al., 2004). This is
especially true for deciency of phosphorus and Fe. This mechanism is
signicant.
Water use efciency can be increased by following more intensive cropping
systems in semi-arid environments and by increasing plant population density
in more humid environments. Important factors determining water and
nutrient use by crops include the physical and chemical properties of soil (water
retention, capacity, available water, microbial biomass, soil organic matter).
Certain practices increase nutrient use by plants and include the form and
quality of added fertilizer and the timing of its application. In order to maximize
the use of applied fertilizer, precision farming tools such as GPS digital maps of
soils and crops, and also the use of optical sensors and growth models, have
been applied.
171
factors irrigation is the most important, and growers are now exploring new
ways of manipulating the water use efciency of crops by using new irrigation
techniques.
One such technique is Regulated Decit Irrigation (RDI) (Loveys et al.,
2004; Tognetti et al., 2005). This is an irrigation technique based on the
science of phenology regarding vegetative and reproductive development.
Plant vigour is very important for fruiting, and excessive vigour results in
shading and decreased fruiting. Reduced vigour can be achieved through
pruning, application of growth inhibitors (Frakulli and Voyiatzis, 1999) or
appropriate fertilization and irrigation. By judicious use of these methods,
manipulation of vigour through irrigation management offers more exibility,
with minimal labour input (Dichio et al., 1994; Centritto et al., 2005). The
main principle of RDI is that the quantity of applied water is reduced during the
period of high vegetative growth and low fruit growth rate. Later, when fruit
growth rate is high, a normal irrigation regime is resumed. Due to water decit
the vegetative growth is reduced while fruit growth and development is least
affected. Due to water decit the canopy size and leaf stomatal conductance are
reduced and intermittent drought affects leaf anatomy (Chartzoulakis et al.,
1999; Dichio et al., 2003). RDI is a method developed for high-density
orchards. Although the root system remained dry, the parameters of
photosynthesis, stomatal conductance and growth regained pre-stress values
within a few weeks, although one part of the root system still remained dry
(Dry and Loveys, 2000).
Stomatal closure is due to the production of ABA in the dry part of the root
system (Stoll et al., 2000). These responses were not evident in plants where
the same half of the root system was irrigated throughout the growing season
and the remainder of the roots were dry. This suggests that the root-derived
signals during the stomatal responses were not sustained, in the same way that
had been observed in various plants. Furthermore, PRD did not result in great
changes in leaf ABA in comparison with plants subjected to an overall water
decit (Stoll et al., 2000). We may assume that stomatal control is achieved
with small alterations in leaf ABA, when ABA synthesis is initiated by changes
in water availability to only part of the root system. Measurement of ABA
content after PRD indicates that its content is almost equal after extraction
from roots and petioles, and twice as great from leaf blades.
The pH of the sap from PRD-treated plants was higher in comparison with
controls. This increase in the pH of xylem sap reduces partitioning of ABA into
the symplasm, i.e. away from the sites of action of guard cells. The ABA
concentration of xylem sap varies, depending on the cultivar and species.
Furthermore, the pH of xylem sap varies depending on plant species (Wilkinson,
2004). When the pH of the xylem sap is close to the pKa value of ABA (4.8), very
small changes in sap pH will create large changes in the proportion of ABA
present as an ion, while greater pH values have less effect on ABA ionization.
Under high VPD stomatal conductance was low in both control and PRD trees
172
Chapter 16
173
generated by the interaction between the root and the drying soil, controlling
WUE as water decit develops in the soil. Chemical signals involve changes in
the transport of growth regulators or other substances via the xylem, as
described below.
ABA is synthesized in the root, as soil drying progresses, and is subsequently transported to the leaf, via the xylem vessels (Wilkinson, 2004). In
leaves, ABA accumulates in the guard cells and induces stomata to close. ABA
accumulation induces a signal transduction inside the guard cell, which
involves an increase in cytoplasmic Ca. This Ca increase, and also an increase
in cytoplasmic pH, depolarize the guard cell plasma membrane causing
outward K+ and Cl channels to open, followed by efux of these ions. This
leads to decreased water potential of the cell, reduced turgor and stomatal
closure. The synthesis and transport of ABA take place before a signicant
decrease in soil or leaf water, i.e. before the appearance of hydraulic signals.
Other chemical signalling molecules include cytokinins, ethylene, NO3 and pH.
Soil drying reduces transport of growth-promoting cytokinin from the root to
the shoot.
The basic ABA signal can also be inuenced by soil drying via synthesis of
ABA conjugates such as ABA-glucose ester (ABA-GE) and their transport via the
xylem to leaves. ABA-GE is lipophilic and unable to cross lipid cell membranes,
and is transported to the shoot with no loss to stem parenchyma. Therefore ABAGE is a more efcient form of transporting ABA from the root to the shoot. When
ABA-GE reaches the leaf apoplast, enzymes such as esterases, hydrolases and/or
glucosidases cleave the conjugate and release free ABA to the cells.
Furthermore, soil drying and ooding increase ethylene levels by promoting
the synthesis of the ethylene precursor ACC and its transport from roots to
leaves. Water stress, soil ooding and nutrient deciencies can induce changes in
the xylem sap pH. The rst change measured is an increase in xylem pH after 24
h of exposure to soil drying and prior to the reduction in stomatal aperture.
Ethylene generation by leaves occurred after 34 days. Furthermore, xylem sap
pH becomes more alkaline after soil ooding. Such changes in pH can induce
stomatal closure by affecting ABA compartmentation. Increases of apoplastic sap
pH from 5.5 to approximately 7.0 in water-stressed plants have been reported.
The same trend regarding pH was exhibited by nitrate-decient soil. Changes in
xylem and symplastic pH may be linked to effects of cellular dehydration or the
activity of H+-ATPases associated with xylem parenchyma. Furthermore, soil
drying-induced changes in ionic composition of xylem sap consequently affect its
pH. Reduction of NO3 in the xylem sap is a sensitive chemical change that
precedes increases in xylem sap pH and stomatal closure. Soil drying induces
xylem alkalinization, which may result in a decrease in nitrate reductase (NR)
activity from roots to leaves.
This can be promoted by a reduced supply of nitrate from the root to the
leaf. Malate and citrate are loaded into the xylem instead of NO3, which
increases pH. This happens in species which transport NO3 to the leaves and
174
Chapter 16
17
STRESS-INDUCED ACCUMULATION
OF PROLINE AND MANNITOL
INTRODUCTION
Accumulation of proline has been proposed as a protector of membranes,
polyribosomes and enzymes during water or salt stress. Proline is an
osmoregulant and contributes to 45% of total osmotic adjustment, and can also
detoxify free radicals. Most proline is accumulated in the vacuoles, but some is in
the cytoplasm.
Proline is accumulated after stress by both increased synthesis and
reduced degradation (Van Rensburg et al., 1993; Hare and Cress, 1997;
Yoshida et al., 1997). Proline may be synthesized from both glutamate and
ornithine. The intermediates in proline synthesis are glutamic -semialdehyde
(GSA) and -pyrroline-5-carboxylate (PCP). The enzymes involved in
synthesis are P5C reductase and proline dehydrogenase.
COMPATIBLE SOLUTES
Olives are grown mostly in arid and semi-arid regions, where they are subjected
to high temperatures and scarcity of water. Osmotic homeostasis requires
an increase of osmotic pressure in cells by either uptake of soil salts or the
synthesis of metabolically compatible compounds. These solutes are commonly
carbohydrates (sugar or sugar alcohols, such as mannitol), amino acids and
quaternary ammonium compounds (Hare and Cress, 1997; Hare et al., 1999).
Besides their role in osmotic adjustment (Hare et al., 1998), compatible solutes
also have osmoprotective functions protecting membranes thus preserving
the biological functions of these, and seem to play a role in hydroxyl radical
scavenging, hence being active in protecting plants against oxidative damage
(Smirnoff and Cumbes, 1989).
Sucrose is the most abundant carbohydrate and is an important factor in
micromolecule and membrane stabilization. Sugar alcohols too, such as
mannitol (Bieleski, 1982), constitute an important group of compatible solutes.
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
175
176
Chapter 17
PCP synthetase.
PCP reductase.
Proline dehydrogenase.
PCP dehydrogenase.
Ornithine -aminotransferase.
Arginase.
The reactions involving these enzymes are presented in Table 17.1.
Reaction(s) catalysed
1-pyrroline-5-carboxylate synthetase
1-pyrroline-5-carboxylate reductase
Proline dehydrogenase
1-pyrroline-5-carboxylate dehydrogenase
Ornithine -aminotransferase
Arginase
177
18
MINERAL NUTRITION OF THE OLIVE
CHAPTER OVERVIEW
Olive trees in many areas of the world are among the least fertilized trees.
Therefore, biennial bearing is very common. Although olive trees represent a
large global hectareage, our knowledge of their mineral nutrition and salt
tolerance is very limited. Hence, this chapter represents an attempt to provide
some information in this area.
The topics discussed in this chapter are the following:
The needs of olives for N, P, K and their concentration in various plant parts.
The annual needs for N, P, K and Ca for various fruits and the annual
variations in N, P, K, Ca and Mg concentrations in leaves. Nitrogen
distribution in fruiting olive shoots.
The concentrations of various nutrients considered as being adequate.
Nutrient stress and growth.
Nutrient deciency or excess and photosynthesis.
Nitrogen excess and quality of olive oil and table olives.
Roles of N and its assimilation, kinetics of nitrate (NO3) absorption and
effect of N form on growth.
Olive culture and the nitrate accumulation problem.
Nitrates leaching from olive orchards.
Roles of K, P, Ca and Mg and their absorption.
Roles of B and Mn.
Response of olive trees to salinity.
Olive fertilization and slow-release fertilizers.
INTRODUCTION
Olive trees are not big feeders. They are hardy plants that will tolerate poor
growing conditions especially low fertility better than almost any other
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
179
180
Chapter 18
fruit tree. They also tolerate a very wide range of soil pH and tend to fruit better
under conditions of average vigour and nutrition. The olive is a tree that, in
general, receives minimal fertilization. This unfavourable treatment of olives
concerning the application of organic or inorganic fertilizers derives from the
opinion that they do not require adequate fertilization, because of their
extensive root system. This opinion is misdirected, since the volume of soil
around the root system is limited. As a consequence of such inadequate
fertilization, biennial bearing is quite frequent. There is a lack of information in
international literature concerning the behaviour of olive cultivars with regard
to mineral nutrients (Marschner, 1997). Therefore this chapter aims at giving
information pertinent to olives in respect of nutrition. A signicant portion of
these data are derived from research projects of the author or PhD theses
conducted under his guidance.
Total (kg)
0.500
0.120
0.950
0.960
0.500
0.120
0.280
0.500
0.380
0.150
0.195
0.300
1.380
0.390
1.425
1.760
Mineral Nutrition
181
N (%)
P (%)
K (%)
Ratio (N:P:K)
Secondary roots
Primary roots
Trunk
Main branches
Secondary branches
Shoots
Leaves, 1 year old
Leaves, 2 years old
Unripe fruits
Ripe fruits
0.33
0.37
0.26
0.29
0.23
0.64
1.63
1.24
0.90
0.97
0.113
0.123
0.070
0.090
0.099
0.179
0.271
0.201
0.333
0.397
0.402
0.477
0.219
0.354
0.191
1.000
0.994
0.678
2.760
3.220
2.9:1:3.5
3.0:1:3.8
3.7:1:3.1
3.2:1:3.9
1.2:1:1.9
3.5:1:5.5
6.0:1:3.6
6.1:1:3.4
2.7:1:8.3
2.4:1:8.1
Leaves have a larger concentration of N than stems, and fruits produced during
the on years are the main sink for N. Furthermore, N also may be mobilized
from organs other than leaves to support fruit growth.
Leaf analysis
The nutrient concentrations within olive leaves depend on the cultivar (Jordao et
al., 1999), the level of fertilization and area. In the literature are to be found leaf
analysis data from various regions of the world (Fernndez-Escobar et al., 1994;
Dimassi et al., 1999). The season of leaf sampling is that when the nutrients
attained have a more or less constant concentration. Starting early in spring, the
concentrations of N, P, K and Mg (in leaves) are more or less constant until a drop
in August. Subsequently the concentration increases again and stabilizes from
October to the start of the next vegetative cycle (see Fig. 18.1). The same trend is
observed in leaves of 1, 2 or 3 years old. The winter period is characterized by
stable concentrations of N, P, K, Ca and Mg, and this period is considered as the
optimum for leaf analysis in the olives. However, other workers prefer to collect
leaf samples in July from the current years growth. The required number of
leaves per sample is 80100, and these leaves are harvested from shoots with no
fruits. The nutrient concentrations determining deciency or sufciency of
nutrients are presented in Table 18.3. The chemical composition of olive leaves
varies depending on the cultivar and time of sampling (Table 18.4).
182
Chapter 18
Fig. 18.1. Seasonal variation in N concentration of olive leaves 1, 2 and 3 years old
(from Bouat, 1961).
Table 18.3. The nutrient concentrations in leaves determining deciency,
sufciency or excess for olives (from Therios, 2005b).
Nutrient
N (%)
P (%)
K (%)
Mg (%)
Ca (%)
S (%)
Cl (%)
Fe (ppm)
Mn (ppm)
B (ppm)
Zn (ppm)
Cu (ppm)
Mo (ppm)
Deciency
Relative lack
Sufciency
Excess
< 1.20
< 0.07
< 0.50
< 0.07
< 0.50
< 0.05
1.201.60
0.070.09
0.500.70
0.070.10
0.501.00
0.050.10
2050
520
1520
510
<5
< 0.03
1.601.80
0.090.11
0.700.90
0.100.30
1.002.50
0.100.25
0.100.40
50150
50150
2050
1030
520
> 2.20
> 0.14
> 1.10
> 0.30
> 0.80
NUTRIENT ELEMENTS
Nitrogen
Roles of nitrogen
Nitrogen is necessary for plants since it is a primary component of nucleic
acids, proteins, amino acids, purines, pyrimidines and chlorophyll. Nitrogen
exerts a signicant effect on plant growth, as it reduces biennial bearing and
Mineral Nutrition
183
P (% d.m.)
K (% d.m.)
Mg (% d.m.)
B (ppm)
Fe (ppm)
Days after
full bloom
Chondrolia
Chalkidikis
Amphissis
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
1.22
0.73
0.83
0.90
0.15
0.11
0.10
0.11
0.94
0.89
1.71
1.63
0.09
0.06
0.07
0.06
47
47
96
122
56
84
18
17
0.93
0.78
0.76
0.65
0.11
0.08
0.11
0.06
0.65
0.73
1.18
1.32
0.06
0.06
0.05
0.05
52
61
84
44
58
97
27
29
increases the percentage of perfect owers. The olive is a fruit tree requiring
enough N and irrigation in order to avoid biennial bearing. Therios and
Sakellariadis (1988) and Fernndez-Escobar et al. (2004a) found that the
increase of N supply increased olive growth. Lack of N leads to decreased
growth, shorter length of annual shoots (< 10 cm), fewer leaves, reduced
owering and decreased yield. Nitrogen concentrations in the leaf of < 1% lead
to the formation of imperfect owers. However, excess N application creates
problems, while the application of slowly available fertilizers has benecial
effects (Fernndez-Escobar and Marn, 1999; Garcia et al., 1999). The time of
N fertilization in the non-irrigated orchard is DecemberFebruary, in the form
of ammonia or urea. In irrigated orchards N should be supplied in three doses,
i.e. DecemberFebruary as ammonia and the other two doses later in
NO3 form. The amount of precipitation is the determining factor for the
quantity of N applied: if the annual precipitation is < 400 mm we supply
100 g N/tree/100 mm rainfall, while if precipitation is > 700 mm we supply
184
Chapter 18
150 g N/tree/100 mm rainfall. In the latter case the total amount of N applied
would be 1.5 kg N/tree or 15 units N/1000 m2.
Nitrogen should not be applied every year and an optimum level of N
fertilization is required (Marn and Fernndez-Escobar, 1997). In sandy soils N
tends to leach out, causing groundwater and runoff pollution. Therefore, lighter
and more frequent applications are preferable. Conventional N fertilizers such
as urea, ammonium nitrate, ammonium phosphate, ammonium sulphate,
potassium nitrate or calcium nitrate are all suitable. Conventional N fertilizers
have traditionally been used because they are cheap, less bulky and easy to
apply. When combining N fertilization with organic materials the total cost is
considerable. Furthermore, most of the organic materials release their N within
the rst year or two. However, organic materials have the benet of being slowly
released and are less likely to leach into ground or surface waters.
Forms of soil nitrogen
The N found in the soil can generally be classied as either inorganic or organic
(Tisdale et al., 1993). By far the greater total amount of N occurs as a part of
the soil organic matter complex. The inorganic forms of soil N include NH4+,
NO2, N2O, NO and elemental N, which is inert. From the standpoint of soil
fertility the NH4+, NO2 and NO3 forms are of greatest importance.
Nitrogen transformation in soils
Olives absorb most of their N in the NH4+ and NO3 forms. The quantity of these
two ions presented to the roots depends largely on both the amounts supplied
as commercial N fertilizers and released from reserves of the organically bound
soil N. The amount released from the organic reserves or fertilizers depends
on the balance that exists between the processes of N mineralization,
immobilization and soil losses. The mineralization of organic N compounds
takes place essentially in three reactions: aminization, ammonication and
nitrication.
Aminization: protein RNH2 + CO2 + energy + other products
Ammonication: RNH2 + HOH NH3 + R-OH + energy
Nitrication: 2NH4 + 3O2 2NO2 +2H2 + 4H+ (Nitrosomonas)
2NO2 +O2 2NO3 (Nitrobacter)
The ammonia released is subjected to conversion to nitrite and nitrates, for
direct absorption by olive trees; it may be utilized by heterotrophic organisms and
it can be xed in the lattice of expanding-type clay minerals. The NH4+ permits its
absorption and retention by soil colloidal materials in the negative charge of clays
and is not subject to leaching by water, as is the NH3 form. The more
unfavourable the conditions for nitrication and the greater the exchange
capacity of minerals, the longer is the retention time. After nitrication ammonia
is subject to leaching. Of the three forms of N, NO3 and urea are completely
Mineral Nutrition
185
mobile forms in soils and move largely with the soil water. Also, during dry
weather capillary and upward movement of water containing nitrates is possible,
leading to NO3 accumulation in the upper soil zone. Furthermore, it is possible
for NH4+ to be xed by the 1:2 clay minerals having an expanding lattice. The
xed ammonia can be replaced by cations that expand the lattice (Ca2+, Mg2+,
Na+, H+). Nitrogen losses in irrigated olive orchards may occur under the
following conditions:
186
Chapter 18
Mineral Nutrition
187
Under stress conditions nitrite is also reduced to nitric oxide by NR. Nitric oxide
constitutes a signicant component.
A minor amount of nitrite reduction may also occur during darkness, at
the expense of reducing equivalents generated by the oxidative pentose
phosphate pathway and starch breakdown. The NADH required for NO3
reduction in the cytosol could be provided by photosynthetic electron transport
via malateoxaloacetate or from mitochondrial substrate oxidation.
Olive culture and the nitrate accumulation problem
Nitrate is essential to life, but a hazard when applied in the wrong place and at
the wrong time. Nitrate is present in most natural waters in rain, rivers, lakes,
sea and in the water stored in porous rocks. Nitrate concentrations in natural
water are steadily rising with the increasing use of nitrogenous fertilizer by
olive growers. Furthermore, the European Union (EU) has established a limit of
50 mg/l for NO3 in drinking water, or 11.3 mg/l N.
Due to the common agriculture policy (CAP) of the EU, which ensured a
fair price for agricultural products and the use of extra N, this has resulted
in many cases in excess production; high rates of N fertilization have resulted
in NO3 pollution. The solution is not simple, since a reduction in use of
nitrogenous fertilizer results in lower agricultural income. Furthermore,
lowered productivity raises food prices in the supermarket.
Nitrate itself is not toxic but becomes problematic after its conversion into
nitrite, which is responsible for blue baby syndrome, or methaemoglobinaemia,
and stomach cancer. The blue baby syndrome is common in children under 1
year old who consume a certain level of nitrates. Microorganisms convert NO3
to NO2 and NO2 reacts with haemoglobin, which transports oxygen through
the body, and haemoglobin is transformed into methaemoglobin. The Fe in
haemoglobin is in the ferrous form, but in the ferric form in methaemoglobin.
Therefore, the O2-carrying capacity of haemoglobin is reduced. Stomach cancer
has also been linked to the NO3 concentration in drinking water. Nitrite
produced from NO3 reacts with secondary amines, producing N-nitroso
compounds that can modify DNA. The World Health Organization (WHO) has
set two limits, one of 50 mg/l the recommended one and a maximum of 100
mg/l (22.6 mg/l of N).
When more N is applied, the increase in yield per kg unit of N reduces
(diminishing returns). When the soil contains adequate N the curve attains
the form of a straight line, which declines continuously as N increases.
Therefore, additional N reduces yield. The third form of N curve is that in which
additional N increases the yield steadily, up to a point above which it sharply
declines.
Nitrate leaching from olive orchards
Nitrate-containing fertilizers, when applied to the soil surface and after their
entrance into the soil by irrigation or rainfall undergo a process known as
188
Chapter 18
dissociation, i.e. separation into anion and cation. The soil solution should
contain equal numbers of positive and negative ions, due to the principle of
electroneutrality.
The ammonium ion (NH4+) is the other ion containing N, and its relation
to ammonia (NH3) is given by the equation
NH OH NH + + OH
NH3 + H2O
4
4
Therefore, when ammonia (NH3) is dissolved in water this gives an
alkaline solution. Reactions proceed in both directions towards the left/right
or clockwise/anti-clockwise, meaning that in alkaline soils NH4+ can be
converted to NH3 gas and therefore lost to the air. The clays in soil readily
accumulate electrical charges, the overall charge being positive at very acidic
pH and negative at pH in the range 5.58.0. This indicates that positively
charged ions are attracted to the surface of the clay, but negatively charged ions
such as NO3 are repelled and are more vulnerable to downward leaching.
Ammonium is strongly attracted to the negative charges of clay particles
and does not leach out in soils with adequate clay content. Use of nitrication
inhibitors reduces the speed of NH4+ transformation to NO3 by soil bacteria and
reduces NO3 leaching. Such inhibitors are based on pyridine and are
circulated under the commercial names N-Serve or Dicyandiamide (DCD).
Furthermore, such transformation in the soil is inhibited by the alkaline soil
reaction. Leaching of NO3 requires liquid water (not gas or ice) and a soil
saturated or partly saturated. Therefore, we can describe two ows of water in
the soil saturated and unsaturated. The main force of NO3 leaching is gravity,
or downward movement, of water and NO3.
Water containing NO3 can leach downwards by pushing down on the
water containing NO3 like a piston on an equivalency basis. For example,
20 mm of precipitation or irrigation displaces an equivalent soil water volume.
If we hypothesize that soil porosity is lled with water and air 50/50, then the
depth of NO3-containing leaching water is 20/0.5 = 40 cm. Nitrate loss by
leaching is greater in soils with low water-holding capacity and in soils with
rapid water movement, i.e. in soils with high hydraulic conductivity.
Therefore, soil texture and its volumetric H2O content are determining
factors of NO3 leaching. Other factors affecting NO3 leaching include: (i) the
microorganism population; (ii) the organic matter content of those olive groves
with a high degree of organic culture; and (iii) a higher root density of olive
groves, which increases NO3 absorption and reduces the risk of NO3 leaching.
The simplest model is the piston ow, the analogy of which is a piston
pushing out or displacing uid from a cylinder. This model is expressed by the
equation
Zp = /
where Zp = the depth to which the front of the displacing solution
penetrates; = the quantity of water or solution necessary for displacement;
Mineral Nutrition
189
= the volumetric moisture content, i.e. the percentage of soil volume that
can hold water.
This equation means that, the more water the soil can hold the smaller the
downward movement that is caused by a given amount of applied water. This
model works best in sandy soils, and it deals only with a single application of
NO3. The main source of NO3 leakage is organic material in the cultivation
system called organic farming.
Organic olive orchards
Organic farmers point out that the large inputs of chemicals to the soilplant
system upsets the natural ecosystem. Organic farmers use manures to fertilize
olive orchards or they grow a legume crop, such as beans, in order to bring N
into the soil. Plants must take up mineral N whether they are grown
conventionally or organically. The high availability of N from chemical
fertilizers encourages rapid growth and large yields. Organic farmers produce
fewer yields but of higher quality and, for these products, people are prepared
to pay more. To obtain yields similar to those of conventional farmers,
organic farmers should supply with organic matter a similar amount of
mineral N.
Organic olive farming has increased in Greece and represents 2.5% of the
total area of olive cultivation and about 50% of all organic farms. The use of
composts in the organic groves supplies the olive tree with all the essential
nutrients for achievement of adequate nutritional status, i.e. normal
productivity. The use of compost increases the soil organic matter content. The
soil pH values of organic orchards are higher than those of the conventional,
the lower pH values of the latter being the result of the application of mineral
fertilizers and more frequent cultivation. Concerning the N level of leaves this is
marginal in organically grown olives, while P and K concentrations in the
leaves are greater in organic farming.
With regard to micronutrients, Fe, Mn, Zn and Cu can be bound to chelates
in organic matter, and their concentration in leaves is lower in comparison
with non-organic olive groves. Boron levels are higher in organic than in
conventional orchards. Furthermore, irrigated conventional and organic
farming orchards have higher concentrations of leaf P than the non-irrigated.
Nitrate leaching losses as affected by traditional and slow-release fertilizers
Olive trees require N in greater amounts than other mineral nutrients, but less
than 20% of the N applied to the olive orchard is taken up by the fruit trees. The
use of traditional fertilizers increases N leaching, reduces N utilization
efciency (NUE) and also increases the pollution of ground water. The use of
slow-release fertilizers achieves a step-wise supply of nutrients for a long
period. This increases NUE and reduces NO3 leaching. However, although the
use of slow-release fertilizers is advantageous, their use is very limited due to
the economic cost in comparison with the low income from olives, especially of
190
Chapter 18
Induction period
The rate of NO3 absorption is signicantly less in the rst hours than later on.
This reduced rate of absorption (lag phase) is the required time for induction of
the enzyme NR. Nitrate absorption has two stages, the rst due to active
absorption and the second due to the induction of NR (reduction); the ratio
between absorption and reduction is 3:1.
Mineral Nutrition
1.0
191
1V
8
(a)
mol/g/h
0.6
0.4
0.2
(b)
0.8
6
4
2
1
Vmax
1
Km
0.20 0.40 0.60 0.80 1.00 1.20 1.40 1.60 1.80 2.00
8
12
18
1/NO3 (mM)
NO3 (mM)
20
2.0
(d)
Rate of NO3 absorption mol/g/h
(c)
1.6
1.2
0.8
0.4
6
pH
0.6
0.5
0.4
0.3
0.2
0.1
10
15
20
25
30
35
Temperature (C)
0 0.25 0.50
2
CaSO42H2O (mM)
(f)
4
Rate of NO3 absorption mol/g/9h
(e)
0.50
2
NH4+ (mM)
Fig. 18.2. Rate of NO3 absorption by olive plants. (a) Effect of NO3 concentration;
(b) Lineweaver-Burk plot; (c) pH effect; (d) effect of temperature; (e) effect of calcium
concentration; and (f) effect of NH4+ concentration (from Therios, 2006).
192
Chapter 18
domestica (Therios et al., 1979) and 10% of that reported for barley. The low
Vmax value and the high Km value (0.23 mM) indicate that olive trees are not
efcient in NO3 absorption. Therefore, in olives NO3 fertilization would be
expected to lead to greater N losses due to leaching, in comparison with
Marianna 2624, with a Km value of 0.06 mM. This point is not very important
in non-irrigated olive orchards, while in irrigated ones more NO3 losses by
leaching would be expected. Hence the fertilization programmes for olives
should be carefully planned: N should be applied in many and small doses in
order to avoid leaching losses. A good solution is to apply N in the form of NH4
and to use inhibitors of nitrication, such as N-Serve (nitrapyrin) or other
forms of slow-release N fertilizers.
Mineral Nutrition
193
NO3 absorption
(mol/g/10 h)
5.2
4.0
4.7
4.8
2.4
5.3
5.1
100
77
90
92
46
102
98
194
Chapter 18
Ammonium absorption
The classical enzyme kinetics is followed in NH4+ absorption, which resembles
the absorption of other monovalent ions and especially that of potassium. This
is the reason that a high NH4+ concentration competes with K+, although the
afnity for the common point of attachment is only 10% that of K+. Plants
growing under acidic soil pH are obliged to absorb NH4+ rather than NO3-N.
Furthermore, the absorption of NH4+-N by olive plants is greater than the
NO3 or urea N forms. Two systems of NO3 transport have been proposed: the
rst of these has a high afnity for NO3; it works at 5100 M NO3
concentration and consists of the NRT1 genes. The Vmax ranges between 3 and
8 mol/g/h. The second, the low-afnity system, uses the NRT2 genes and
works at concentrations > 250 M NO3. Both systems are activated by the
presence of NO3 in the external solution. The lack of NO3 induces NO3
absorption and increases the rate of its absorption.
Mineral Nutrition
195
effect of NH4-N. Based on the fact that the greatest growth coincides with the
greatest N concentration in leaves and also that most olive orchards are well
supplied with Ca, we may conclude that the NH4-N form is the most preferable
source of N for olives. Other processes should also be considered, such as a pH
decrease with increased (NH4)2SO4 supply or the possibility of NH3 loss at
higher pH values and dry soil conditions. Addition of Ca to the NH4-N form
may increase ammonium absorption and accumulation. In the presence of an
adequate supply of carbohydrates, NH4-N assimilation should proceed more
rapidly than NO3-N assimilation. It is therefore not surprising that greater
concentrations of N were found in the NH4-N-fed plants.
The N form did not signicantly affect K and Fe concentrations. However, Ca
concentration was affected by the N form. In our experiments we tested the effect
of NO3, NH4, urea or NO3 + NH4 on the mineral composition of leaves. Again, the
greatest accumulation of N was recorded with 16 mM NH4 or NH4 + NO3 (see
Table 18.6). The same was recorded for K. However, the greatest accumulation of
P was recorded with urea 116 mM or 1 mM NH4 + NO3. Also, the greatest Mg
concentration was recorded with 1 and 8 mM NH4 + NO3. The greatest Mn
concentration was recorded with 16 mM NH4 in the top and basal leaves. Zinc
concentration was greatest with 1 mM urea or 1 mM NH4 + NO3. Urea and NH4
+ NO3 resulted in the greatest concentration of Fe. Our data also indicated an
effect of the N form on the photosynthetic rate (Tsambardoukas, 2006).
Nitrogen assimilation
Ammonium absorbed by olives is a reduced form of N and could be used by the
plants to produce amino acids. Nitrate absorbed should previously be reduced
Table 18.6. Effect of N form (NH4+, urea and NH4+ + NO3) on mineral
composition of olive leaves (cv. Kalamon) at three concentrations (from
Tsambardoukas, 2006).
NH4+
Mineral
N*
P*
K*
Mg*
Fe**
Mn**
Zn**
1 mM
8 mM
NH4+-NO3
Urea
16 mM
1 mM
8 mM
16 mM
1mM
1.66b
1.98cd
2.21e
1.61b
1.96cd
ab
bc
de
e
0.21
0.23
0.32
0.37
0.36de
abc
bcd
e
de
1.10
1.21
1.48
1.31
1.25cd
0.57de
0.50bcd 0.40a
0.46abc 0.43ab
40ab
62bc
67c
69c
68c
a
c
e
abc
10
27
56
15
17abc
a
c
c
e
8
17
17
24
17c
2.07de
0.39e
1.20bcd
0.54cde
65c
42d
18d
1.66b
0.39e
1.06bc
0.48abcd
56bc
15ab
24de
8 mM
16 mM
1.97cd 2.19e
0.29cd 0.14a
1.26cd 1.45e
0.60e 0.46abc
62c
65c
bc
22
49de
bc
14
16c
*%; **ppm. Superscript letters in the same column denote statistically signicant differences
for P 0.05 (Duncans multiple range test).
196
Chapter 18
Potassium
Roles of potassium
Potassium is important for its involvement in the following processes (Tisdale
et al., 1993).
Carbohydrate metabolism.
Metabolism of N and protein synthesis.
Enzyme activity.
Regulation of the opening and closing of stomata.
Improvement in fruit quality and disease tolerance.
Alteration of photosynthesis and respiration and activation of the enzymes
peptase, catalase, pyruvic kinase, etc.
Mineral Nutrition
197
Phosphorus
Roles of phosphorus
Phosphorus is a component of high-energy substances such as ATP, ADP and
AMP; it is also important for nucleic acids and phospholipids (Olsen and
Sommers, 1982). Phosphorus affects root growth and maturation of plant
tissues and participates in the metabolism of carbohydrates, lipids and proteins.
Due to its extensive root system the olive tree absorbs adequate quantities of P.
Therefore, some investigators have proposed that P fertilization is not
necessary. The ideal P concentration of leaves is 0.090.11%. However, P
198
Chapter 18
Magnesium
Magnesium plays an important role in chlorophyll synthesis and also as an
enzyme activator. Healthy olive leaves contain 0.10.3% Mg, and below 0.1%
Mineral Nutrition
199
Calcium
Calcium is the element that participates in the integrity and semipermeability
of the plasmalemma. Calcium also regulates soil acidity and improves soil
texture. The Ca concentration of leaves is 1.04.5%. Deciency is recorded
when Ca is < 0.5%. In order to redress Ca deciency we add 2001000
kg/1000 m2 of CaCO3 dust during the autumn and incorporate this into the
soil.
Micronutrients
Iron
Iron is one of the most common of the metallic elements in the earths crust. Its
content ranges from a low of 200 ppm to more than 10%. It occurs in soils as
oxides, hydroxides and phosphates, as well as in the lattice structure of primary
silicate and clay minerals. Total Fe content is of no value in diagnosing Fe
deciencies.
Iron deciency is believed to be caused by: (i) an imbalance of metallic ions,
such as Cu and Mn; (ii) an excessive amount of P in soils; (iii) high pH; (iv) high
soil moisture; (v) cool temperatures; and (vi) high levels of HCO3 in the rooting
medium (Benitez et al., 2002). Iron deciency chlorosis in olive could be
corrected by using a low-pressure trunk injection method (Fernndez-Escobar
et al., 1993). High HCO3 levels in the soil increase the solubility of P and result
in a large uptake of this element, which interferes with Fe metabolism in the
plant. Excessive phosphate fertilization will also induce Fe chlorosis.
Manganese
Soil Mn originates from the decomposition of ferromagnesian rocks.
The quantities vary from a trace to several thousand kg/ha. Manganese
deciency has been reported and may be induced by an imbalance of other
elements such as Ca, Mg and ferrous Fe. Manganese in the soil is generally
considered to exist in three valency states: (i) divalent Mn2+ soil solution;
(ii) trivalent Mn existing in the form of the oxide, Mn2O3; and (iii) tetravalent
200
Chapter 18
Mn (Mn4+), which exists as the very inert oxide MnO2. The three forms exist in
equilibrium.
Mn MnO2
(Mn2+)
(Mn4+)
Mn2O3
(Mn3+)
Manganese deciency is very common at high pH values. Low and high
Mn concentrations (10, 40, 160, 640 M) signicantly affect the chemical
composition of the leaves in the cvs FS-17, Manaki, Kalamon, Koroneiki
and Picual (Chatzistathis et al., 2006). However, a genotypic variation has
been recorded among the cultivars, and the cv. Picual accumulated the least
amount in comparison with the other tested cvs. Iron, Zn, B and Ca were not
affected by Mn levels. Manganese concentration affected the Pn rate (Pn), and
a signicant genotypic variation was recorded, with Koroneiki increasing its
Pn with 640 M Mn. The leaf uorescence (Fv/Fm) was decreased by
increasing the Mn concentration (see Table 18.7).
Boron
Boron occurs in most soils in extremely small quantities, ranging from 20 to
200 ppm, and B deciency is common in olive trees (Demetriades et al.,
1960a). During owering and fruit development mobilization of B has been
recorded in olive trees (Delgado et al., 1994). In most cases B does not normally
occur in toxic quantities in most arable soils, unless it has been added in
excessive amounts with commercial fertilizers. However, there are arid regions
in which soils contain this element in toxic quantities, but these areas are few
in number and of little agricultural value. Native B in most humid-region soils
is in the form of tourmaline.
Most of the available soil B is held by the organic fraction and it is retained
rather tightly. As the organic matter decomposes the B is released; part is taken
up by plants and part is lost by leaching. Some B is held by clay or adsorbed by
the inorganic fraction of soils. The principal sites of such adsorption are
thought to be: (i) Fe and Al-hydroxy compounds present as coatings on or
associated with clay minerals; (ii) Fe or Al oxides; and (iii) clay minerals,
especially of the micaceous type. Coarse-textured, well-drained, sandy soils are
low in B. The fact that clays retain B more effectively than sandy soils does not
necessarily imply that plants will absorb this element from clays in greater
quantities than from sands. On the contrary, plants will take up much larger
quantities of B from sandy soils. The practical implication of these data is of
Mineral Nutrition
201
Mn*
Fe*
Zn*
Ca**
Mg**
K**
P**
B*
24a
24a
46a
147b
591c
84a
67b
68b
59b
67b
14a
16a
19a
16a
21a
2.67b
2.64b
2.70ab
2.68b
2.81a
0.12a
0.11a
0.07b
0.10a
0.12a
2.09a
2.06a
2.06a
2.05a
1.74b
0.16c
0.22bc
0.31a
0.27ab
0.31a
40a
31b
39a
38a
38a
20a
44ab
72ab
125b
734c
85ab
88ab
98a
80ab
63b
12c
16b
15bc
15bc
21a
1.11b
1.18a
1.17a
1.08bc
1.04c
0.11b
0.12ab
0.12ab
0.12ab
0.13a
1.90a
1.91a
1.88a
1.90a
1.88a
0.27ab
0.25ab
0.28ab
0.24b
0.30a
44ab
37b
41ab
43ab
47a
15a
21a
44a
129b
625c
81a
84a
86a
93a
62b
13a
15a
14a
15a
13a
0.92a
0.95a
0.91a
0.84a
0.89a
0.12a
0.11ab
0.12a
0.10b
0.11ab
1.59ab
1.57ab
1.60ab
1.68a
1.48b
0.15a
0.18b
1.15a
0.14a
0.17ab
23a
23a
25ab
24ab
27b
13a
20a
25a
78b
708c
63a
53a
58a
60a
56a
11b
15a
12b
9b
12b
1.40a
1.43a
1.37a
1.32ab
1.19b
0.16bc
0.20a
0.17b
0.16bc
0.14c
2.50a
2.25a
2.17a
2.59a
2.41a
0.18b
0.15b
0.26a
0.23a
0.24a
30ab
35a
35a
31a
25b
8a
15a
24a
40a
189b
87a
69a
78a
80a
74a
18ab
22a
16ab
19ab
15b
1.68ab
1.78a
1.55ab
1.39b
1.56ab
0.19a
0.21a
0.18a
0.20a
0.19a
1.47a
1.35a
1.76b
1.59ab
1.49ab
0.16a
0.15a
0.13a
0.13a
0.16a
46a
42ab
33c
32c
35bc
Superscript letters in the same column denote statistically signicant differences for P 0.05
(Duncans multiple range test). *, microelements; **, macroelements.
course that rates of applied water-soluble B fertilizer should be lower on coarsetextured sandy soils than on ne-textured soils for the same degree of expected
plant uptake.
Boron is one of the essential nutrients necessary for plant growth. In
nature B toxicity is not as common as B deciency. Boron toxicity that limits
plant growth can be observed under certain conditions such as soils with high
B content, overdosing with fertilizers and irrigation with water high in B
202
Chapter 18
Mineral Nutrition
203
90
0 mg B/l
80
70
Blooming
0.5
5.0
Blooming
60
50
Harvesting
40
30
20
10
0
J
97
F M A M J
A S O N D J F
Month/Year
M A M J
98
204
Chapter 18
N (% d.m.)
P (% d.m.)
K (% d.m.)
Fe (mg/kg)
Zn (mg/kg)
Nutrient concentration
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
120
30
60
90
20
47a
47a
96ab
122b
1.22f
0.73b
0.83cd
0.90de
0.15d
0.11c
0.10bc
0.11c
0.94bc
0.89ab
1.71e
1.63e
56ab
84b
18a
17a
18c
16bc
13b
11b
Superscript letters in the same column denote statistically signicant differences for P 0.05
(Duncans multiple range test).
Mineral Nutrition
205
between the tested cultivars. Tolerance to sea water follows the order:
Kalamon > Chondrolia Chalkidikis > Manzanillo. A decline in tolerance
with age and time of exposure to salt was reported for the cv. Arbequina
(Arags et al., 2005). The effect of six different sea water dilutions (0, 4.3, 8.5,
12.8, 17.1 and 21.3% sea water) on total plant mineral content, leaf number,
leaf area and leaf development, of the cvs Chondrolia Chalkidikis, Kalamon
and Manzanilla de Sevilla was measured (see Tables 18.9 and 18.10).
Plants grown under NaCl salinity show an increase in Na and Cl concentrations and a decrease in plant growth and K, Ca and Mg concentrations
(Vigo et al., 2002). The decrease in K, Ca and Mg concentrations is due to the
antagonistic effect of Na with these three elements. A decrease in leaf B
concentration is also usually observed (Vigo et al., 2002). These results show that
sea water decreases plant growth, increases Na and Cl concentrations in all plant
parts and decreases K, Ca and B concentration (see Tables 18.9 and 18.10).
Table 18.9. The effect of irrigation with six sea water dilutions on total plant
content of P, K, Ca, Mg, Na and Cl (mg) and Fe (g) in the olive cvs Chondrolia
Chalkidikis, Manzanilla de Sevilla and Kalamon (from Vigo et al., 2005).
Sea water dilution (%)
Chondrolia Chalkidikis
0
4.3
8.5
12.8
17.1
21.3
LSD (5%)
Manzanilla de Sevilla
0
4.3
8.5
12.8
17.1
21.3
LSD (5%)
Kalamon
0
4.3
8.5
12.8
17.1
21.3
LSD (5%)
Ca
Mg
Na
Cl
29.3
32.7
30.2
21.3
20.3
19.3
7.59
200.0
207.2
169.1
118.8
96.7
96.5
48.11
94.8
72.8
65.4
51.9
47.1
49.2
20.86
32.8
35.6
31.9
26.5
23.4
26.6
NS
28.6
73.2
79.4
67.6
68.9
86.2
18.06
60.3
95.1
84.6
67.6
75.8
123.5
28.17
5,721
6,308
3,879
3,262
2,013
3,898
2,598.00
33.6
32.8
27.8
31.4
28.1
18.2
6.85
173.4
129.9
98.8
97.6
84.5
54.4
28.61
104.7
76.4
60.1
55.0
55.0
39.0
15.57
30.4
30.8
26.1
26.8
26.5
19.4
6.88
25.5
73.2
83.6
81.0
92.3
86.0
16.95
43.4
93.9
104.9
100.9
109.4
105.0
25.54
6,584
6,160
35,222
3,555
4,172
2,673
1,622.90
11.5
10.3
11.2
8.7
8.3
5.9
NS
78.9
56.8
70.6
51.8
52.6
42.5
NS
50.2
36.3
37.1
31.3
28.7
23.2
13.18
12.2
13.1
15.8
13.0
12.6
10.4
NS
9.8
26.7
39.3
32.4
32.1
30.0
10.34
19.2
27.2
37.0
29.0
30.1
31.4
NS
1,317
1,761
989
745
704
547
600.50
Fe
206
Chapter 18
Table 18.10. The effect of irrigation with six sea water dilutions on total leaf
number, nal leaf area and number of days from initiation to nal area of newly
formed leavesa in the olive cvs Chondrolia Chalkidikis (Ch. Ch.) and Manzanilla
de Sevilla (Mz. S.) (from Vigo et al., 2005).
Sea water
dilution (%)
0
4.3
8.5
12.8
17.1
21.3
LSD (5%)
Final leaf
area (cm2)
Mz. S.
22
20
19
16
15
14
3.0
4.9
5.3
5.2
4.9
4.7
4.7
NS
4.1
3.8
3.4
3.6
3.1
3.0
0.40
20
20
21
22
22
22
NS
20
20
20
21
21
22
NS
aAverage
of all newly developed leaves on the main shoot during the 157 days of the
experiment.
LSD, least signicant difference for P 0.05; NS, not signicant.
With regard to the distribution of Na and Cl, even at the highest sea water
concentration most of the Na and Cl was found in base stems and roots,
indicating that the plants of the tested cultivars excluded Na and Cl ions from
their leaves. Thus it is clear that salt exclusion from the shoot is the mechanism
of salinity tolerance in olives. Tolerance to sea water of the tested cultivars
seems to be related to total plant K content, K concentration and the K:Na ratio
of leaves. Also, the relatively high Ca concentration of the roots of Kalamon
plays an important role in improving tolerance to salinity. Calcium maintains
the integrity and function of cellular membranes. In that way root selectivity
for K instead of Na is maintained. The increase in leaf thickness as a response to
saline treatment seems to increase the internal surface per unit of leaf area in
which CO2 and water vapour diffusion takes place, so reducing the internal
resistance to CO2 assimilation. The results indicate that, in coastal areas with
light-textured soils, diluted sea water could be used for irrigation of olive plants.
Finally, the correlation coefcients of mineral concentrations with (i) time (see
Table 18.11); and (ii) B concentration (see Table 18.12) are presented.
Mineral Nutrition
207
0.5
5.0
0.574****
0.600**
NS
0.648**
NS
NS
0.646**
NS
NS
0.498****
0.862**
NS
NS
NS
NS
0.730**
0.551**
NS
0.483**
0.684**
NS
NS
NS
NS
0.655**
0.530**
NS
0.5
5.0
0.593**
NS
NS
0.471
NS
0.632**
0.632**
NS
0.567**
NS
NS
NS
0.457**
0.576**
0.644**
NS
NS
NS
NS
0.736**
NS
NS
NS
NS
208
Chapter 18
not supplied when leaf N is greater than a threshold value; such a limit,
according to Fernndez-Escobar et al. (2002), is 1.5%. Nitrogen levels above
this limit adversely affect the polyphenol level of the oil, negatively affecting
the quality of both the oil and the groundwater. The quality of table olives
is also affected by fertilization (Morales-Sillero et al., 2006). Furthermore,
adequate K fertilization increases drought tolerance and adaptation (Restrepo
et al., 2002).
Maturation (%)
39.5
24.6
33.5
28.5
38.9
31.4
32.0
36.5
35.1
Mineral Nutrition
209
19
GROWTH AND SALT TOLERANCE
OF THE OLIVE
INTRODUCTION
Salinization of lands is increasing progressively throughout the world. It is
estimated that approximately one-third of the irrigated lands on a worldwide
basis and one-half of the irrigated lands in semi-arid regions are salinized. It is
also estimated that 10 million ha of these irrigated lands are taken out of
production due to high salinity (Epstein et al., 1980). Of the total land area
cultivated, about 5% (Munns, 1993) is affected by salt, and therefore, it is
important to study salinity and to measure the salt tolerance of the various
existing cultivars.
With respect to olives there is not enough information available. Therefore,
this chapter presents the available knowledge concerning the behaviour of
olives to salinity.
211
212
Chapter 19
bearing. Klein et al. (1992) reported for electrical conductivity (Ec) values up to
4.2 dS/m an increase or decrease in the yield observed, this being a function of
planting density. However, when the Ec of the irrigation water was 7.5 dS/m oil
yield and total fresh weight of fruits declined by 6080% in comparison with
the control irrigated by good-quality water. Other authors report that saline
reduces oil content and that this decrease is cultivar dependent (Chartzoulakis
et al., 2004; Stefanoudaki, 2004).
Salinity stress affects olive oil composition by an acceleration of ripening,
and its effects can be both positive and negative (Cresti et al., 1994). The
linoleic:oleic acid ratio sharply increases in the oil during the growing season,
as the degree of unsaturation increases with the fruit ripening. Also, the
activity of linoleic acid desaturase is strongly inhibited under saline conditions.
Another effect is the increase of aliphatic and triterpenic alcohols, as a
consequence of accelerated ripening.
Salinity results in increased phenol concentration in the oil (Stefanoudaki,
2004), and especially in the second fraction of secoiridoid derivatives. With
regard to negative effects the increase in total saturated fatty acids and
especially that of palmitic acid was included (Zarrouk et al., 1996;
Stefanoudaki, 2004). Furthermore, oleic acid decreases or linoleic acid
increases, and the ratio of oleic:linoleic acid decreases.
213
214
Chapter 19
215
216
Chapter 19
appears to be of particular importance during water and salt stress. Apart from
ethylene, salicylic acid (SA) and jasmonic acid (JA) are also important signal
molecules involved in the activation of plant deciency responses to salinity
(Sano et al., 1996). Cytokinin is required for the biosynthesis of SA and JA,
which subsequently serve as endogenous inducers.
217
Data from the cv. Chondrolia Chalkidikis indicate that, even with an Ec of
30 dS/m, plants continue to grow and no symptoms of toxicity appear (Ioannis
Therios, unpublished data). The number of leaves is signicantly greater with
the use of the electronic equipment. Potassium concentration is constant at all
Ec values with the use of the equipment and decreases without it.
Furthermore, Ca concentration is signicantly greater with this method, but
lower and decreased with increasing Ec. Phosphorus follows the same pattern
as Ca.
Another way to reduce Na accumulation in olive leaves and to restore K
levels similar to those of controls is the inclusion of 0.1100 mM K in the
nutrient solution. It has been suggested that K+ is one of the osmolytes, and its
accumulation in plant cells might facilitate osmotic adjustment, lower the
internal osmotic potential and contribute to salt tolerance. However addition
of K+ to the irrigation water did not improve Pn in olives compared with plants
receiving the same salinity treatment but with no added K+.
SALT TOLERANCE
Olive is a moderately salt-tolerant plant (Rugini and Fedeli, 1990). At Ec values
of 46 dS/m olive growth is reduced by 10%. Therios and Misopolinos (1988)
found that 3-year-old olive plants could be grown without problems at NaCl
concentrations < 80 mM (Ecw of 8.0 dS/m) during a 3-month period (see Fig.
19.1). Further studies indicated that olives can even do well under higher NaCl
concentrations: experiments were conducted with NaCl concentrations of up
to 150 mM NaCl. In another experiment olive trees were irrigated with
Hoagland nutrient solution diluted with sea water (Ec of sea water = 58 dS/m);
the maximum rate of dilution was 23% and its Ec value was 13 dS/m (Vigo et
al., 2005). Furthermore, the type of salt in the irrigation water affects the
severity of the toxicity symptoms. In one experiment the salts NaCl, CaCl2 and
KCl were tested. From these, at iso-osmotic concentrations, the most toxic was
KCl, reducing growth by a far greater extent than the other two (Vigo, 1999;
218
Chapter 19
Fig. 19.1. Effects of NaCl (080 me/l) concentrations on shoot growth 1 (a) and
4 (b) months into an experimental trial on four olive cultivars (from Therios and
Misopolinos, 1988).
Vigo et al., 2002). Furthermore, other authors (Bartolini et al., 1991) found
that Na2SO4 was more toxic than NaCl when the cv. Maurino was used. Salt
toxicity, of course, is a function of the olive cultivar and there is signicant
genotypic variation.
Various authors provide more information on the classication of salt
tolerance in olive cultivars (Therios and Misopolinos, 1988; Bouaziz, 1990;
Tattini et al., 1992, 1994; Benlloch et al., 1994; Marin et al., 1995; Gucci and
Tattini, 1997; Vigo, 1999; Chartzoulakis et al., 2002; Troncoso et al., 2004;
Arags et al., 2005; Chartzoulakis, 2005; Demiral, 2005). Chartzoulakis
219
(2005) classied these data in the form of a table giving the resistance of
cultivars, their origin and the source of the literature. Olive cultivars are
classied as salt tolerant, semi-tolerant or sensitive.
FUTURE GOALS
One widely used approach to unravel olive salt-tolerance mechanisms has been
to identify cellular processes and genes whose activity or expression is
regulated by salt stress (Watad et al., 1991; Hasegawa et al., 2000). The
assumption is that salt-regulated processes and genes probably function in salt
tolerance. Changes in cellular activities in response to salt stress include cell
wall alteration, decline in photosynthesis (Locy et al., 1996), potassium
content (Rains, 1972) and increases in Na+ and organic solutes (proline,
mannitol, etc.) (Greenway and Munns, 1980). Another approach is to identify
genes and cellular processes that are crucial for olive salt tolerance. Research
with the species Arabidopsis resulted in the isolation of several salt-overly
sensitive (SOS) mutants such as SOS1 (Wu et al., 1996), which is defective in
high-afnity K uptake. This means that K uptake is essential for salt tolerance
in glycophytes (Wu et al., 1996) under NaCl stress. SOS1 mutants accumulate
more proline (Liu and Zhu, 1997) and absorb less Na+ and K+.
The SOS2 mutants are specically hypersensitive to inhibition by Na+ or
+
Li and not hypersensitive to general osmotic stress. Furthermore, SOS2
mutants are necessary for K+ nutrition, since they do not grow in a culture
medium with low K+ concentration. Therefore, SOS1, SOS2 and SOS3 are
postulated to encode regulatory components controlling plant K+ nutrition
that, in turn, are essential for salt tolerance.
Some questions which should be asked include:
1. Do genes similar to SOS1, SOS2 and SOS3 exist?
2. Is salt sensitivity in the olive correlated with cellular Na+ content?
220
Chapter 19
3. Do genes exist in olives encoding for: (i) the enzyme PCP synthetase involved
in proline biosynthesis; (ii) a protein with a potential protective function during
desiccation (Yamaguchi-Shinozaki and Shinozaki, 1993); and (iii) a gene of cold
tolerance, drought and salt stress (MYB)-related transcription factor and
phospholipase that plays a role in osmotic signal transduction (Hirayama et al.,
1995)?
4. Which is more detrimental to plants under salt stress: higher tissue Na+ or
lower K+?
5. Does the level of salt tolerance, as measured by root growth, correlate
closely with K+ content?
6. The accumulation of compatible osmolytes is often considered to be a
universal protective mechanism used by many plants under salt stress. Is
proline accumulation an adaptive process or a response to salt stress injury?
This is an open question.
20
PRUNING
WHAT IS PRUNING?
Pruning of olive trees has two main objectives, to improve vegetative growth
and reproductive growth. The term pruning includes the techniques known as
cutting, heading, incision, inclination, twisting and girdling. Successful pruning
involves the knowledge and experience of olive tree physiology; the response of
trees to pruning varies with the age of the tree, vigour and cultivar, and it is an
excellent and very efcient means of controlling plant growth and productivity.
In pruning, by cutting certain parts of the canopy, the growth of the remaining
parts is stimulated; cutting is separated into the categories of thinning and
heading. When we undertake thinning we eliminate shoots from their base.
With such removal the entire shoots stimulate the vigour of the remaining
shoots by reducing competition for light, nutrients and water. An excellent
analysis of pruning and training systems for olive trees can be found in Gucci
and Cantini (2004b). By the term heading we mean the cutting back of a
young shoot to a bud or to shorten an old shoot to a lateral branch. With
heading, the growth of shoots close to the cut is promoted.
WHY PRUNE?
Pruning is an important agricultural task. There are many reasons why, and
circumstances when, olive trees should be pruned.
221
222
Chapter 20
To create new canopy after the olive tree has been damaged by frost, re,
pests or disease.
To give the appropriate shape to the olive canopy and to adjust the shape of
the tree canopy for the dense and super-high-density planting systems.
To improve the quality of olive fruit and oil.
RULES OF PRUNING
The style of pruning depends on olive tree age, crop load, the use of olives as
table or olive oil fruits, soil fertility, environmental conditions and fruit load.
Although these factors differ from one area to another and from cultivar to
cultivar, certain general rules are applicable to pruning.
It is not necessary to prune olive trees every year; in some cases pruning is
conducted every 2 years. Therefore, pruning cost is a very important factor.
Plant age is a determining factor of the type of pruning (light, medium,
severe).
The pruning method should be simple and fast; we can then check light
penetration into the canopy and assess the need for more severe pruning.
Pruning starts from the top of the tree and proceeds towards the base.
Large shoots are cut rst, followed by those of smaller diameter.
In mature plants pruning is light; pruning intensity increases with age of
plant.
The cut should be executed close to the point of attachment of the lateral
branch.
APICAL DOMINANCE
Growth in olives is controlled by endogenous hormones, and pruning can
modify the regular growth pattern by changing the hormone balance. Auxin
(IAA) is produced in the upper shoot tips, and in young leaves it is transported
downward via the phloem and exerts a certain degree of control on shoots,
buds and branches lying below the shoot tips. The large amount of IAA
produced and transported downwards affects the growth of shoots by the
following means:
These growth characteristics are linked to the supply of IAA and can be
modied by pruning, girdling or hormone application. The movement of auxin
Pruning
223
and its asymmetric distribution affects lateral bud inhibition, cambial activity
and stem elongation. The same endogenous concentration of auxin has varying
effects depending on the plant tissue, i.e. it inhibits growth of lateral buds and
stimulates cell division in the cambium. Therefore, when IAA produced by a
vigourous stem moves to the base of the stem, this results in a wider crotch angle.
EFFECTS OF PRUNING
Photosynthesis
The rate of CO2 assimilation per unit area of leaf is an important characteristic
of higher plants and integrates all the biochemical and biophysical processes.
Pruning techniques lead to removal and reduction of photosynthetic area. This
decreases the efciency of carbon assimilation and also the vigour of the
remaining shoots. Large decreases in leaf area by pruning negatively affect
olive tree growth. On the contrary, absence of pruning or very light pruning
has, as a consequence, the shading of the olive canopy.
Shading delays fruit ripening and decreases olive oil production. Due to
lack of pruning, in a dense canopy light penetration is sometimes very low and
less than 10% of sunlight intensity. Due to shading, ower bud differentiation
and fruit set can be low and this effect is a function of cultivar, duration of
shading and time of year. Hence, shading from July to October decreases ower
bud formation (Tombesi and Cartechini, 1986). Photosynthesis requires open
stomata, and therefore CO2 assimilation is concurrent with transpiration,
leading to water loss. This means that pruning removes a proportion of leaf
area and it reduces water consumption and improves water use efciency.
224
Chapter 20
These effects depend on the natural auxin supply, which can be modied
by pruning or hormone application. Decapitated shoots treated with
2501000 ppm of indolebutyric acid (IBA) resulted in wide branch angles of
all the shoots below that level. In contrast, girdling stopped the downward
movement of auxin and gave rise to narrow-angled branches.
PRUNING TOOLS
Essential tools are pruning shears, handsaw, chainsaw and gloves. Of these the
handsaw is an efcient tool for cutting shoots or branches of diameter 3080
cm. The chainsaw has to be light in weight, thus reducing the pruning time
and its cost. Furthermore, pneumatic tools may be used. All tools should be
clean and sharp and must be disinfected, especially if there is any possibility of
the presence of Pseudomonas syringae pv. savastanoi. When trees are thus
infected they should be sprayed foliarly with Cu or other pesticides. Large cuts
should be protected by covering with pruning pastes or paints.
Pruning
225
Removal of all broken shoots and branches, suckers and watersprouts, and
vigourous and very weak shoots.
Reduction of the tree to optimal height.
Removal of shoots from the upper part of the canopy to allow better light
penetration.
Reduction of the length of secondary branches.
Annual pruning of table olive cultivars.
Pruning of mature trees varies according to their training system.
226
Chapter 20
PRUNING SHAPES
The main canopy shapes created by pruning of olive trees are the following:
MECHANICAL PRUNING
Nowadays, it is difcult to nd persons with the necessary skill to prune olive
trees. Until recent times mechanization in olive pruning has been rare
(Giametta, 1988; Giametta and Zimbalatti, 1993, 1997; Ferguson et al., 1994,
2002). In the near future, due to increasing costs, mechanical pruning will be
the only viable alternative. Mechanical pruning requires a labour input of 4
h/100 trees in comparison with 128 h/100 trees for hand-pruning.
Pruning machinery generally has a linear arrangement of ve circular saws
(diameter 55 cm) rotating at a speed of 22002300 revs/min. The blades cut the
external edge of the olive canopy and the tractor works at low speed. The blades
cut horizontally at the top of the canopy and vertically or with inclination at the
Pruning
227
21
OLIVE RIPENING
INTRODUCTION
Olives are grown for one of two purposes: olive oil extraction and green mature
olives for processing. The olive fruit is a drupe and the ripening period is
determined by the time elapsing between the rst purple spots and the peel
turning black. By green maturation we mean the changes in fruit colour and
characteristics during the period the olives are green.
Olive growers have established certain harvesting dates and other criteria
such as fruit colour and fruit drop (Snobar, 1978). These criteria are used by
growers as indices in order to determine the initiation of harvesting. However,
in order to determine the optimum time for harvesting other parameters are
also of value, such as oil content, fruit detachment force and fruit colour.
229
230
Chapter 21
Olive Ripening
231
Fig. 21.1. The seasonal changes in fresh weight, water content, oil content and dry
weight of olive fruits.
Fig. 21.2. The seasonal variation in ash content of olive cv. Koroneiki during fruit
growth and ripening.
232
Chapter 21
Fig. 21.3. The seasonal changes in percentage dry weight and water content in
olive fruits.
Fig. 21.4. The seasonal changes in oil content (%) of the olive cv. Koroneiki
during fruit growth and ripening.
Olive Ripening
233
Fig. 21.5. The seasonal changes in reducing sugars (%) of the olive cv. Koroneiki
during fruit growth and ripening.
Fig. 21.6. Diagram showing the time course of olive fruit polyphenol levels and
colour changes.
234
Chapter 21
Fig. 21.7. Levels of hydroxytyrosol and its derivatives during fruit ripening as a
function of the irrigation method used during the period 2003/2004 (rainfed or
regulated decit irrigation, RDI).
3. Stage 3. The main characteristic of this stage is the small rate of fresh weight
increase, starting early in September and lasting to around 20 October.
4. Stage 4. The growth rate is rapid, commencing at the end of October and
continuing to early December.
5. Stage 5. This starts in the middle of December and ends during olive fruit
harvesting.
Olive Ripening
235
Water content
Water represents 70% of the fresh olive fruit weight. However, this percentage
depends on various factors such as stage of fruit growth, cultivar and water stress.
Table 21.1. Organic acid composition of virgin olive oil.
Fatty acid
Oleic acid
Palmitic acid
Linoleic acid
Steatic acid
Palmitoleic acid
Linolenic acid
Myristic acid
Arachidonic acid
Lignoceric acid
Heptadecanoic acid
Composition (%)
56.083.0
7.520.0
3.520.0
0.55.0
0.30.5
0.01.5
0.00.1
> 0.8
> 1.0
> 0.5
236
Chapter 21
Stone oil
3050
15
10
2545
12
25
1
10
15
2
35
Table 21.3. Comparison of organic acid content (%) of virgin olive oil with other oils.
Fatty acids
14:0
16:0
18:0
20:0
22:0
24:0
14:1
16:1
18:1
20:1
22:1
18:2
18:3
Olive
oil
Maize
oil
Linseed
oil
Soybean
oil
Cotton
seed
oil
Groundnut oil
Sunower
oil
Sesame oil
t
14
2
t
2
66
16
13
4
t
t
29
54
6
4
t
22
16
52
t
11
4
t
t
25
51
9
1
23
4
t
t
2
24
40
t
6
5
2
3
1
t
61
23
11
6
29
54
1
10
5
40
45
t, traces.
Sugars
Olive fruits contain the following sugars: glucose, fructose, mannose and
sucrose. The sugar concentration is high in the edible green olives. Sugars are
very important during fermentation in the production of lactic acid, which
gives olives their characteristic avour and also increases their storability.
Sugar levels, standing at 10% initially, are reduced to 12% during the
complete ripening process. The olive oil content, at 1% initially, is increased
gradually with the progress of ripening. The olive fruit passes through the stages
of green, red, bluish and black during ripening and ripens in 78 months from
owering. In the green stage, the fruit photosynthesizes, in the same manner as
Olive Ripening
237
the leaves, and contains a high concentration of starch and tannin. Slowly, the
olive oil is produced in the fruit and chlorophyll and starch disappear.
Oils
Fruit weight increases from September to December, almost solely due to oil
synthesis. Olive oil contains triglycerides, carbohydrates and alcohols
(0.51.5%). This process continues even when the day temperature falls below
13C. The production of triglycerides and elongation of the fatty acid chain are
a function of time. Through desaturation, oleic acid concentration increases.
Temperature decrease is the determining factor, which triggers the synthesis of
mono- or polyunsaturated fatty acids. Elongation leads to the formation of
chains of fatty acids longer than C16. Desaturation and the process of
elongation produce oleic acid, and the desaturation of oleic acid (C18:1)
produces linolenic acid (C18:2). The total yield and harvesting time both affect
oil content (Lavee and Wodner, 2004).
Oleuropein
This is the substance that gives the bitter avour to olive oil and olives and
belongs to the polyphenol group. Oleuropein levels are reduced during
ripening (Tovar et al., 2002). Oxidation of oleuropein gives the black colour to
ripe olives. Oleuropein under alkaline pH is transformed to caffeic acid. During
the processing of olives, oleuropein is removed by successive leaching with tap
water or by using NaOH and subsequent leaching.
Proteins
The olive fruit contains 1.53.0% protein. Furthermore, the olive fruit esh
contains free amino acids such as arginine, glutamic and aspartic acid.
238
Chapter 21
Three chloroplast pigments identied in olives are those of all green plant
tissues and do not undergo any change or modication during the stages of
ripening. The carotenoids 3-carotene, phytouene and luteoxanthin are
present in very small amounts. Both chlorophylls and carotenoids decrease as
the season progresses, almost disappearing at the moment of maturity, while
anthocyanins begin to appear, little by little, invading the skin and later the
whole pulp. The -chlorophyll is the major component, followed by chlorophyll. Carotenoids have been found to be minor components, such as
lutein, which is the major xanthophyll, and -carotene, the principal carotene.
Carotenoids present in olive oil are represented by xanthophylls, carotenoids a,
b and and lycopene. -Carotene comprises 85% and -carotene 15% of
carotenoids. As olive fruit ripens, photosynthetic activity decreases and
chlorophyll disappears. As a consequence, the colour of the skin changes from
green to yellow, reddish or red. During this period the concentration of
carotenoids and chlorophylls diminishes, while the proportion of xanthophylls
increases. Chlorophyll degradation is accompanied by the synthesis of other
compounds, anthocyanins, because the carotenoids do not produce the nal
pigmentation of the ripe fruits, i.e. reddish or purple.
Sterols
Olive oil contains various sterols such as campesterol (12%), stigmasterol
(0.5%), -sitosterol (89.5%), avenasterol (8.0%) and traces of cholesterol. The
sterol concentration of olive oil is 180265 mg/100 g. Olive oxidation reduces
the concentration of sterols. The most common sterols found in oils of plant
origin are campesterol, stigmasterol and -sitosterol. Determination of sterol
concentration provides a means of determining the authenticity of olive oil.
Aromatic compounds
Of the aromatic substances giving olive oil its characteristic aroma are included
40 aldehydes (C7C12), monosaturated aldehydes and terpenes (see Table 21.4).
Tocopherols
These are present in all oils of plant origin, and also in animal lipids. The
-tocopherol comprises 88.5% of all tocopherols in olive oil. The concentration
of -tocopherol in olive oil is 12150 ppm. Oils derived from the fruit stone
contain higher concentrations of tocopherols, which play the role of antioxidants. The concentration of tocopherols provides a means of determining the
authenticity of olive oil (see Table 21.5).
Olive Ripening
239
Aldehydes
Aliphatic alcohols
Isopentane
2-methyl-pentane
Hexane
Octane
Napthalene
Ethyl napthalene
Acetaldehyde
Propanol
2-methyl-butanol
Butanol
Pentanol
Methanol
Ethanol
Isopropyl alcohol
1-pentanol
3-methyl-butanol
1-penten-3-ol
1-exanol
1-heptanol
1-octanol
Monoenole
2-phenylethanol
+
Total
0.24
0.56
0.26
0.07
0.23
t
0.38
0.92
0.78
0.31
t
t
t
0.24
t
0.25
0.94
1.18
1.09
0.54
t, traces.
Phenols
These are antioxidative substances and are present in both leaves and fruit
(Ryan et al., 1999; Gomez-Rico et al., 2006). Important phenols include tyrosol
and hydroxytyrosol, which are produced after oleuropein hydrolysis. A
signicant portion of the phenols from the fruit esh is removed with the olive
mill wastes. Figures 3.6 and 3.7 present the mean ripening periods of 25 Greek
olive cultivars and 36 cultivars cultivated on a worldwide basis.
240
Chapter 21
RIPENING-RELATED CHANGES
Softening of the cell wall
The study of ripening in the olive is of great interest, because the ripening stage
of the fruit inuences the industrial production of olive oil and olive processing
(Jimenez et al., 2001). Ripening is usually characterized by softening due to
modication and/or degradation of cell wall components. Changes in cell
wall polysaccharides (Mafra et al., 2001) and cell wall-associated enzymes
(Fernndez-Bolanos et al., 1995; Mazzuca et al., 2006) play a signicant role in
determining olive fruit texture during ripening. During this process the changes
occurring are characterized by an increase in the solubilization of pectic and
hemicellulosic polysaccharides, i.e. an increase in the amount of arabinose in
pectic polysaccharides and a decrease in the degree of methylesterication of
pectic polysaccharides. With regard to cell wall phenolics, p-coumaric acid
levels increase at harvesting time (Briante et al., 2002a).
Olive Ripening
241
242
Chapter 21
Olive Ripening
243
A N1 + B N2 + C N3 + D N4 + E N5 + F N6 + G N7
100
244
Chapter 21
Olives destined for oil production are harvested when the fruit is ripe. This
means that a period of 78 months should elapsed after owering.
Table olives are harvested when fruit growth is complete and the colour
starts to change, for Californian-type olives. For green olive processing
harvesting starts earlier, before fruit softening commences. Fruit size is a
good criterion for harvesting for some table olive cultivars.
22
OLIVE FRUIT HARVESTING
INTRODUCTION
This chapter outlines the various methods employed in the harvesting of olive
fruits, from the simple and traditional to the modern and sophisticated.
HAND-HARVESTING
Most olive harvesting around the world still involves the traditional methods,
i.e. picking by hand (Martin et al., 1994b). Labourers pick the fruits one by one
or beat the tree, with poles, causing fruit drop. Under the trees, nets or canvases
are placed to collect the fallen fruits. This method of harvesting is timeconsuming, involves a high input of labour and a high percentage of fruit
damage. Also, the olive fruit may simply drop through natural forces on to the
harvesting nets. The cost of labour at harvesting represents 5580% of the
total labour cost of olive culture.
The use of poles for olive harvesting increases the tendency of trees to
biennial bearing, because it damages a signicant number of annual shoots
necessary for the following years crop.
Harvesting of olive fruit by hand, while the fruit is attached to the tree,
gives a high-quality fruit, while harvesting of olives allowed to drop naturally
to the ground produces olive oil with a high acidity and unpleasant taste.
245
246
Chapter 22
(b)
(a)
(c)
Fig. 22.1. Three versions of olive-beating machines: (a) with horizontal branches;
(b) with T-shape; and (c) with a vertical axis.
247
can harvest around 1000 kg/day. The T-shaped beating pole can harvest
1500 kg/day and is appropriate for all varieties. This version incorporates
six to eight exible beating poles, which revolve and harvest the fruit. The
percentage leaf drop with this device is lower in comparison with the linear
beating pole. The pneumatic beating pole is powered from a 12 v battery or
from an air compressor of 68 atm pressure, adapted to a tractor.
All types of machinery above should be tolerant to stress, have a high
degree of efciency and not be too heavy in use. After completion of the beating
of shoots, the olive fruits are harvested from plastic nets or canvases, or the
collection may done by hand if no nets are used. The soil should be at and
without stones; otherwise, the soil should be levelled off. Harvesting from the
ground is accomplished by a rotating cylinder with needles, which collect the
fruits. This method, however, damages the fruits and results in deterioration of
oil quality.
248
Chapter 22
Tweezers-type harvester
The main parts of this tool comprise two rotating cylinders. When the device is
closed the small shoots pass through the two cylinders and the fruits are
detached. Afterwards, collection of the detached fruits from the ground takes
place.
Plastic nets
Plastic nets are placed below each tree canopy before harvesting. These have
the disadvantage of their signicant cost and short duration of life. In order to
avoid olive drop on the ground, the nets are placed under the trees early and
remain there until the end of the harvesting period. Therefore, around 32% of
the olives are collected in the nets by natural drop and the remaining portion
after shoot-beating with pneumatic poles. Beating of olive trees increases the
tendency for biennial bearing. When using mechanical vibrating harvesters,
certain factors such as fruit tolerance to abscission, fruit weight, tree shape and
the power of the harvester may affect harvesting success. For reduction in FDF,
various substances have been tried, with varied results.
MECHANICAL HARVESTERS
The conventional methods of olive growing and the popularity of tall trees both
increase the cost of harvesting. Recent decades have seen the introduction of
harvesting for olives and other fruits by mechanical harvesters, which can
vibrate either only one branch or the whole tree The efciency of vibration and
its transmission is affected by the cultivar (Antognozzi et al., 1990a, b; Visco et
al., 2004). Each mechanical harvester consists of the vibration system, the
collection system (umbrella) and the fruit suction system (see Fig. 22.2). The
method of fruit collection consists of two semicircular pieces of cloth attached
to a metal skeleton, placed under the olive tree canopy.
This is an innovative type of harvester, incorporating an excavator that
controls the shaker and the gathering umbrella. It can harvest 15 or more olive
trees/h and has a harvesting efciency of 90.5%. The force necessary to vibrate
one branch is 810 Hp, and the trunk 40120 Hp; the maximum vibration
249
Fig. 22.2. Mechanical trunk vibrator with a reverse umbrella harvesting an olive
tree (from Tombesi, 2006).
power is 4000 cycles/min, suitable for the trunk 1200 cycles/min are
recommended for branches (see Fig. 22.3). Only single-trunked trees are
suitable for harvesting by this device. The fruit suction component consists of a
rotating axis, which creates the suction force. Furthermore, the air current
produced removes the leaves and other foreign material from the harvested
olives.
Over-row harvester
This harvester is derived from grape or coffee harvesters and vibrates the olive
fruit branches by means of ten to 12 shaking bars (see Fig. 22.4). The fruits are
collected by a chain, with baskets running at the same speed as the machine.
Fruit removal percentage is high (9095%), even in small-fruited varieties.
The harvester moves with a speed of operation between 0.3 and 1.0 Km/h. An
alternative system consists of a vertical axis with lateral sticks that vibrate.
Trees suitable for harvesting by this type of harvester should be lower than
2.5 m and no wider than 1.5 m, with elastic branches; therefore, dwarf and
very productive varieties are most suitable. For the SHD orchard (1600
trees/ha) Arbequina and Arbosana are the best varieties. Arbequina showed
the highest total production between the third and sixth years following
planting, followed by Arbosana and Koroneiki. Arbequina has a semi-erect
habit, Arbosana an open habit. In SHD orchards the objective is to attain
250
Chapter 22
Fig. 22.3. Trunk shaker for olive harvesting. The fruits drop and are collected on a
net or canvas placed under the tree canopy.
production by the third or fourth year, to use mechanical pruning and to use
efcient harvesting machines, in order to reduce costs. However, it is necessary
to determine for how many seasons the plantation remains economically
productive.
251
The trees should have only one trunk, 1525 cm or more in diameter and
trunk height 1 m in order to allow easy attachment of the vibrator to
the trunk.
The shoots located at the lowest part of the tree canopy should be cut, since
they represent obstacles to the use of a mechanical harvester.
The trees should have no more than three branches; if not, these are
removed. Experience has shown that branches of mature trees < 15 cm in
diameter are not suitable for vibration.
Vibration characteristics
The greater the acceleration the more easily the fruits are harvested. The
acceleration produced by a mechanical harvester is compared with the natural
forces required by the fruit in order to drop, and this is described by the
following equation:
Fruit acceleration = Fruit weight/Required force for fruit removal.
252
Chapter 22
Cycloheximide.
Ethrel (ethephon, 2-chloroethyl-phosphonic acid), producing ethylene
(Hartmann et al., 1970; Ben-Tal and Lavee, 1976b; Ben-Tal et al., 1979;
Lavee and Martin, 1981).
CGA (2-chloroethyl-tris-2-methoxy-ethoxy silane, or Alsol).
Chloroethyl-sulphonic acid.
253
Date of harvesting
As maturation proceeds the FDF is reduced and the fruits are harvested more
easily. The ratio of FDF:fruit weight is reduced with the progress of ripening, but
starts to increase again after the middle of the growth period.
Olive varieties with small fruits have a high F:W ratio (F, force, W, weight).
In contrast, large-fruited varieties with high FDF have a low ratio. The F:W
ratio may constitute a criterion for ease of fruit removal (Tsatsarelis, 1987). In
olives the maximum fruit abscission with a low leaf drop, by use of ethylenereleasing chemicals, is of great signicance. Once ethephon is applied, fruit
abscission starts within 3660 h; even after 810 h separation in the
abscission zone is obvious. Histochemical examination of the fruit abscission
zone indicates that considerable starch is accumulated close to the vascular
bundles, and its content does not change during abscission.
254
Chapter 22
2. Training system: olives should be trained in such a way that there is only
one trunk, 1.01.2 m in height.
3. Cultivar: the variety affects the shaking efciency, since that determines
fruit size, detachment force, maturity pattern and branch elasticity.
4. Fruit size and its FDF: fruits > 2 g are harvested easier than small fruits.
Fruit size also determines the fruit detachment force the FDF should be
around 4N (Newton), in order to facilitate the efciency of the harvester.
5. The optimum canopy volume is 4050 m3 (Tombesi, 2006).
23
OLIVE VARIETIES
INTRODUCTION
The olive tree has been cultivated for thousands of years and includes many
varieties, creating problems in their classication (Barranco et al., 2000). The
problem becomes more acute because, very often, the same cultivars at various
locations are known under different names (Therios, 2005b). The criteria for
classication of olive cultivars are the following:
Tree height.
Leaf and inorescence characteristics.
Fruit characteristics (shape, colour, size, percentages of esh and pit,
esh:pit ratio, shape of pit and seed, percentage of oil).
Precociousness and productivity.
Resistance to pests and diseases.
Adaptability to soil and climatic conditions.
Use of DNA markers to separate cultivars.
255
256
Chapter 23
Olive Varieties
257
Table 23.1. Number of local cultivars and synonyms by type (olive oil, table olives
or dual-purpose) grown throughout various countries worldwide.
Country
Albania
Algeria
Argentina
Australia
Brazil
Chile
China
Cyprus
Egypt
France
Greece
USA
India
Iraq
Israel
Italy
Jordan
Lebanon
Libya
Morocco
Mexico
Pakistan
Peru
Portugal
Spain
Tunisia
Turkey
Former
Yugoslavia
Total
Cultivars
Synonyms
Olive oil
Table
olives
21
51
6
2
1
9
1
6
99
60
3
10
46
476
3
13
6
6
1
1
1
19
196
50
34
28
33
2
435
67
2
13
1599
17
13
8
132
513
42
46
14
37
5
1
9
1
1
73
46
3
8
13
390
1
4
5
2
6
135
27
7
1
1
1
1
5
7
3
17
13
1
1
1
20
25
4
18
Dualpurpose
6
13
19
11
2
16
73
1
8
1
1
11
36
19
9
47
70
20
18
1188
512
812
117
259
258
Chapter 23
Cultivars
Spain
Italy
Portugal
Tunisia
Algeria
Morocco
France
Turkey
Argentina
Israel
Lebanon
USA
South Africa
Greece
Table 23.3. Twenty-four Greek olive cultivars of Olea europaea and their taxonomy.
Cultivar
Taxonomy
Konservolia
Karydolia
Gaidourolia
Amygdalolia
Kalamon
Adramitini
Kothreiki
Karolia
Kolymbada
Tragolia
Mastoidis
Throumbolia
Valanolia
Megaritiki
Lianolia Kerkiras
Maurolia
Koroneiki
Vasilikada
Aguromanacolia
Kalokaerida
Myrtolia
Dafnolia
Asprolia
Chrysolia
Olive Varieties
259
has started to be grown in the form of super-dense plantings all over the world
(e.g. Australia, Italy, Spain). The leaves are thick, with a small leaf blade. The
length of the blade is 4.55.2 cm and the ratio of length:width is 4.25.5:1.
The fruit is very small (0.5 g), with a mastoid shape and ending in a teat. The
fruit ripens from mid- to late season and turns black at full ripening. The pit is
small and cylindroconical in shape. The ratio of esh:pit is 1.634.06:1. The
medium yield per tree is 5060 kg. This cultivar is resistant to water stress and
wind, but sensitive to Dacus oleae, Euphyllura olivina, Pseudomonas savastanoi
and attacks from rhynchites. The olive oil content is 27%. Its tolerance to cold
is low and its rooting ability from leafy cuttings is constant and medium.
260
Chapter 23
Lianolia Patron
Other names of this cultivar are Ladolia, Lianolia, Kothrelia, Kutrelia,
Kutsurelia or Kutsuliera. This variety is cultivated in the Greek area of
Peloponnese. The tree height is 57 m, the leaves are small and the fruit is
spherical. The mean weight of fruits is 0.91.7 g (6001100 fruits/kg). Its oil
content is 1528%.
Galatsaniki
Other names of this cultivar are Agiou Orous or Galatistas. This is a mediumsized cultivar with cylindroconical fruit, ending in a teat. Its oil content is 20%.
It ripens early (September) and its fruit at ripening becomes completely black.
This cultivar is sensitive to Dacus and Cycloconium, but tolerant to cold.
Olive Varieties
261
Thasitiki
Other names of this cultivar are Thasou, Throumba or Throumbolia. It is a
Greek cultivar grown on the Greek island of Thasos (northern Greece). Its fruit
is cylindroconical in shape, ending in a teat. This is a dual-purpose cultivar
with 20% oil content. The leaves are dark green and the shoots are hanging. It
is resistant to cold, Cycloconium and Bacterium tumefaciens.
262
Chapter 23
fully ripe, and it has a mean oil content of 17%. The esh:pit ratio is 6.72:1. This
is partially non-self-fruiting and its best pollinizers are the cultivars Manzanillo
or Gordales. The tree obtains a height of 710 m; its growth is erect, with broad
dark green leaves (89 cm 1.52.0 cm). The fruit has a cylindroconical shape
and the ratio of esh:pit is 8.3:1. The esh of the fruit is compact and the fruit
ripens in late NovemberDecember. It is resistant to Dacus and needs mediumtextured soils with an optimum pH of 7.0. During the summer it requires at least
three irrigations in order to produce fruit of adequate size. Since it is a vigourous
cultivar N fertilization should be carefully adjusted. This cultivar does not root
easily with leafy cuttings under mist propagation, and it is the best known Greek
olive cultivar, with a worldwide reputation. It is an excellent table variety
producing a high-quality product as regards colour, texture and taste. Although
it originated in the region of Kalamata in south-east Peloponnese, it has proved its
adaptability as an excellent cultivar in both warm and cold areas worldwide.
Frantoio
Other names for this cultivar include Paragon (in Australia), Frantoijano,
Corregiolo, Razzo and Gentile. These ve are all considered to belong to
Olive Varieties
263
the same family or population. The cv. Paragon of Australia, after DNA
analysis, has been shown to be similar to the cv. Frantoio grown in the
Tuscany region of Italy. This is the most productive cultivar in central Italy, is
very adaptable to various conditions and is very cold resistant. The oil quality
and avour are both excellent. The productivity is light to medium and this is
one of the most important olive trees in New Zealand. It does not require
chilling for owering bud differentiation. Although this cultivar is considered
self-fruiting, the use of the cv. Pendulina as pollinator may increase the yield
by up to 10%. The proportion of pollinators should be 510% of the trees
in an orchard. Frantoio is considered as being sensitive to peacock spot
(Cycloconium oleaginum).
FS-17
This cultivar originated from free pollination of the cultivar Frantoio and it is
a widespread variety throughout Italy. The cultivar FS-17 is highly suited to
dense planting and mechanical harvesting (Fontanazza et al., 1998).
Nowadays this cultivar is grown in many parts of the world Italy, Spain,
South Africa, Argentina, Chile, Greece and Australia. It is an excellent variety
for oil production and has low vigour, the tree having a drooping appearance.
The leaves are medium-sized and elliptical. The fruit weight is 24 g and the
esh:pit ratio 9.73:1, with an oval pit. FS-17 roots very easily under mist
propagation and is self-fruiting. The owering period and ripening season are
both average. The tree starts producing early and its productivity is stable and
high. It can be used as rootstock for the cultivar Giaraffa, reducing the vigour
of the latter by 50%.
Manzanillo
This is also known as Manzanilla, Manzanilla de Sevilla or Fina. The tree is
about 7 m in height at maturity. The canopy is spreading, is highly productive
and early bearing. The tree grows better in warm locations without heavy
frosts, and it is considered to be the worlds most popular table olive, especially
in California and Spain.
The size of the fruit is medium (4.8 g, 200280 fruits/kg) and the
esh:stone ratio is 8.2:1 (see Fig. 23.2). The shape of the fruit is oval, with a
thick skin and good texture. The fruit at maturation has a slightly violetblack
colour. It is a cultivar sensitive to extended cold periods, and represents 60 and
80% of green pickling fruit for Mediterranean countries and California,
respectively. It is considered as the best dual-purpose olive cultivar in the world.
Manzanillo is susceptible to Verticillium wilt. For good production and crosspollination the cvs Sevillana and Santo Agostino are used as pollinators.
264
Chapter 23
The tree is very productive. It produces every year and its propagation by
leafy cuttings under mist is difcult. The fruit contains 20% oil and has a small
pit. The esh of this cultivar contains also 5.65% total sugars (5.41%
reducing). Examination by RAPD (Random Amplied Polymorphic DNA)
revealed that Manzanillo consists of 14 genotypes, as shown in Table 23.4.
Meski
Meski is a table olive cultivar that is self-sterile, with medium rooting ability
and low oil content. It has low tolerance to cold, Cycloconium oleaginum,
drought, iron chlorosis and lime, medium tolerance to Pseudomonas savastanoi
and high tolerance to salinity and Veticillium dahliae. This cultivar is distributed
throughout Tunisia, Argentina, Turkey and the USA. Synonyms of this cultivar
are Gerbide, Getlet and Gherlide.
Mission
This cultivar is dual-purpose, i.e. for both table and olive oil production. It is selffertile, with high rooting ability of leafy cuttings under mist, and its tendency for
alternate bearing is intermediate. The tolerance of this cultivar is high to cold,
medium to drought and Pseudomonas savastanoi and low to Aspidiotus hederae,
Cycloconium oleaginum, Gloesporium olivarum, Parlatoria oleae, Saissetia oleae,
Verticillium dahliae and salinity. Mission is distributed throughout Argentina,
Australia, Azerbaijan, Egypt, Iraq, Japan, the USA and other areas.
Olive Varieties
265
Origin
Manzanilla sevillana
Manzanilla de Carmona
Manzanilla de Tortosa
Manzanilla de Jaen
Manzanilla de Sevilla
Manzanilla dos Hermanas
Manzanilla Hermanas
Manzanilla del Piquito
Manzanilla de Almodovar
Manzanilla Italy
Manzanilla Carrasquena
Manzanilla Commune Argentina
Hass improved Manzanilla
Manzanilla Israel
Spain
Spain
Spain
Spain
Spain
Spain
Spain
Spain
Italy
Portugal
Argentina
Argentina
USA
Israel
Arbequina
Arbequina is an oil-producing cultivar with high oil content, very productive,
producing every year and with a high rooting ability for its leafy cuttings.
Arbequina is very tolerant to cold, salinity and high atmospheric moisture,
moderately tolerant to drought, Pseudomonas savastanoi and poorly tolerant to
Bactrocera oleae, Cycloconium oleaginum, Gloesporium olivarum, iron chlorosis,
Meloidogyne arenaria, Meloidogyne incognita, Meloidogyne javanica, Pratylenchus
266
Chapter 23
Saloneque
This variety has medium vigour and adequate productivity. The inorescences
have many owers; the fruit is oval and of medium size. The green ripe fruits
are used for canning.
Tanche
The tree is very vigourous and very tolerant to cold. Its inorescences are short
and compact. The productivity of the tree is good and constant. The fruit is of
medium size, heart-shaped and it is used for canning.
Coratina
This cv. originated in Italy. The tree is of medium size, spherical and with long
shoots. The leaves are elliptical in shape, the fruit weighs 4.5 g and is oval in
shape. The season of ripening is average and its oil content is 2126%. The
cultivar is non-self-fruiting, with high and constant productivity. The best
pollinizers for this cultivar are Frantoio and Moraiolo. It is tolerant to water
stress and cold and it has adapted to varying soil conditions.
Olive Varieties
267
Aglandau
This is an oil-producing cultivar with medium oil content, self-fertile, an
intermediate tendency for alternate bearing and a high rooting ability for leafy
cuttings. The cultivar is considered as being very tolerant to cold and
Pseudomonas savastanoi, moderately tolerant to Bactrocera oleae, drought, Prays
oleae, Saissetia oleae and wind and poorly tolerant to Cycloconium oleaginum. This
cultivar is distributed throughout France, Azerbaijan, Australia and Ukraine
and is also known by various synonyms such as Aglandaou, Aglando, Airane,
Argental, Blancane, Blanchet, Blanquet, Blanquette, Olivier Commun,
Verdale, Verdaou and Luzen.
268
Chapter 23
and Attiki. The tree height is 58 m, with light green leaves and
cylindroconical fruits of average weight 58 g, with a teat. The ratio of esh:pit
is 6.6:1 and its oil content is 14%. This is a processing cultivar appropriate for
green and black ripe olives.
Chondrolia Chalkidikis
This variety is cultivated mostly in the region of Chalkidiki (northern Greece).
Its fruit is very large and can exceed 10 g in weight. It is sensitive to frost and
non-self-fruiting. The best pollinizers of this cultivar are Amphissis,
Megaritiki, Koroneiki, Manzanillo and Gordales. The main use of this
cultivar is for either pickling of green olives or stuffed (with almond or chili)
green olives. The remaining product inappropriate for processing is used for oil
production. It is very sensitive to Dacus oleae.
Olive Varieties
269
Ascolano
This is a large-fruited variety (810 g) with low oil content (13%). The esh has a
pleasant taste and is easily separated from the pit. The esh:pit ratio is 8.2:1. The
period of ripening is during the middle of October. The tree is vigourous, with a
spreading habit. The cv. Ascolana tenera originated from Ascolano, which is selffruiting and tolerant to Cycloconium, Bacterium tumefaciens and low temperatures.
Ascolana tenera
The tree is vigourous, with a very dense canopy and grows with a spreading
habit. The leaves are medium-sized, elliptical in shape and dark green. The fruit
is ellipsoid and asymmetrical. The mean fruit weight is 810 g and is used for
pickling table olives. The esh comprises 86% of the fruit and its oil content is
270
Chapter 23
Santo Agostino
The region of origin of this cultivar is the area of Puglia, in Italy. The tree is
vigourous and the fruit is large (89 g), asymmetric and oval. The fruit is
harvested during September for production of green canned olives and the
period of ripening is November. The fruit esh represents 90% of its weight. The
cultivar is self-sterile and the best pollinizers are the cultivars Moraiolo and
Corregiolo. It resists Cycloconium oleaginum.
Santa Caterina
This originated from Italy. The tree is vigourous and spherical, with light green
leaves. The fruit weighs 79 g, is elliptical and asymmetric in shape. It ripens
early and harvesting starts in September. Its tolerance to cold is adequate and
moderate to Cycloconium oleaginum.
Grossa di Spagna
This also originated in the Puglia region of Italy. The vigour of the tree is
average, with dense shoots. The leaves are of medium size, elliptical in shape
and dark green. The fruit weight is 912 g and its shape is elliptical and
asymmetric. The period of ripening is early and the fruit esh comprises 75% of
the fruit, containing 1619% olive oil. Its productivity is medium to high. The
cultivar is self-sterile and the best pollinizers are the cultivars Maurino,
Coratina, Pentolino, Frantoio and Leccino. It is suitable for green olive
canning and requires fertile and irrigated soils.
24
TABLE OLIVES
INTRODUCTION
Worldwide interest exists in using processing methods for olives such as brine,
fermentation and salt-/heat-drying methods rather than processing with lye
(caustic soda). Primary processing involves any of several operations (soaking,
fermentation, lye treatment or heat). Secondary processing involves increasing
the organoleptic value of the olive by, e.g. addition of herbs, spices or vegetables,
de-stoning and stufng with peppers, cheeses, almonds, garlic or onion.
The most important table olive varieties internationally are Kalamata,
Conservolia, Manzanillo, Sevillana, Hojiblanca and Ascolana tenera.
The Californian table olive industry is based on ve cultivars; in order of
volume sales they are Manzanillo, Sevillano, Mission, Ascolano and
Barouni (Ferguson, 2006). Many olive products have now attained a
worldwide commercial base, i.e.:
Kalamata type.
Green ripe Californian type.
Castelvetrano type (Romeo et al., 2006).
Throumbes.
Sicilian-type green olives.
Picholine type.
Spanish green olives.
271
272
Chapter 24
Table Olives
273
PROCESSING
Raw olives are bitter and require processing in order to become suitable for
consumption. Processing should be conducted under good sanitary practices
in order to maintain all ingredients and all the necessary chemical and
microbiological standards. Processing affects the concentration of the major
compounds, depending on the type of olive (see Table 24.1; Bianchi, 2003).
For high-quality table olives the following requirements are important:
Good-quality water.
Excellent quality of raw olives.
Excellent quality of the chemicals and additives used.
Table 24.1. The effect of processing on the major compounds in three types of
processed table olives (from Bianchi, 2003).
Olive type
Compound
Spanish style
Greek style
Californian style
Triglycerides
Phenols
No change
No change or
decrease
No change or
decrease
Decrease
Decrease
No change
No change
No change or
decrease
No change or
decrease
Decrease
Decrease
No change
No change
Decrease
Triterpene acids
Glucosides
Sugars
Proteins
No change or
decrease
Decrease
Decrease
No change
274
Chapter 24
Olive products
Such products are marketed as green olive paste, olive rollers, stuffed olives and
marinaded olives.
Bruised olives
These are derived from green ripe olives or those turning colour. They are
crushed in such a way that the esh is exposed, without breaking the stone.
The olives are then de-bittered in water and packed into containers containing
brine, to undergo natural fermentation.
Table Olives
275
Split olives
Black ripe or green ripe olives may be used. The olives are split longitudinally
with a knife or other device, to penetrate the esh. They are then de-bittered
with or without a lye treatment and packed into containers with brine to
undergo natural fermentation. After fermentation, oil, lemon or vinegar can
be added.
Water-cured olives
This method involves immersion in fresh water every day for 10 days, to
achieve de-bittering. With every water change the bitter substance oleuropein
is leached out of the olives and the leaching solution is discarded. Subsequently,
the olives are stored in 10% brine. This method is fast, but it requires
large quantities of water, which create disposal problems with regard to
contamination of the environment. After de-bittering, vinegar or oil may be
added. With this process the traditional Kalamata variety of olive (naturally
black) is produced.
Brine-cured olives
The raw olives are put into containers containing 10% (w/v) sodium chloride
(NaCl). The olives absorb the NaCl and a slow fermentation takes place
(Division of Agricultural Science, University of California, 1975). Over the
following 8 weeks, the concentrations of salt in the fruit and the brining
solution equilibrate. Due to salinity effects the water-soluble oleuropein,
phenolics and minerals leach out from the olive fruits. During this period
fermentation occurs, with the sugars being transformed into lactic and acetic
acids, and other substances. The entire process lasts from 3 to 12 months
depending on the variety, ripening, salt concentration and pH of the brine.
Slicing the olives speeds up the de-bittering process. Ready-forconsumption naturally black olives in brine have a pH of 4.54.8, free acidity
of 0.10.6% w/v (lactic acid) and NaCl of 10% (w/v).
276
Chapter 24
tanks containing 12% NaOH (lye) for 812 h for de-bittering. When the NaOH
has penetrated through three-quarters of the esh the lye is removed. The
remaining esh not de-bittered supplies sugars necessary for fermentation.
Penetration of the lye is checked by observing the colour changes following
slicing. Also, by application of phenolophthalein solution to the cut esh the
colour changes from green to red. After de-bittering, the NaOH is removed by
several washings of good-quality water. Subsequently, the tanks are lled with
10% NaCl for lactic acid fermentation. These olives are suitable for human
consumption within 5 weeks. The characteristics of this ready-to-eat product
are: pH 3.84.2, free acidity 0.81.2% w/v (lactic acid) and NaCl 78% (w/v).
The varieties processed by this method include Manzanillo, Sevillana
and Chondrolia Chalkidikis.
FERMENTATION OF OLIVES
Aerobic fermentation
Aerobic fermentation of olives is based on the action of lactic acid, which is
produced from lactic acid bacteria starter cultures (Marsilio et al., 2005), or
from Lactobacillus and yeasts grown in the sugars released from olives during
processing (Marsilio, 2006). In the process of olive fermentation lactic and
acetic acids are produced; these acids lower the pH of the substrate. The dual
Table Olives
277
Anaerobic fermentation
Another process used in table olive production is anaerobic fermentation,
either as an initial process or after de-bittering of the olives by the application of
lye. With this process the organic substrates of the fruits are broken down to
produce lactic acid. Mature olives are habituated by homofermentative and
heterofermentative lactic acid bacteria and yeasts.
The following Gram-negative bacteria can be found in olives:
These bacteria ferment sugars and liberate CO2; the CO2 dissolves in the
brine and produces H2CO3, which lowers the pH to about 5. The duration of
this process is 34 days. The same chemical process is achieved by the addition
of lactic acid. The lowering of pH and the established anaerobic conditions
prevent the further growth of Gram-negative bacteria, and the product is
therefore stabilized. Processed olives should maintain some bitterness and fruit
avour. Yeasts and moulds are also natural inhabitants of the olive fruit.
278
Chapter 24
The table olive processing facility should follow all statutory regulations
regarding food, health and protection of the environment. The processing unit
is comprised of the following areas:
25
OLIVE OIL
EXTRACTION
For olive oil extraction three systems are available:
Olive production involves the twin stages of milling and separation of the
oil from water, resulting in three constituents oil, husk (solid waste) and
waste water. In the traditional method milling is conducted with a millstone or
hammer stone, and oil extraction is achieved by hydraulic pressure.
In the continuous cycle, grinding of the olives is achieved by metal
crushers, and subsequently the olive paste is centrifuged with a horizontal
centrifugal decanter. Afterwards, the oil is separated from waste water by a
vertical centrifuge. Extra virgin olive oil is produced by cold pressing of the olive
paste. The process of oil extraction inuences the phenolic content of the oil.
Oils obtained by centrifugation have a lower phenolic content, since this
method uses large quantities of water, thus removing a signicant proportion
of the phenols. Furthermore, the type of mill used for oil production exerts a
signicant inuence, and hammer mills are more efcient in extraction of
phenol.
The phenolic composition of olive oils is the result of a complex interaction
between several factors, which include cultivar, stage of maturation, climate,
mill as crushing machine and malaxation conditions. Malaxation is the action
of slowly churning or mixing milled olives in a specially designed mixer for
2040 min. This churning allows the smaller droplets of oil released by the
milling process to aggregate and be more easily separated. The paste is
normally heated to around 27C during this process.
279
280
Chapter 25
Table 25.1. The main characteristics in the categorization of olive oil, according to
EU Regulation 2568/91.
Oil
category
Extra virgin olive oil
Virgin olive oil
Curante virgin olive oil
Lampante virgin olive oil
Rened olive oil
Olive oil
Non-processed pomace oil
Rened pomace oil
Pomace olive oil
Free
acidity (%)
1.0
2.0
3.3
> 3.3
0.5
1.5
0.5
0.5
1.5
Peroxide
index
20
20
20
> 20
5
15
5
15
Waxes
(mg/kg)
250
250
250
350
350
350
> 350
Olive Oil
281
282
Chapter 25
CERTIFICATION
A great number of certications exist, the two most important of which, in the
context of olives, are described below.
Table 25.2. Quality criteria and standards for olive oil, according to EU Regulation
2568/91.
Oil category
Extra virgin oil
Virgin oil
Ordinary virgin oil
Lampante oil
Rened olive oil
Olive oil
Free
acidity (%)
Peroxide
index
K270
K232
K
Mean
defects
0.8
2.0
3.3
> 3.3
0.3
1.0
20
20
20
5
15
0.22
0.25
0.25
1.10
0.90
2.5
2.5
2.60
0.01
0.01
0.01
0.16
0.15
0
2.5
2.56.0
> 6.0
Olive Oil
283
Table 25.3. Purity and authenticity standards for olive oil (from IOOC data,
www.cesonoma.ucdavis.edu/hortic).
Content and composition
Individual sterols (mg/kg)
Cholesterol
Campesterol
Stigmasterol
D-7-stigmasterol
-sitosterol
Total sterols (mg/kg)
Fatty acids composition f
Myristic acid, C14:0
Palmitic acid, C16:0
Palmitoleic acid, C16:1
Heptadecenoic acid, C17:0
Heptadecenoic acid, C17:1
Steatic acid, C18:0
Oleic acid, C18:1
Linoleic acid, C18:2
Linoleic acid, C18:3
Arachidic acid, C20:0
Gadoleic acid, C20:1
Behenic acid, C22:0
Saturated fatty acids (%)
Statutory level
Max. 0.5a,b
Max. 4.0a,b
Max. 0.5a.b
Min. 93a,b
Min. 1600b, 1000c, 2500d, 1800e
Max. 0.05a,b
7.520a,b
0.33.5a,b
Max. 0.3a,b
Max. 0.3a,b
0.55.0a,b
55.083.0a,b
3.521.0a,b
Max. 1.0 (EU = 0.3)a,b
Max. 0.6a,b
Max. 0.4a,b
Max. 0.2a,b
Max. 1.5 (EU = 1.3)a,c,e
Max. 1.8 (EU = 1.5)e
Max. 1.8 (EU = 1.5)a
Max. 2.2 (EU = 2.0)d
Max. 2.2 (EU = 2.0)b
aOlive oil; brened pomace oil; cvirgin oil; dcrude pomace oil; erened olive oil; f% of
methylesters.
284
Chapter 25
Free acidity
Free acidity is an indicator of the quality of olives and of the procedures of
harvesting, handling, transportation and storage prior to olive milling. Free
acidity measures the hydrolytic breakdown of triglycerides to di- and
monoglycerides, leading to fatty acid liberation. It is expressed as percentage
free fatty acids especially on the basis of oleic acid, which is the main fatty
acid in olive oil.
Peroxide index
Peroxide index is an indicator of oxidation, the means of creating peroxides in
olive oil. High peroxide values mean that the olive oil is defective and that the
olives were not correctly treated before oil extraction. Peroxide values are
expressed in milliequivalents (meq)/kg of free O2 in oil. Measurement is
conducted by titration with potassium iodide, which liberates iodine.
Flashpoint
The parameter of ashpoint measures the temperature at which the oil begins
to burn. The ashpoint in rened olive oil, pomace oil and seed oils is
190200C, while in virgin oils it is 210220C.
Olive Oil
285
Insoluble impurities
These provide an index of the presence of impurities, such as alkaline soaps of
palmitic and stearic acids, proteins suspended in the oil, dirt, oxidized fatty
acids, resins and mineral elements. Insoluble impurities are expressed as a
percentage and are determined by dissolving oil in petroleum ether, and
subsequently by ltration of impurities.
Colour
The type of lipophilic pigments present in the olive oil at harvesting, such as
chlorophylls or carotenoids, determines its colour.
Flavour
The avour is due to the presence of volatile substances, organic acids such as
oleic and linoleic, and also polyphenols.
The quality of oil depends on both the microclimate of the olive grove and
anthropogenic factors. The organoleptic characteristics (avour, aroma) and
the colour depend on soil and climatic conditions and also on the olive cultivar.
The time of olive harvesting also determines oil quality. Harvesting should be
completed quickly, and so too should processing for oil production. In that way,
any potential problems due to Dacus oleae, fruit deterioration or oxidation are
reduced. Reduction in the use of phytoprotective chemicals and replacing them
by biological means improves oil quality. Finally, signicant improvement in
olive oil quality has been achieved by reducing the time from harvesting to
extraction in the mills.
Olive oil has a high biological and nutritional value. However, it can be
polluted with certain chemicals dangerous to human health during the stages
of extraction, rening, bottling and marketing. These include the following:
286
Chapter 25
AUTHENTICITY
Authenticity means that the oil purchased by the consumer matches its
description. Undeclared addition of vegetable oils and false statements
regarding the source of the oil (geographic origin, cultivar, organic olive oil) are
examples of adulteration (Bazakos, 2007). Growers prefer the production of
superior-quality olive oil, since they can market it more easily and at higher
prices. Food distributors also want their products to comply with current
legislation. Furthermore, most consumers are ready to pay more for olive oil
they consider of high quality derived from cultivation practices, method of
processing, cultivar or geographic origin.
DETECTION OF ADULTERATION
Detection of adulteration is possible by the use of certain analytical methods.
However, adulteration methods are constantly changing and there is always a
need for reassessment of these techniques. Nowadays, various conventional or
non-conventional methods have been developed for detection of adulteration.
Conventional methods are those not based on DNA analysis.
Conventional methods
These methods are based on the analysis of various constituents and properties
of olive oil. Olive oil could be adulterated by other vegetable oils such as pomace
oil, maize oil, groundnut oil, sunower oil, soybean oil, sesame oil, animal
lipids or other sources.
Conventional control of olive oil adultery includes the following methods.
Determination of physical and chemical constants and chemical
compounds of olive oil (Aparicio et al., 1997)
These constants include specic gravity, iodine number, refraction index and
chemometric procedures (Bucci et al., 2002). They are increased by any
adulteration by groundnut oil, cotton oil, soybean oil, sunower oil, maize oil
or sesame oil.
Changes in squalene concentration
The accepted level of squalene (a natural organic compound) is 136708
mg/100g of olive oil. Adulteration shows values outside this range.
Ultraviolet (UV) absorption
Ultraviolet absorption in vegetable oils, at 208210 nm, is three times greater
than that of olive oil.
Olive Oil
287
ULTRAVIOLET (UV), VISIBLE (VIS) AND INFRARED (IR) OR FTIR SPECTROSCOPY Ultraviolet,
VIS, IR and Fourier Transform Infrared (FTIR) electromagnetic radiation all
interact with various materials which, upon excitation, emit light that can be
measured.
The techniques described above represent non-destructive spectroscopic
methods used to distinguish authentic and non-authentic olive oil samples
(Tapp et al., 2003).
CHROMATOGRAPHY Various forms of chromatography are used, such as gas
chromatography (GC), liquid chromatography (LC), thin-layer chromatography
(TLC) and high-performance liquid chromatography (HPLC). The stationary
phase consists of a thin layer of liquid held in place on the surface of a porous
inert solid. A wide variation of liquid combinations are suitable. The movement
of a mobile phase results is a differential migration and separation of the sample
components. The stationary phase can be either a solid or liquid and the mobile
phase can be liquid or gas (liquidsolid, LSC, or liquidliquid, LLC).
These methods achieve a rapid and reliable separation of molecules with
similar characteristics, based on partition of the molecules between a mobile
and a stationary phase. They are used for the detection of certain adulterants
or to determine oil authenticity. The principles of these methods are:
ENZYMATIC METHODS
288
Chapter 25
Non-conventional methods
The residual DNA of olive oil can be used to determine olive oil authenticity
(Cresti et al., 1996; Muzzalupo et al., 2007; Spaniolas et al., 2008b).
DNA polymorphism
This is dened as genetic changes in the DNA of certain materials, i.e. the genome
of the nucleus, mitochondria or ribosomes, and also of other organelles. Molecular
markers provide information about variations in the DNA sequence. The main
molecular markers are RAPD, SCAR, AFLP, SSR, SNP and intron polymorphism
(Spaniolas et al., 2008a). These markers can be used to determine olive oil
authenticity. A short description of these markers is now given.
RAPD (Random Amplied Polymorphic DNA)
This marker provides a fast and low-cost method, and also requires only a small
amount of DNA. It uses one or two primers in order to provide information on
the multi-banded ngerprints of a genome.
SCAR (Sequence Characterized Regions)
A method involving two specic primers that amplify a well-dened genetic
locus, which is derived by sequencing a single RAPD amplicon. The
polymorphism between SCAR bands is determined by variation in length of the
sequence between the two primes.
AFLP (Amplied Fragment Length Polymorphism)
The origin of polymorphism in AFLP is the same as that of RFLP, i.e. changes in
restriction site sequence, deletions or insertions between two adjacent
restriction sites.
SSR (Simple Sequence Repeats)
These markers are also known as microsatellites and consist of 110 bp, which
are repeated in tandem; the number of repetitions is variable (Carriero et al.,
2002).
Olive Oil
289
290
Chapter 25
methods are not always able to detect the region of origin of olive oil, since
environment affects chemical composition and phenotype. Molecular markers
can distinguish or identify cultivars, estimate germplasm variability and trace
olive origin. Molecular markers are not affected by the environment and
can help resolve problems such as nursery certication, variety identity,
geographic origin and identication of germplasm collections; many olive
cultivars are screened by Random Amplied Polymorphic DNA (RAPD). The
SSRs (Simple Sequence Repeats) are of small size and can be detected in
degraded DNA, as can DNA extracted from olive oil. Amplied fragment length
polymorphism and microsatellites have also been used. However, a reliable and
promising molecular marker that can signicantly contribute to olive oil
characterization is the single nucleotide polymorphism (SNP). In olives, SNPs
have been used to classify olive cultivars and can differentiate 72% of the olive
samples tested.
From the 60 Greek varieties 43 have been sequenced. According to the
SNP database of the Greek olive varieties, an initial differentiation was carried
out. The SNP data resulted from lupeol synthase and cycloartenol synthase
targets. However, more genes are required to be sequenced and analysed. By
this technique 19 of the 43 varieties can efciently be tested for adulteration.
These varieties are given in Table 25.4: Amssis, Asprolia Lefkados,
Adramytini, Agouromanakolia, Gaidourelia, Kalokairida, Koutsourelia,
Koroneiki, Kothreiki, Klonares Koropiou, Kerkyras, Mastoides,
Rachati, Thiaki, Tragolia, Throumbolia, Strogylolia, Valanolia and
Vasilikada. In some varieties only one SNP is enough for their differentiation.
Furthermore, classication can be performed in some varieties in relation to
the region of origin. Hence, Adramytini from the Greek island Lesbos can be
differentiated from that from Agios Mamas (northern Greece) through the
SNP(13) of lupeol synthase. Also, Koroneiki and Mastoides from Chania can
be differentiated from Koroneiki and Mastoides from Agios Mamas through
SNP(6) and SNP(2) of lupeol synthase, respectively. The same differentiation is
possible in many other varieties, such as Gaidourelia, Agouromanakolia, etc.
Some groups of varieties have the same SNPs and cannot be differentiated, e.g.
Chondrolia Chalkidikis and Karydolia Chalkidikis.
The varieties Amygdalolia and Kalamon exhibit no difference in SNP
positions, but they can be differentiated by SNP(1), SNP(2), SNP(2+) of lupeol
synthase and SNP(6), SNP(8), SNP(9) and SNP(10) of cycloartenol synthase.
Table 25.5 presents the Greek SNP database of lupeol synthase (lupeol 2Flupeol 2R).
Olive Oil
291
Table 25.4. Differentiation of olive varieties according to their SNP position (from
Bazakos, 2007).
Olive variety
SNP position
Amssis
Asprolia Lefkados
Adramytini (Lesbos)
Agouromanakolia (NAGREF Chania)
Gaidourelia (NAGREF Chania)
Gaidourelia (Kostelenos)
Kalokairida
Koutsourelia (NAGREF Chania)
Koutsourelia (Kostelenos)
Koroneiki (NAGREF Chania)
Koroneiki (Kostelenos and NAGREF
Agios Mamas)
Kothreiki (NAGREF Agios Mamas)
Klonares Koropiou
Kerkyras
Mastoides (Metzidakis)
Mastoides (Kostelenos and NAGREF
Agios Mamas)
Rachati
Thiaki
Tragolia
Throumbolia
Strogylolia
Valanolia (Lesbos)
Valanolia (Kostelenos and NAGREF
Agios Mamas)
Vasilikada
Chondrolia Chalkidikis, Karydolia
Chalkidikis
Konservolia, Dafnelia
Zakinthou, Lianolia Kerkyras
Amygdalolia, Kalamon
Galatistas, Dopia Spetson
Throumbolia (NAGREF Chania),
Kolireiki, Karolia, Matolia,
GPL, Kolympada, Karydolia
Agouromanakolia (Kostelenos),
Adramytini (Kostelenos, NAGREF
Chania, NAGREF Agios Mamas),
Manaki (Kostelenos, NAGREF Agios
ios Mamas), Smertolia, Throumbolia
(NAGREF Chania)
CT
AC?
AG
AT
AA
GG
AC?
CC
GG
AG
Chapter 25
Koroneiki (Kostelenos)
CC
TC
CC
AG
AT
AA
GG
AC
CC
GG
AG
13
21
22
23
TC
CA?
GA?
AT?
AA
GG
AC
TC
GG
AG
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
GC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
CC
TC
AA
AA
AG?
AA
TC
GA
Dafnelia (Kostelenos)
Amssis (Kostelenos)
Chondrolia (Polygyros)
CC
CT
CA
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
TC
GG
AA
AA
AA
AG
AA
TT
GA
Agouromanakolia (Kostelenos)
Adramytini (Lesbos)
AA
AA AA
AA AA
AG? GG
AA AA
TT TT
GA GG
Adramytini (Kostelenos)
Amygdalolia (Kostellenos)
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
AA
AA
GG
AC
TC
GG
AA?
AA
AG?
AC
TC
GA
CC
TC
CA
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
TC
GG
CC
TC
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CG?
CT
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
1
2
2+
3
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
CC
CC
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
TC
CC
CT
CA
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
CT
GG
AA
Gaidourelia (Kostelenos)
12
20
AA
AG
AG
CC
CC
GA
25
11
19
24
10
Galatistas (Kostelenos)
14
9
18
16
17
15
14
8
7
6
5
13
12
11
10
9
8
7
6
4
3
2
1
5
4
2
3
1
A/A
292
Table 25.5. Greek SNP database of the lupeol synthase (lupeol2F-lupeol2R) fragment (from Bazakos, 2007).
Matolia (Kostelenos)
Megaritiki (Kostelenos)
GG
AC
TC
GG
AG
293
CC
CT
CC
AG
AT
AA
GG
AC
TC
GG
AG
Olive Oil
Mastoides B (Kostelenos)
GC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
Klonares (Kostelenos)
Karolia (Kostelenos)
Kolireiki (Kostelenos)
CC
CT
AC
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
CT
GG
AA
CC
CT
CA
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
CT
GG
AA
GC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TC
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
CT
GG
AA
Mastoides A (Kostelenos)
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
39
AA
AA
AG?
AA
TT
GA
GC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
38
CG
TT
27
26
48
47
46
45
44
43
42
22
37
41
21
36
29
Kolymbada (Kostelenos)
Kalokairida (Kostelenos)
Karydolia (Kostelenos)
CC
CC
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CG
CC
CC
SNP No.
Kalamon (Kostelenos)
Manaki (Kostelenos)
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CT
CA
AG
AT
AA
GG
AC
CT
GG
AG
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
1
2
2+
3
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
32
19
40
25
24
23
20
35
34
18
31
33
17
16
15
30
28
27
26
A/A
60
Vasilikada (Kostelenos)
Zakynthou (Kostelenos)
Chapter 25
Valanolia (Kostelenos)
Throumbolia (Kostelenos)
Tragolia (Kostelenos)
Valanolia (Lesvos)
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TC
GG
AA
Thiaki (Kostelenos)
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
CT
GG
AA
AT
AA
AG
AC
TC
GA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TC
GG
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
CG
CT
CA
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
CT
GG
AA
31
32
33
51
52
53
54
55
Nissiotiki A (Kostelenos)
Pikrolia (Kostelenos)
Smertolia A (Kostelenos)
Strogylolia (Kostelenos)
1
2
2+
3
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
CT
CA? CC
AG AA
AT AA
AA AA
GG GG
AC AA
CC CC
GG GG
AG
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AG?
GG
AA
CC
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC?
CC?
CA?
AA
AA?
AA
GG
AC?
TC
GG
AA
Rachati (Kostelenos)
30
SNP No.
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
59
CG
TC
CA
AA
AT
AA
GG
AC
TC
GG
AA
CC
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TC
GG
AA
CG
TC
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
CC
CG
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA
GG
AA
TT
GG
AA
CC
65
64
63
62
39
38
37
36
61
35
57
58
34
29
50
56
28
49
A/A
CG?
CC
CC
AA
AA
AA?
GG
AC?
294
26
OLIVE MILL PRODUCTS AND
ENVIRONMENTAL IMPACT OF
OLIVE OIL PRODUCTION
OLIVE GROWING AND ENVIRONMENTAL PROTECTION
Olive cultivation has a positive impact on the environment and maintenance of
landscape. Olive culture also helps combat desertication, one of the biggest
problems in the Mediterranean area. Furthermore, the olive tree gives shelter
and food to wildlife. There are, however, instances where olive growing
damages the environment. The intensication of olive growing is accompanied
by increased input of fertilizers, insecticides, herbicides and irrigation water.
Such systematic removal of vegetation by various means has an adverse effect
on biodiversity and increases the loss of soil organic matter. This leads to
environmental deterioration and erosion or desertication.
The environmental problems associated with olive oil extraction mills are
related to water consumption in regions where its supplies are limited. In oil
extraction systems, where the oil is extracted by either pressure or
centrifugation with a three-phase process (oil, liquid extract and residue)
found mostly in Italy and Greece environmental problems lie in both the large
volumes of water required and the removal of liquid extracts. To avoid damage
to the environment liquid extracts should be treated and puried before
discharge into water courses. Furthermore, the liquid extracts should be
applied to the soil, as liquid fertilizers. However, the quantities applied should
be low in order to avoid pollution of groundwater. In the two-phase process
signicantly less water is required, and this is the reason for its use in various
countries. Furthermore, with two-phase centrifugation a signicant amount of
residue is produced, requiring drying at high temperatures to extract the
remaining oil. Furthermore, the legacy of table olive production is a highly
polluting liquid waste. This waste has high organic and sodium contents,
rendering it unsuitable for application as fertilizer on olive groves.
295
296
Chapter 26
Washing water
The washing water used following olive processing attains a brown colour and
contains organic and inorganic materials that can cause pollution. Washing
water represents 10% (v/w) of the total weight of olive production waste.
Olive leaves
The leaves are collected, together with the fruit, and are transported to the
processing unit. The percentage of olive leaves is a function of the method used
for olive harvesting: a greater proportion from harvesting by the use of shakers.
A proportion of up to 58% is common. These leaves should be removed before
processing for oil extraction, since too many leaves give a very bitter taste to the
oil. The separated olive leaves could be used in the following ways: (i) after
drying, as a fuel in power plants, together with other plant material; (ii) as a
fertilizer, by incorporating them in the soil of the olive orchard, intact or
following crushing (leaves are a rich source of organic matter and mineral
nutrients); or (iii) for phenol production (12% of fresh weight). The most
important phenol is oleuropein, which gives olive oil its bitter taste and has
important properties for human health.
Olive pomace
Olive pomace is the nal product of the separation of olive oil, leaves, washing
water and OMWW. Its quantity and its chemical composition depend on the
type of decanter used for oil extraction, i.e. triphasic or biphasic. Olive pomace
has the following two uses: (i) as a fuel in power plants; and (ii) production of
297
compost by mixing with other plant materials (Cegarra et al., 1996); this
compost mixture improves soil texture and nutrient composition.
Traditional
pressing
Triphasic
decanting
Biphasic
decanting
250350
2235
6.08.0
2035
3045
34
250350
4060
150200
200300
450550
4555
3.54.5
1525
2028
24
200300
3040
100150
200300
800850
6575
3.04.0
1015
1218
34
250350
4050
150250
400600
298
Chapter 26
1995). The quantity of OMWW is a function of the type of decanter used, i.e.
biphasic or triphasic. OMWW is a potential polluter, but it is also a source of
valuable materials such as oleuropein and hydroxytyrosol (Capasso et al.,
1999; Visioli et al., 2001; Allouche et al., 2004). This by-product can be
sterilized by various processes such as:
Control
5 l/m2
10 l/m2
30 l/m2
4.3
51.8
17.3
0.50
8.1
1.98
0.16
7.15
1.97
0.12
0.24
4.6
52.0
17.2
0.50
6.3
2.09
0.17
7.20
2.02
0.12
0.38
5.4
52.0
16.6
0.50
7.9
2.0
0.16
7.32
2.04
0.13
0.39
5.2
52.6
17.4
0.54
7.3
2.01
0.17
7.27
2.08
0.13
0.48
299
Hydroxytyrosol
Tyrosol
Elenolic acid
Oleuropein
Luteolin-7-glucoside
Quercetin
Cinnamic acid
Total phenols
1.56
0.85
4.3
0.5
0.22
0.13
0.55
8.4
300
Chapter 26
Advantages
Addition of extra water to the soil, especially given the low precipitation
levels and lack of irrigation water seen today in many olive-growing areas.
Improvement in the physical and chemical properties of the soil through
the addition of organic matter (OM) and enhancement of microbial
activity.
Contains large quantities of K, N, P and Mg (see Table 26.4).
Disadvantages
The presence of fatty acids and polyphenols, which reduce soil fertility.
It is difcult to store or dispose of the large amounts of OMWW, since it is
produced in a relatively short time, and particularly during a period of high
rainfall.
Direct application should be at a level no greater than 30 m3/ha/year for
OMWW from traditional olive mills.
Its application should be carried out at least 1 month before the time of
sowing of annual crops.
It should be applied at a minimum distance from trees.
Table 26.4. Characteristics of mature OMWW composts (d.w.) (from Cegarra et al.,
1996).
Parameter
pH (H2O)
Ec (1:10) (mS/cm)
Organic matter (%)
Organic carbon (%)
Nitrogen (%)
NO3-N (%)
C:N ratio
Phosphorus (%)
Potassium (%)
Iron (%)
Copper (mg/kg)
Manganese (mg/kg)
Zinc (mg/kg)
CEC (me/100 g)
SCO
MOS
7.84
7.66
56.43
29.37
3.11
0.36
9.44
0.87
2.61
0.50
52
241
245
109.8
8.73
5.03
37.40
18.78
1.44
t
13.04
0.22
3.25
1.30
62
268
73
96.2
SCO, sewage sludge and cotton waste mixtures watered with fresh OMWW; MOS, mixing of
11.1% of manure with 88.9% of OMWW sludge; t, traces.
301
No data are available for the use of OMWW as compost for olive production.
Composting is probably a good method for recycling liquid wastes, leading to the
production of CO2, water, mineral salts and stabilized OM, which contains
humic-like substances. The process of composting is thermophilic and leads to
release of phytotoxins. Furthermore, OMWW may be mixed with plant waste
materials to be transformed into organic fertilizers or composts, which have no
phytotoxicity.
HYDROGEN PRODUCTION
Hydrogen is a clean energy source for both industrial and domestic
consumption. Biological production of hydrogen gas (H2) utilizes biophotolysis
of water and photo-fermentation of organic materials, usually carbohydrates,
by bacteria. Carbohydrate-containing solid wastes, such as olive mill waste,
can be used for hydrogen production by using suitable bio-process technologies
(Kapdan and Kargi, 2006). Utilization of such wastes for hydrogen production
provides inexpensive energy generation with simultaneous waste treatment.
Olive mill waste water can be used as a raw material for bio-hydrogen
production. It will require pretreatment to remove undesirable components.
The carbohydrate content is converted to organic acids, and subsequently to
H2, by the use of certain bio-processing technologies.
Glucose is an easily biodegradable carbon source. The bio-conversion of
1 mol of glucose yields, theoretically, 12 mol of H2 and conversion of 1 mol of
glucose to acetate yields 4 mol H2. However, when butyrate is the end product
only 2 mol H2/1 mol glucose is formed. In practice the yield of H2 does not
exceed 17 mol H2/1 mol glucose. In the case of cellulose, 2.18 mol H2/1 mol
glucose is produced when the concentration of cellulose in the waste is
12.5 g/l.
Fig. 26.1 is a schematic diagram showing the pathways involved in biohydrogen production from agricultural wastes containing cellulose and starch
by two-stage anaerobic dark photo-fermentation.
Agricultural wastes such as olive pomace contain starch and cellulose
(Kapdan and Kargi, 2006). Starch can be hydrolysed to glucose and maltose by
acid hydrolysis, and this is followed by conversion of carbohydrates to organic
acids and H2. Cellulose and hemicellulose content also can be hydrolysed to
carbohydrates, and subsequently to organic acids, which also produce H2.
Hydrogen is considered a viable alternative fuel of the future. Furthermore,
H2 is widely used in the production of chemicals, hydrogenation of fats and oils
in the food industry and desulphurization and reformulation of petrol in
reneries. Hydrogen has a high energy yield that is 2.75 times greater than
that of hydrocarbon fuels.
302
Chapter 26
Agricultural wastes
containing cellulose
OMWW
Grinding
Pretreatment
Pretreatment
Dark fermentation
Pyrolysis
Glucose syrup
Organic acids
H2
Photo-fermentation
27
OLEUROPEIN, OLIVE LEAF EXTRACT,
OLIVE OIL AND THE BENEFITS
OF THE MEDITERRANEAN DIET
TO HUMAN HEALTH
OLEUROPEIN
Oleuropein as an antioxidant
Oleuropein is the bitter compound of olives that enhances nitric oxide production
and has free-radical scavenging properties (Visioli et al., 1998). This is commonly
found in the Mediterranean diet, which is rich in fresh fruits, vegetables and olive
oil and has been associated with a lower incidence of cardiovascular disease and
cancer. This is ascribed to its high proportion of vitamins, avonoids and
polyphenols (Ho et al., 1992). Oleuropein is the most abundant of the minor
components of olive oil; it has potent antioxidant and anti-inammatory
properties and enhances nitric oxide (NO) production in lipopolysaccharide
(LPS)-challenged mouse macrophages. The promotive effect is blocked by the
inductible nitric oxide synthase (iNOs) inhibitor N(G)-nitro-L-orginine methyl
ester (L-NAME). This indicates increased iNOs activity and that oleuropein
potentiates the macrophage-mediated response, leading to higher NO
production, which is considered to be benecial in cellular protection.
303
304
Chapter 27
inactivates bacteria by dissolving their outer lining; the presence of 0.1% (w/v)
of oleuropein delayed the growth of Staphylococcus aureus. Intermediate concentrations (0.2%) of oleuropein prevented growth, while concentrations of
oleuropein > 0.2% inhibited growth and production of enterotoxin B in
articial nutrient media.
Caffeic and protocatechuic acids (0.3 mg/ml) inhibited the growth of E.
coli and Klebsiella pneumoniae. The same compounds, apart from syringic acid
(0.5 mg/ml), completely inhibited the growth of Bacillus cereus. Oleuropein and
p-hydroxy benzoic, vanillic and p-coummaric acids (0.4 mg/ml) completely
inhibited the growth of E. coli, K. pneumoniae and B. cereus. Vanillic and caffeic
acids (0.2 mg/ml) completely inhibited the growth of aatoxin production by
both Aspergillus avus and A. parasiticus. Olea europaea can therefore be
considered a potential source of promising antimicrobial agents for the
treatment of intestinal or respiratory tract infections in man.
305
306
Chapter 27
307
OLIVE OIL
Olive oil and human cancer
Greece, Italy and Spain obtain 71, 42 and 37%, respectively, of their total
dietary fat from olive oil. Olive oil and its minor constituents have benecial
effects on human health (Visioli and Galli, 1998a,b; Visioli et al., 2006).
Several epidemiological studies have evaluated the association between olive
oil consumption, human health and the occurrence of cancer (Visioli and
Galli, 1998a; Tripoli et al., 2005, 2006; Gaddi et al., 2006; Tripoli et al., 2006).
A minimum level of essential fatty acids (4% as linoleic acid) is required before
a saturated fat can display its full cancer-promoting potential. However, cancer
promotion depends not only on the amount but also on the fatty acid
composition of the fat (Cohen and Wydner, 1990). Olive oil-fed rats had high
levels of oleic acid in total serum lipids, as well as decreased tumour
prostaglandin levels. It was proposed that high-fat diets, rich in oleic acid, fail
to promote mammary tumorigenesis. This is due to competition with enzymes
in the linoleic acidarachidonic acid and prostaglandin-metabolizing enzyme.
Cancer development is associated with uncontrolled cell proliferation. For
signals of this proliferation, G proteins and the protein kinase C are involved;
these signals control the cell division cycle. Hence, lipid alterations might be
participating in the development of certain cancers; circumstantial evidence
for this lies in the fact that membrane lipids were altered in cell membranes of
patients suffering from cancer.
Several types of cancer cells show alterations in the membrane lipid layers,
and it is feasible to apply lipid therapy to treat certain cancers. Certain
anticancer drugs alter the lipid membrane structure; lipid therapy is relevant
to the development of anticancer drugs. Furthermore, high olive oil intake and
the use of Minerval, which is structurally and chemically close to oleic acid,
have been associated with a reduced risk of human cancer.
Breast cancer
The highest rates of breast cancer occur in the most industrialized regions of
the USA and Europe. Hence, the fat consumption per capita is highly correlated
with breast cancer and mortality (Howe et al., 1990; Trichopoulou et al., 1993;
Martin-Moreno et al., 1994; Fortes et al., 1995; La Vecchia et al., 1995;
Lipworth et al., 1997). For example, today, the incidence of breast cancer in
Spain is about 40% lower in comparison with the USA and northern Europe.
308
Chapter 27
Furthermore, Greek women, with 71% total fat intake from olive oil, have
signicantly lower mortality from breast cancer than women from the USA.
The Mediterranean countries offer an ideal testing ground for the role of
olive oil in breast cancer (Menendez et al., 2005), since olive oil in these
countries is the main oil used for cooking. The intake of olive oil is inversely
associated with the risk of breast cancer.
Ovarian cancer
In studies assessing changes in diet and cancer mortality in the Mediterranean
region, it was found that Greece and Spain had the lowest rates of ovarian
cancer and, at the same time, the lowest animal fat intake and the highest olive
oil intake. Ovarian cancer mortality is positively associated with total fat intake
in various countries (Lipworth et al., 1997).
The epidemiologic evidence concerning olive oil intake with respect to
ovarian cancer risk is limited, and there has been only one study conducted in
Greece. This study evaluated the association between ovarian cancer and
monounsaturated fat consumption, and indications from it are that there is an
inverse relation of monosaturated fat intake from olive oil and the risk of
ovarian cancer.
Colonic cancer
Studies in animals have indicated that certain fats in fatty acids may affect
colonic carcinogenesis (Bartoli et al., 2000; Stoneham et al., 2000), while olive
oil and sh oils have the lowest carcinogenic potential. The mechanism of
action is through cholesterol biosynthesis, which converts cholesterol to
primary bile acids. Many studies point to the relationship between monounsaturated fats and colonic cancer. Several studies on colorectal cancer have
been undertaken in Mediterranean countries (Bartoli et al., 2000; Stoneham et
al., 2000).
Endometrial cancer
In a hospital-based case-control study in women with conrmed cancer of the
endometrium, the only statistically suggestive association was an inverse one
with monounsaturated fat, which reduced the risk of cancer by 26% (Lipworth
et al., 1997).
Various studies indicate that olive oil may have a potential effect in
lowering the risk of this type of cancer. However, it should be established
whether the protective effect of olive oil derives from the monounsaturated
fatty acids of olive oil or whether it is related to its antioxidant properties.
Other cancers
An inverse relationship exists between olive oil consumption and various
cancers such as stomach, lung, bladder, urinary tract, oral cavity and
pharynx.
309
310
Chapter 27
An exogenous supply of oleic acid signicantly down-regulates HER2coded neuroncoprotein in human cancer cells.
Exposure to oleic acid represses the transcriptional activity of the human
HER2 gene promoter in tumour-derived tissue.
311
Treatment with oleic acid induces the up-regulation of the Ets protein
PEA3 (a transcriptional repressor of HER2 gene amplication).
Treatment with oleic acid efciently blocks fatty acid synthase (human
gene) (FASN) activity.
Malonyl-coenzyme A (CoA) decreases HER2 promoter activity, while oleic
acid or CoA similarly up-regulate PEA3 gene promoter activity.
These compounds contribute to olive avour, but some of them also give
bitterness or a burnt taste. The concentration (mg/kg) of individual phenolic
compounds in olive oil is: hydroxytyrosol, 14.42; tyrosol, 27.45; total simple
phenols (TSP), 41.87; total secoiridoids (TSID), 27.72; and lignans, 41.53.
The sum of TSP + TSID + lignans is 111.12.
312
Chapter 27
313
314
Chapter 27
of peroxyl radicals and is responsible for protection of the oil against the
auto-oxidation of unsaturated fatty acids. Furthermore, it was proved to act as
a powerful inhibitor of peroxidation of human lipoproteins by in vitro studies.
Hydroxytyrosol counteracts free radical-induced cytotoxicity in human
intestinal epithelial cells in culture.
The red blood cells (RBCs) are exposed to oxidative hazards due to their
specic role as oxygen carriers. Therefore, auto-oxidation of haemoglobin (Hb)
produces anion superoxide radicals, which are transformed to hydrogen
peroxide (H2O2). These compounds, when Fe ions are present, form the highly
reactive hydroxytyrosol radical. These radicals damage both plasma membrane
and cytosolic components, leading to oxidative haemolysis.
A balance exists between the production of ROS and their destruction by the
endogenous defence system (enzymes and vitamin E). When no such balance
exists (oxidative stress) it leads to chronic oxidative stress, as in the case of
hereditary anaemias, which can be ascribed to either an impaired antioxidant
defence system or overproduction of ROS (-thalassaemia). In human RBCs, the
molecular target of H2O2 is Hb, which is converted to the oxidized forms of Hb
and ferryl Hb. Other alterations of RBCs by H2O2 include side-chain protein
alterations and lipoperoxidation. These oxidative modications lead to changes
in the shape of the RBC and to haemolysis.
Even a small increase in phospholipid hydroperoxides in membranes
produces marked changes in the molecular organization of the lipid bi-layer.
The well-known oxidative stress-induced reduction in cellular energy charge
affects the RBC transport system in a different way. Due to oxidation, stress
methionine transport decreases. This amino acid, which is not utilized in
protein biosynthesis, is converted to an s-adenosylmethionine (SAMe) donor.
This substance is the key intermediate by which methionine is converted to
cysteine, which is a precursor of glutathione.
315
316
Chapter 27
317
and its electron transport chain, with both DNA and blood better protected
against oxidation.
28
BIOLOGICAL AND INTEGRATED
OLIVE CULTURE
With regard to those chemicals used in pest and disease control, for
biological olive culture the use of the following techniques only is permitted:
319
320
Chapter 28
Biological ways of dealing with pests and diseases, e.g.: (i) optimizing the
performance of Bacillus thuringiensis endotoxins; (ii) enhancing benecial
organisms that are parasites of Dacus or Prays oleae, such as Opius concolor,
Eupelmus urozonus, Chrysopus, etc.; (iii) using companion plants and
botanical extracts as alternative pest controls.
Use of selected insects that are parasites of those insects that cause damage
to the olive tree or fruit.
Phytoprotective materials
The following are permitted for use: Azadirachtin, which is produced from
Azadirachta indica (the neem tree), beeswax, zelatin, hydrolyzed proteins,
lecithin, water extract of Nicotiana tabacum, vegetable oils (pine, mentha, etc.),
pyrethrins produced from the plant Chrysanthemum cinerariaefolium, extracts
321
from Quassia amara (a South American shrub) and rotenone from Derris spp.
and Lonchocarpus spp.
Microorganisms
Various microorganisms, such as Bacillus thuringiensis, granulosis virus, etc.,
are used in the control of dangerous and damaging organisms
Other materials
Copper (hydroxide, sulphate, etc.), ethylene, soap, parafn oil, KMnO4, SiO2, S
and calcium polysulphate can also be used in biological olive culture.
Organic olive growing has expanded in recent decades in Italy, Spain and
Greece. This can be explained partly by the health-giving properties of virgin
olive oil, which results in high prices for the grower. Of course, although
organic olive growing results in lower production and/or higher cost, due to its
higher quality, people prefer to consume organically produced olive oil.
Organic olive growing in Greece started ofcially in 1993 with a few hectares;
by 1998 it represented 10,000 ha and, by 2001, 15,500 ha.
Cover crops
Cover crops play a vital role in organic olive cultivation (Pardini et al., 2002,
2003). Use of cover crops is necessary in order to control weeds and soil erosion
322
Chapter 28
and to improve the quality of the olive oil. Furthermore, cover crops increase
the content of the organic matter of soil and improve overall soil fertility,
nutrient availability, soil structure and soil microorganisms. Cover crops also
reduce the pest and disease problem, reduce nutrient leaching and supply food
for livestock. When cover crops include legume species, the N content of the soil
is increased. There is a disadvantage, however, in the competition created with
olives and a concomitant decrease in olive yields.
Weed control
Winter weeds are controlled by soil cultivation during spring or by cutting
(milling cutter). In steep orchards the use of machinery is difcult and it is
recommended to use a hedge trimmer and leave the cut weeds on the soil surface.
Irrigation
In at areas, where water is available, drip irrigation is a method that conserves
water and reduces the cost of irrigation.
Olive y (Bactrocera oleae). Various traps can be used, such as ecotrap traps,
Delta traps of bait smeared with glue and bottles of different colours and
shapes lled with water and bait.
Mediterranean black scale (Saissetia oleae). Appropriate pruning achieves
an adequate population reduction in this insect. Furthermore, sprays with
Cu or oils are helpful.
Olive moth (Prays oleae). Use of pheromone traps, Bacillus thuringiensis at
the initiation of owering, wettable sulphur and control of irrigation are all
helpful measures.
Peacock spot (Cycloconium oleaginum). Correct pruning (open centre) and
spraying with Cu products are recommended.
Olive knot (Pseudomonas savastanoi). Spraying with Cu immediately after
pruning is recommended.
Harvesting
In biological olive cultivation table olives are harvested by hand. The olives of
the cultivars destined for olive oil production drop spontaneously onto plastic
nets or they are harvested by using shakers.
323
Certain conditions should be fullled in order for integrated olive management to be feasible:
324
Chapter 28
29
CHEMICAL AND INTEGRATED WEED
MANAGEMENT IN OLIVE ORCHARDS
325
326
Chapter 29
Herbicide absorption
Herbicides are usually absorbed by the roots or leaves. The amount of herbicide
absorption depends on the vegetative stage of the weed, since the leaf cuticle is
thicker in old leaves in comparison with young ones. The number and size of
stomata also affects herbicide entry into the leaf. Weeds differ in both the
number of stomata/mm2 of leaf surface and the location of stomata (on the
upper or lower leaf surface).
The efcient use of herbicides depends on their ability to pass through the
cuticle and plasmalemma. The entrance of herbicides is via stomata, if they are
open during the time of herbicide application. Application of herbicides to
green and tender shoots of weeds is frequently as effective as when applied to
the leaves. The bark of woody shoots is usually the obstacle to entrance of
herbicides. However, in some barks there are openings that allow the herbicide
ingress. Lenticels may also constitute a route for herbicidal entrance.
The most dangerous weeds causing losses to olive culture are Cynodon
dactylon, Oxalis and Rubus fruticosus. Other weeds present in olive orchards
include Sorghum halepense, Convolvulus arvensis, Cirsium arvense, and Amaranthus
(see Table 29.1).
WEED MANAGEMENT
Weed management varies from orchard to orchard and, of course, upon the
weed species present in the orchard, the soil characteristics, the irrigation
system and the age of the orchard.
Soil properties
Soil texture and organic matter determine the weed species present in the
orchard, the activity and adsorption of herbicides, the number of times soil
should be cultivated and when planting should take place. In sandy soils less
herbicide is used, and these soils require more cultivation to deter weeds. On
the contrary, clay soils are cultivated less frequently and can adsorb a greater
quantity of herbicide. Soil characteristics, where herbicides are applied, affect
their runoff. Soil texture and organic matter content affect the speed of
inltration and runoff, which are greater in sandy soils (Galindo et al., 2006).
Organic matter affects herbicide mobility and adsorption: soil compaction
decreases the speed of herbicide inltration and increases herbicide
concentration in the water ow. Stability of soil aggregates affects the rate of
inltration, as does the slope of the orchard, since a greater angle of incline
increases runoff.
327
Table 29.1. Common and scientic names of weeds found regularly in the olive grove.
Common name
Scientic name
Asparagus
Barley
Bermuda grass
Bindweed
Blackberry
Bluegrass
Brome grass
Canary grass
Chickweed
Clover
Cocklebur
Dandelion
Dock
Fescue
Foxtail
Goosefoot
Johnson grass
Mallow (cheeseweed)
Mustard
Nettle
Nightshade
Oat
Pigweed
Purslane
Star thistle
Thistle
Asparagus ofcinalis
Hordeum murinum subsp. leporinum
Cynodon dactylon
Convolvulus arvensis
Rubus spp.
Poa annua
Bromus spp.
Phalaris canariensis
Stellaria media
Trifolium or Medicago spp.
Xanthium spp.
Taraxacum ofcinalis
Rumex crispus
Festuca rubra
Setaria spp.
Chenopodium murale
Sorghum halepense
Malva parviora
Brassica spp.
Urtica spp.
Solanum spp.
Avena fatua
Amaranthus spp.
Portulaca oleracea
Centaurea salstitialis
Salsola fragus
Irrigation
Total precipitation, its distribution and the method of irrigation all affect the
frequency of cultivation and the choice of herbicides. The amount of water
required following herbicide application is 1025 mm, and large amounts of
irrigation water result in herbicide movement into the soil below the tree
canopy. Therefore, the efciency of the herbicide is reduced.
328
Chapter 29
Before planting
It is ideal to start weed control before planting of the orchard. In that way weed
competition during planting will be reduced. The methods available to control
weeds before planting include the following:
1. Digging and irrigation to prevent germination of weeds. Afterwards, it is
necessary to dig again in order to kill any remaining weeds. This method
controls mostly annual weeds.
2. Summer digging, when the soil is dry. Thereby, the rhizomes of perennial
weeds are divided into small parts and, with sunshine, they desiccate and die.
3. Soil solarization. The moist soil is covered with a plastic sheet during the
summer. The radiant energy trapped in the soil increases soil temperature,
killing various pathogens and weed seeds.
4. Use of pre-emergence or post-emergence herbicides before planting. Postemergence herbicides have some residual effect on the soil and are better
applied before planting.
Young olive orchards
In young orchards both chemical and non-chemical methods are available:
1. Hand-weeding around trees and destroying weeds between rows by
discing.
2. Use of plastic mulch around young trees.
3. Application of pre-emergence and post-emergence herbicides in one of three
ways: (i) a circle around trees; (ii) in zones along the tree row; and (iii) total
coverage of the orchard oor with herbicides. More than one herbicide is needed
in order to control the various species of weeds. It is worth noting that preemergence herbicides do not tackle existing perennial weeds in the orchard.
4. Cover crops also can decrease weed population in the area between tree
rows; these should not compete with olive trees. Some of the plants appropriate
as cover crops include the autumn-sown cereals, subterranean clover and
Bermuda grass.
Olive orchards 4 years old and older
When olive trees are established, weeds are not as competitive as before.
However, perennial weeds can still reduce fruit yield. These weeds may be
controlled in the following ways:
1. Destruction of weeds between tree rows by agricultural machinery, i.e. by
mowing or discing. However, cultivation may damage the roots of olive trees
and increase the danger of pathogenic infection.
2. Use of mulches to reduce weed growth.
3. Control of very young weeds between rows by aming. This method
controls the broadleaf weeds by destroying with intense and localized heat.
329
Pre-emergence
These herbicides are sprayed on the soil and inhibit germination of weed seeds.
The herbicide should enter the soil at a depth of 38 cm, through the effects of
either rain or irrigation. Pre-emergence herbicides include Diuron (Karmex),
simazine (Princep), oryzalin (Suran), oxyuorfen (Goal) and napropamide
(Devrinol). Pre-emergence herbicides maintain their effectiveness from several
weeks to 1 year.
Table 29.2 presents some pre-emergence herbicides used in olive orchards,
and their rates of application.
Post-emergence
These herbicides are foliarly applied to either young or perennial weeds, and
they can be divided into two categories: (i) contact herbicides; and (ii) herbicides
Herbicide
Rate of
application
(g/1000 m2)
Chlorthiamid
600700
Diuron
170
Simazine
300400
Time of
application
Commercial
name
Weeds
controlled
Early winter
or early
spring
Winter/early
spring
Prex
Annual cereals
Casoron
Karmex
Winter
Gesatop
Broadleaf plants
Cereals, annual
broadleaf
plants
Cereals, annual
broadleaf
plants
330
Chapter 29
with hormonal activity (Hilton et al., 1969). Contact herbicides destroy the
sprayed part of the weed. One representative of this category is Paraquat.
Hormonal-like herbicides are sprayed on the leaves and are transported to the
rest of plant. Therefore, these are effective in killing perennial weeds, which
have rhizomes. The rate of herbicide application depends on various factors,
such as age of tree, weed species, irrigation and soil properties.
In olive orchards with weeds a mixture of post-emergence herbicides is
often used, e,g. (i) diuron + simazine + aminotriazole; the rate of application of
aminotriazole is 350500 g/1000 m2; or (ii) dimezon + simazine + Paraquat
(gramoxon); the rate of application is 50100 g/1000 m2.
The use of herbicides is permitted in trees of 4 years old and above, but should
be avoided in gravelly and light soils, since tree damage is possible. For control of
existing weeds (cereals or broadleaf) the systemic herbicide Roundup (glyphosate)
(UCIPM, 2001) is used, at a rate of 90180 g/1000 m2. Furthermore, the
herbicide Paraquat (gramoxon) could be used to control broadleaf weeds and the
annual cereals at a rate of 50100 g/1000 m2.
During spring, when there are perennial weeds such as Cynodon dactylon,
Convolvulus, etc., the dose of Roundup required is 200480 g/1000 m2; and for
Cyperus rotundus the herbicide MSMA (Veliuron) is used at a concentration of
250 g/1000 m2. For the weed Rubus the herbicide Fenoprop (Kuron) is used at
250700 g/1000 m2, in early August. In modern chemical weed control the
following regimes are common:
1. Use of new herbicides with slow release of the active ingredient.
2. Use of hormone-like herbicides.
3. Study of herbicide behaviour regarding their duration within the soil and
their ease of transport in the soil or air.
4. Simazine as a pre-emergence herbicide and glyphosate as a post-emergence
one are the two most important herbicides applied in olive orchards in order to
control Amaranthus blitoides and Lolium rigidum. Simazine is a pre-emergence
herbicide that inhibits electron transport in photosynthesis; glyphosate is a
post-emergence herbicide that inhibits the biosynthesis of aromatic amino
acids. Glyphosate, when applied to leaves, inhibits their elongation and causes
deterioration of the apical part of the fruit. Simazine, when it was sprayed on A.
blitoides, achieved complete control for 20 days at rates of 1.2 and 4 kg/ha.
Glyphosate as a post-emergence herbicide is very efcient for both weeds.
5. Paraquat is recommended for the control of cereal and broadleaf weeds, as
is triuralin.
6. Ansar 529 HC is recommended for the control of Sorghum halepense and
Cyperus rotundus. The rate of application is 650 g/1000 m2 diluted in 3040 l
water.
Olive is cultivated mostly in dry and hilly areas and is subjected to intense
competition from various weeds for water and nutrients. Due to the presence of
weeds, the use of harvesting nets is not easy. Furthermore, the weeds constitute
331
a shelter for pests and olive diseases but, if their height is controlled by cutting,
weeds could be useful, since they add organic matter to the soil and help protect
it from erosion.
In olive orchards weed control is achieved by various strategies: (i) soil
cultivation; (ii) frequent cutting of weeds; (iii) use of post-emergence herbicides;
and (iv) biological means of weed control.
Soil cultivation
This is the most common method of controlling weeds. The use of agricultural
machinery to divide the rhizomes into small pieces only makes the problem
worse, and frequent soil cultivation increases production costs.
332
Aminotriazole
S
I
S
I
T
S
T
S
I
T
T
T
T
S
T
T
T
T
IT
IT
T
T
IT
IT
T
T
S
T
T
S
I
I
I
T
I
I
T
T
S
S
T
T
T
T
I
D-NOC
Dinoseb
Diquat
Paraquat
T
T
I
I
S
I
T
T
T
T
T
I
I
S
I
T
T
T
T
T
I
I
S
I
T
I
I
T
I
I
I
T
T
T
Chapter 29
Agropyron repens
Cynodon dactylon
Cirsium arvense
Convolvulus spp.
Polygonum spp.
Rumex spp.
Sorghum halepense
Rubus spp.
Ranunculus spp.
333
Cultivation measures
1. Establishment of rotation crops, as a fundamental agricultural practice.
2. Balanced fertilization.
3. Mulching. Mulching of the in row has certain advantages and disadvantages.
4. Cover crops and permanent sward. Weed control in rows can be achieved
by sowing a permanent sward that shades the soil and absorbs the available
moisture of the soil surface. Thereby, surface sward reduces weed germination.
Mechanical control
There will be varying effects of various soil cultivation systems on the
biological cycle of weeds, to nutrient cycling, to the availability of soil moisture,
on the microclimate and on pests and diseases.
Biological control
1. Production of bio-herbicides from various microorganisms.
2. Production of phytotoxins.
3. Sowing of leguminous plants in order to control perennial weeds.
4. Vapour fumigation of the soil at 70C before planting.
5. Allelopathy.
6. Use of parts remaining from cultivated plants having biological activity
against the weed seeds in olive orchards.
7. Crop rotation by selecting crops having an inhibitory effect on weeds.
30
PESTS AND DISEASES
INTRODUCTION
The olive tree is attacked by various insects, fungi, bacteria and viruses. The
most serious attacks include those by Bactrocera oleae (Dacus oleae), Prays oleae,
Saissetia oleae, Hemiberlesia lataniae, Frankliniella occidentalis, Spilocaea oleaginea,
Verticillium dahliae, Mycocentrospora cladosporioides, Pseudomonas syringae pv.
savastanoi and Armillaria mellea. Control of pests utilizes various methods, e.g.
cultivation (El-Hakim and Kisk, 1988), biological (El-Khawas, 2000) or IPM
(Elmore et al., 2001). We will begin by studying insect pests, followed by fungal,
bacterial and nally, viral problems.
INSECTS
Bactrocera oleae (Gmelin) (olive fruit y, Diptera: Tephritidae)
The olive fruit y, Bactrocera oleae (Gmelin) or Dacus oleae, is a very damaging
pest of olive fruit in most olive-growing countries. The damage is caused by the
Dacus larva, which drills tunnels in the fruit pulp resulting in 30% loss of the
crop. The adult Dacus feeds on nectar, honeydew and other liquid food sources.
Dacus oleae was rst detected in California in 1998.
Morphology
The adult female is about 5 mm long and has a wingspan of approximately
10 mm. The wings are transparent, marked with brown and have a spot at
each tip. The thorax is black, with three parallel lines. The abdomen is black,
covered with grey pubescence. The inner portion of the scutellum is black, the
posterior portion is yellow and odours are emitted by the adults
(Economopoulos et al., 1971). The sheath of the ovipositor is black, with the
ovipositor itself reddish in colour.
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
335
336
Chapter 30
Life cycle
The insect has two to ve generations per year in Mediterranean countries. It
survives in the pupal form and overwinters several centimetres below the soil
surface, the rst adults appearing from March to May, depending on
temperature and latitude. During summer a period of 610 days elapses before
mating, and this period is longer with lower temperatures. Starting in June, the
female of Dacus lays ten to 12 eggs daily, one per olive fruit, and the total
number of eggs laid during the lifespan of an insect (17 months) is 200250.
The females deposit their eggs beneath the fruit skin with their ovipositor. From
each egg a legless larva derives, which feeds on fruit pulp; this results in fruit
drop (see Fig. 30.1). The durations of egg, larval and pupal stages are 24,
1014 and 10 days, respectively. Mating occurs near the end of the daylight
period. Females, in order to attract males, produce a multi-component
pheromone containing 1,7-dioxaspiro(5.5)undecane, which is an attractant
for male Dacus. Females mate several times during their lifetime. Pheromone is
produced also by males and attracts other males but not females.
(a)
(b)
Fig. 30.1. Olive fruits damaged by Dacus oleae, olive fruit y: (a) galleries drilled
by Dacus pupae, and a pupa; (b) opening created by the exit of the perfect insect
(from Therios, 2005b).
337
Control
Various ways of controlling Dacus have been used (Collier and Van Steenway,
2003), including -ray male sterilization (Economopoulos, 1972), mass
trapping (Haniotakis et al., 1986) and use of chemical repellents of females (Lo
Scalzo et al., 1994). The most common method is the use of insecticide in bait or
air sprays. Other means, more acceptable environmentally, include the use of
radiation to sterilize males, pheromones and biological methods. The required
radiation for sterilization of both sexes is 812 Krad. Furthermore, synthetic
analogues of pheromone have been produced, such as 1,5,7-trioxaspirol(5.5)
undecane, which is equally as attractive as the natural compound but does not
last in the traps as long.
In order to use synthetic pheromones, small pieces of paper or plywood are
dipped in an aqueous (0.1%) solution of deltamethrin for 15 min, then sex
pheromone or ammonium bicarbonate added both Dacus attractants. This
method provides a low-cost means of control. Other methods include the use of
traps for trapping adult insects, biological control and cultivation (early fruit
harvesting).
Acetylcholinesterase (ACE) is the molecular target of organophosphate
(OP) insecticides, and two mutations conferring different levels of OP
insensitivity have been identied in the olive y Bactrocera oleae. Numerous
sensitive and two insensitive alleles have been described from the worldwide
distribution of the y. The insensitive alleles probably reach a high level in
the Mediterranean region, reaching frequencies of up to 100%. The high
frequency of insensitive alleles occurs in areas where OPs have been used
extensively.
There is little knowledge of the chemistry, enzymology or
molecular biology of the biosynthesis of fruit y pheromones to facilitate
species-specic monitoring and control (Mazomenos, 1983). Studies with
Bactrocera oleae suggest the operation of a single, major biosynthetic pathway.
The major component of the pheromone is racemic 1,7-dioxaspiro (5.5)
undecane, which is accompanied by low levels (3%) of hydroxyl derivatives.
Adult olive fruit y populations are monitored using yellow sticky traps
baited with sex pheromone and/or ammonium bicarbonate. Sex pheromone
attracts male Dacus insects, while ammonium bicarbonate attracts mainly
female insects. Females need protein and are attracted by ammonia, which is a
product of protein decomposition. The yellow colour of the trap attracts both
male and female insects. The population of insects trapped is a function of
insect population, temperature and humidity of the atmosphere. Another use
of this trap is to determine the time of insecticide application, by monitoring the
population of Dacus trapped.
For control by insecticide, two methods are available: (i) full coverage
sprays; and (ii) bait sprays, both methods using OPs, such as dimethoate or
fenthion. The number of sprays depends on temperature and humidity, or
PHEROMONES
338
Chapter 30
rainfall during the summer, and involves one to two cover sprays and/or six to
seven bait sprays. The number of sprays is smaller (two to three) in hot and dry
areas. However, the number of sprays depends on the insect population caught
in the traps and whether the fruit is destined for table olives or olive oil
production.
Organophosphates are replaced by the insecticide Spinosad in bait sprays,
since this is a microbial product, very effective against Dacus, but with low
toxicity to humans and animals. Spinosad is mixed with the new fruit y bait
known as GF-120, and applied weekly from mid-June up to just before
harvesting time.
Another insecticide of low toxicity to vertebrates is a pyrethroid compound
(deltamethrin) applied on yellow plywood or paper strips, plus sex pheromone
and/or ammonium bicarbonate. Dacus is attracted and killed by the lethal dose
of pyrethroid.
In recent years the biological control of the olive fruit y has commenced.
In the Mediterranean area Dacus oleae is parasitized by the insect Psyttalia (or
Opius) concolor. This was introduced to Italy, France, Greece and then
California. However, P. concolor is ineffective against Dacus, since there is no
synchronization between the biological stages of the two species, i.e. when
female P. concolor appears in the spring, no fruit y larvae are available.
339
Life cycle
This species overwinters in the form of a nymph and early in spring becomes
adult, starting to lay eggs in May. After hatching crawlers appear in July,
feeding on leaves, shoots or sometimes on fruit. The insect has one or two
generations depending on weather conditions, pruning and pest control.
Economic damage
Since the insect feeds on tree sugars, these trees become weak, leaf abscission
occurs and ower bud differentiation is signicantly reduced. Furthermore,
young scales produce honey-like substances. This leads to a secondary
infection by the fungus Capnia, resulting in deterioration of fruit quality and a
decrease in photosynthesis.
Control
The insect can be controlled by cultivation practices, insecticidal sprays or by
natural enemies of the black scale.
PRUNING In trees left unpruned or lightly pruned and a relatively dense
canopy, damage and infestation are severe. Regular pruning exposes the black
scale to hot and dry conditions and increases its percentage mortality.
However, if the weather is cool and humid this favours black scale, especially
when the tree canopy is dense. In unpruned olive trees the shady and moist
environment inside the tree canopy protects the scale, which can then survive
even very hot summers. Furthermore, irrigation may create favourable
conditions for the black scale population to increase.
INSECTICIDES
NATURAL ENEMIES
340
Chapter 30
moth feeds on olive trees, cultivated and wild, and all olive cultivars are prone
to damage if no control measures are taken. Other species where this moth can
be found include other genera of the Oleaceae family such as Ligustrum,
Jasminum and Phillyrea. Prays oleae has three generations: the rst on oral
buds, the second in the fruit endocarp and the third on the leaves where the
insect overwinters.
Life cycle
The insect overwinters as an adult and appears in spring; the females deposit
their eggs in the calyx of owers. The larva, appearing after 912 days, feeds on
the oral parts initially on anthers and subsequently on stigma, style and
ovary. The larvae later connect the entire inorescence with a silky thread. The
second generation attacks the young fruits close to the stalk and the larva
enters the endocarp, where it stays for 80135 days. After this period the larva
leaves the endocarp and exits via the same opening, resulting in fruit drop. The
adult insects appear after 814 days. The third generation lays eggs on the
upper leaf surface. The hatched larvae (714 days) enter the leaf by drilling
tunnels and digest foliar material. At the end of winter the adults appear and a
new cycle begins.
Economic damage
The damage caused by this moth ranks second only to that of Dacus oleae, and
is serious with high insect populations or low owering conditions. Damage
affects owers, fruits and leaves and results in fruit drop.
Chemical and biological control
Unfavourable climatic conditions greatly limit the
population of this insect. Pruning and maintenance of open canopies reduce
RH, and with RH below 50% or with temperatures above 30C egg death
results. That is why this insect does not appear in dry areas.
CULTIVATION PRACTICES
BIOLOGICAL
CHEMICAL CONTROL
population levels.
The use of female sex pheromones is useful as a control method
(Campion et al., 1979; Kavallieratos et al., 2005).
PHEROMONES
341
CHEMICAL
342
Chapter 30
343
Fig. 30.2. Olive fruit damage in the form of spot due to Parlatoria oleae, olive scale
(from Therios, 2005b).
344
Chapter 30
July and September. Latania, except on olive trees, feeds on avocado, acacia,
euonymus, kiwi fruit, rose and other species.
Economic damage
The scales infest leaves, bark and fruits, producing a dark purple spot of very clear
outline. Infested fruits, especially for table olive processing, become worthless.
Chemical and biological control
For biological control the species Aphytis melinus and other parasites are used.
However, where chemical treatment is necessary oil sprays or oil sprays plus
Sevin 80S or Supracide 25WP are used. Spraying is performed in late May and
in late July to August. The best results are obtained when scale crawlers start
moving onto the fruit. Treatment between these two sprays is not necessary.
Furthermore, a postharvest treatment (October/November) is also effective.
Spraying is effective, especially when used in conjunction with pruning to open
the orchard canopy.
345
channels mating takes place and the female lays eggs. Within 12 weeks larvae
appear, which open small channels under the bark. In another 34 weeks the
larva is transformed into an adult, which leaves the branch. The insect has four
generations, the adults appearing in March/April, AprilJuly,
August/September and AugustNovember. The infested trees have low vigour
and low productivity.
Control
Eradication of the pruning material by burying, before the insect lays its
eggs.
Burning the suckers, which can host a large number of larvae.
Keeping the trees healthy by appropriate fertilization, irrigation and
pruning.
Application of organophosphate insecticides is recommended when the
infection is severe.
346
Chapter 30
Life cycle
Adults lay their eggs during summer and, after hatching, the larvae attack
lateral buds and drill sub-cortical channels. The larvae exit the branch by
creating a hole and subsequently enter a new branch. Their presence is
obvious by the sawdust released from the opening (frass). The biological cycle
lasts 1 year, with larvae being fully developed in late winter and overwintering
in the form of chrysalids. The adults occur in May to June.
FUNGAL DISEASES
Spilocaea (or Cycloconium) oleaginea (olive peacock spot)
This disease is known as olive peacock spot, peacock spot and/or birds eye or
cycloconium, and is caused by the fungus Spilocaea (or Cyclonium) oleaginea
(Cast) Hughes. The disease is common in many areas of the world.
Symptoms
The fungus attacks leaves, fruit and fruit-bearing stems, the symptoms being
observed most often on the upper leaf surfaces of leaves located in the lower
part of the tree canopy (Graniti, 1962; Proietti et al., 2002a). Peacock spot
causes cutin degradation, appearing on leaves in the form of sooty blotches
having a diameter of 26 mm (Sparavano and Graniti, 1978). The colour of
these spots changes to muddy green and later to black, with a yellow halo,
giving the appearance of the eye spot on the peacocks tail feathers (see Fig.
30.3). One leaf may have more than one spot, which causes the infected leaves
to abscise. Leaf abscission reduces productivity and enhances biennial bearing.
New spots appear in late winter to early spring. Outbreaks are sporadic and the
disease may need many years before it causes economic damage. In the
margins of the spots spores develop, high temperatures hindering spore
germination. Therefore, high temperatures inactivate the disease. Cultivar and
pruning intensity also affect the attacks of Spilocaea oleaginea (Tombesi and
Ruffolo, 2006).
347
Fig. 30.3. Olive leaf infection by Spilocaea oleaginea (peacock spot). The infection
appears to be in the form of spots, resembling the eye of a peacocks tail feather
(from Therios, 2005b).
348
Chapter 30
spot include copper sulphate tribasic, copper oxide, copper hydroxide and
copper oxychloride. Infection is worst in areas of low elevation, under
conditions of heavy dew, fog or high humidity, under a dense tree canopy and
following excessive sprinkler irrigation.
The guidelines for effective spraying programmes include the following:
Spraying is effective if carried out twice a year, in late autumn and in early
spring.
Spraying should be carried out before any rain and, should it rain within
2 h following application, a further spraying is necessary.
Avoid spraying during the owering period, since Cu may negatively affect
budding and fruit set.
When the level of infection is high (> 10% of leaves infected) the recommended combinations are: (i) a combination of Stroby WG (1015 g/
100 l) + Cuprox (500 g/100 l); or (ii) Stroby WG (1015 g/100 l) +
Kocide 2000 (190 g/100 l), both combinations being mixed prior to
spraying. The volume of spray solution per 1000 m2 orchard is 100150 l.
349
wave of infection occurs in early autumn, when the soil cools again. High
summer temperatures kill the fungus. The fungus has various hosts, such as
cotton, tomato, pepper, melon, stone fruits and pistachio.
Management and control
The most important way of protecting trees from Verticillium wilt is the
avoidance of the fungus. Therefore, soils that have previously been planted for
a number of years with crops very susceptible to Verticillium, i.e. aubergine,
etc., should not be given over to olive. Furthermore, Verticillium spores and
inocula can be reduced in number prior to planting by soil fumigation or
disinfection by solar energy. Other methods of control include cultivation of
grass cover crops or by use of a combination of the above methods. When we
plant olives in an area where previously susceptible perennial plants have been
grown, it is necessary to remove most of the existing root system. With regard
to rootstocks not resistant to Verticillium wilt most were reported to be so, apart
from Olea oblonga and the cultivar Ascolano.
For solar disinfection the soil is covered with a transparent plastic lm
throughout the summer, when increased temperatures kill the fungus. For soil
fumigation we withhold water during the summer; the drier the soil the more
efcient is the penetration of methyl bromide. Methyl bromide is injected to
4575 cm depth and is covered with a gas-proof cover; the greater the dose of
methyl bromide the greater the depth of penetration. The cover remains in
place for two weeks, and afterwards it is removed and the soil is aerated for
1 month before planting. Methyl bromide may be applied from late summer to
early autumn. It is generally accepted that soil fumigation is effective in
nursery soils but is not appropriate in existing olive groves.
350
Chapter 30
351
following year. High and frequent rainfall increases Cercospora infection. When
the winter is dry problems are minimized.
BACTERIAL DISEASES
Pseudomonas syringae pv. savastanoi (Smith Stevens) (olive
knot, Psedomonadales: Pseudomonadaea)
This pathogen creates rough galls or swellings about 1.25.0 cm in diameter
on twigs, branches, trunks, roots and leaves; galls may also be formed on
trunks or limbs following wounding. Olive knot reduces productivity, since it
destroys twigs and branches (Iacobellis, 2001).
Symptoms
This disease was rst described in olive by the Greek philosopher Theophrastus
(4th century BC). Due to heavy infestation the affected limbs are dwarfed,
defoliated or killed and the whole plant may be stunted. The pathogen is also
responsible for similar diseases of other genera of the Oleaceae family such as
Forsythia, Jasminum, Phillyrea and Oleander (Nerium oleander). Due to infection,
a decrease in production and fruit size is recorded. Furthermore, the green
olives from infected limbs obtain off-avours or rancidity in taste. Other strains
of P. savastanoi include P. savastanoi pv. nerii and P. savastanoi pv. fraxini.
The main symptom is the appearance of rough galls appearing on twigs
and small branches in areas where wounds, leaf scars, pruning cuts and
mechanical injuries exist. These knots, especially at harvest, are very large and
hinder water or assimilate transport, leading to defoliation (Sisto et al., 2004).
The root system is not affected by the fungus; furthermore, stomata and
lenticels are not routes of entry for olive knot bacteria.
The optimum temperature for Pseudomonas infection is 2124C, the
maximum 32C and the minimum 510C. Rainfall encourages infection, the
most susceptible period for infection being OctoberJune. The knots develop
when the tree is actively growing during spring or early summer.
Life cycle and control
In the knots the bacteria survive and are spread easily by water over the whole
year. Various factors affect P. savastanoi inoculation (Penyalver et al., 2006): the
most appropriate temperatures for infection are the lows in autumn or spring.
The occurrence of infection requires openings provided by leaf scars, pruning
wounds or cracking due to freezing. No tolerant cultivars are known.
For Pseudomomas control it is necessary to make preventive fungicide sprays
to reduce bacterial entry through the scars. Furthermore, pruning should be
conducted carefully during the dry season, in order to remove galls from twigs.
352
Chapter 30
Avoid harvesting during rainy days and avoid inicting wounds on the trees.
Use of pathogen-free stock (internally and externally).
Use of stock with a phytosanitary certication protocol.
Use of rapid detection methods for the pathogen.
Use of resistant cultivars (Hassani et al., 2003; Iannotta et al., 2006).
Evaluation of the available olive germplasm to nd cultivars resistant or
tolerant to olive knot disease; this is the most important means of disease
management.
Selection of cultivars tolerant/resistant to freezing.
VIRAL DISEASES
A number of viruses infect olive trees in various areas (Faggioli et al., 2005).
Such viruses include cherry leaf roll (Savino and Gallitelli, 1981a), olive latent
ring spot (Savino et al., 1983), cucumber mosaic virus (Savino and Gallitelli,
1981b), an elongated virus (Faggioli and Barba, 1995) and two necroviruses
(Felix and Clara, 2002). Modern techniques are used for virus detection
(Grieco et al., 2000; Bertolini et al., 2001), and various sanitation methods for
virus infection have been proposed (Bottalico et al., 2004).
31
BIOTECHNOLOGICAL ASPECTS OF
OLIVE CULTURE
INTRODUCTION
Olive culture was spread to all the various countries of the Mediterranean
region accompanying human migration, but in modern times certain changes
must be considered in order to face several issues: (i) cultivar identication; (ii)
regeneration; (iii) maturation; (iv) abiotic stress tolerance; (v) plant size and
architecture; (vi) resistance to pests and diseases; (vii) water and salt tolerance;
(viii) parthenocarpy; and (ix) self-compatibility. Rugini et al. (2006) have
provided an overview of olive biotechnology.
MICROPROPAGATION
Some very important olive cultivars such as Kalamon, Frantoio and
Picholine are difcult to propagate in vitro (Zuccherelli and Zuccherelli,
2002). Attempts have been conducted to root such cultivars, and many factors
affecting rooting were performed, such as C:N ratio, B concentration and use of
putrescine, which promotes the activity of total peroxidases. Basal treatments
of explants with H2O2 promote early and improved rooting. Furthermore,
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
353
354
Chapter 31
Water stress
The protein osmotin is involved in water stress. Xiong et al. (2002) reported on
cell signalling following cold, drought and salt stress. The problems of drought
and salinization could be solved by using drought- and salt-resistant cultivars,
which are also appropriate for high-density plantings.
Salt tolerance
The genes SOS1, SOS2 and SOS3 are postulated to encode regulatory
components for salt tolerance. Do such genes exist in olives? Evidence indicates
a critical role for K in salt tolerance (Zhu et al., 1998). Furthermore, high
salinity affects cellular and molecular responses (Hasegawa et al., 2000).
355
SIZE OF TREE
The new trend of dense plantings in olive orchards requires trees of both reduced
size and altered shape. A number of genes exist in olive for controlling size, and
a number of cultivars should be studied for their possible use as olive rootstocks,
in order to produce trees adapted to mechanical harvesting and/or pruning.
RIPENING OF FRUIT
Many olive cultivars are late in ripening, or their ripening is not synchronous,
creating problems at harvesting time. The introduction of genes that block
ethylene synthesis is very important with regard to timing of ripening.
356
Chapter 31
PARTHENOCARPY
Some self-sterile cultivars and others produce a signicant proportion of
parthenocarpic fruits. Therefore, their fruit set and productivity is reduced
since parthenocarpic fruits are very small in size. Introduction of genes that
induce parthenocarpy allow the normal development of parthenocarpic fruit.
SELF-COMPATIBILITY
Self-compatible (self-fruitful) cultivars are important in high-density plantings
and for mono-cultivar olive oil production.
REFERENCES
Abeles, F.B. (1973) Ethylene in Plant Biology. Academic Press, New York and London,
302 pp.
Adakalic, M., Barranco, D., Le, L. and De la Rosa, R. (2004) Inuence of harvesting
date on the germination and emergence of seeds of ve olive cultivars. In: 5th
International Symposium on Olive Growing, 27 September2 October 2004, Izmir,
Turkey, Abstract 220.
Adiri, N. (1975) Isolation of protoplasts from olive leaves. MSc thesis from the Hebrew
University of Jerusalem.
Agati, G., Pinelli, P., Ebner, S.C., Romani, A., Cartelat, A. and Cerovic, Z.G. (2005)
Nondestructive evaluation of anthocyanins in olive (Olea europaea) fruits by in situ
chlorophyll uorescence spectroscopy. Journal of Agricultural Food Chemistry 53,
13541363.
Agrawal, S.B. and Agrawal, M. (2000) Environmental Pollution and Plant Responses.
Lewis Publishers, Boca Raton, Florida.
Akilioglu, M. (1991) The use of plant growth regulators and the control of alternate
bearing in olive. Olea 21, 2.
Al-Absi, K., Qruneh, M. and Abu-Sharar, T. (2003) Mechanism of salt tolerance of two
olive (Olea europaea L.) cultivars as related to electrolyte concentration and toxicity.
Acta Horticulturae 618, 281290.
Alarcon de la Lastra, C., Barranco, M.D., Motilva, V. and Harrerias, J.M. (2001)
Mediterranean diet and health: biological importance of olive oil. Current
Pharmaceutical Design 7(10), 933950.
Alberdi, M. and Corcuera, L.J. (1991) Cold acclimation in plants. Phytochemistry 30,
31773184.
Alcal, A.R. and Barranco, D. (1992) Prediction of owering time in olive for the
Crdoba Olive Collection. HortScience 27, 12051207.
Alexopoulou-Vassilaina, P. and Santorini, A.P. (1973) Some data on the biology of
Palpita unionalis Kb. (Lepidoptera: Pyralidae), under laboratory conditions. Annals
of the Benaki Phytological Institute (N.S.) 10, 320326.
Al-Jalil, H.F., Al-Omari, K.K. and Abu-Ashour, J. (1999) Comparative suitability for
mechanical harvesting of two olive cultivars. Agricultural Mechanization in Asia,
Africa and Latin America (AMA) 30(1), 3840.
Allouche, N., Fki, I. and Sayadi, S. (2004) Toward a high yield recovery of antioxidants
and puried hydroxytyrosol from olive mill wastewaters. Journal of Agriculture and
Food Chemistry 52, 267273.
CAB International 2009. Olives (I. Therios)
357
358
References
Aloh, J.D., Corpas, F.J., Rodriguez-Garcia, M.I. and del Rio, L.A. (1998) Identication
and immunolocalization of superoxide dismutase isoenzymes of olive pollen.
Physiologia Plantarum 104, 772776.
Alves, M.R., Cunha, S.C., Amaral, J.S., Pereira, J.A. and Oliveira, M.B. (2005)
Classication of PDO olive oils on the basis of their sterol composition by
multivariate analysis. Analytica Chimica Acta 549 (12), 166178.
Amane, M., Lumaret, R., Hany, V., Ouazzani, N., Debain, C., Vivier, G. and Deguilloux,
M.F. (1999) ChloroplastDNA variation in cultivated and wild olive (Olea europaea
L.). Theoretical and Applied Genetics 99, 133139.
Amin, A.H. and Saleh, M.R.A. (1975) Seasonal activity of the olive leaf moths, Palpita
unionalis (Hbner) (Lepidoptera: Pyralidae), in Kharga-Oasis, New Valley, Egypt.
Annals of the Agricultural Science, Faculty of Agriculture, Ain Shams University, Egypt
20(1), 3541.
Amiot, M.J., Fleuriet, A. and Macheix, J.J. (1986) Importance and evolution of phenolic
compounds in olive during growth and maturation. Journal of Agricultural Food
Chemistry 34, 823826.
Amiot, M.J., Fleuriet, A. and Macheix, J.J. (1989) Accumulation of oleuropein
derivatives during olive maturation. Phytochemistry 28, 6770.
Amiri, M.E. (2004) Study of mass propagation of olive (Olea europaea L.) by tissue
culture. In: 5th International Symposium on Olive Growing, 27 September2 October
2004, Izmir, Turkey, Abstract 223.
Andrews, M. (1986) The partitioning of nitrate assimilation between the root and shoot
of higher plants. Plant, Cell and Environment 9, 511519.
Andrikopoulos, N.K. (1989) The tocopherol content of Greek olive oils. Journal of the
Science of Food and Agriculture 46, 503509.
Androulakis, I.L. and Loupassaki, M.H. (1990) Studies on the self-fertility of some olive
cultivars in the area of Crete. Acta Horticulturae 286, 159162.
Angelakis, A.N., Bontoux, L. and Lazarova, V. (2002) Main challenges for water
recycling and re-use in EU countries. In: Proceedings of Water Recycling in the
Mediterranean Region, 2629 September 2002, Heraklio, Crete.
Angelopoulos, K., Dichio, B. and Xiloyannis, C. (1996) Inhibition of photosynthesis in
olive trees (Olea europaea L.) during water stress and rewatering. Journal of
Exploratory Botany 47, 10931100.
Angiolillo, A., Mencuccini, M. and Baldoni, L. (1999) Olive genetic diversity assessed
using amplied fragment length polymorphisms. Theoretical and Applied Genetics
98, 411421.
Antognossi, E., Cartechini, A. and Preziosi, P. (1975) Indagine sulla individuazione dei
migliori impollinatory per olive da mensa della cultivar Ascolana Tenera. Proceedings
of the 2nd Seminar in International Oleiculture, 67 October, 1975, Cordoba, Spain.
Antognozzi, E. and Catalano, F. (1985) Risposta varietale dell olivo ai Danni da freddo.
Annali della Facolt di Agraria di Perugia, XXXIX, 185198.
Antognozzi, E., Cartechini, A., Tombesi, A. and Proietti, P. (1990a) Transmission and
efciency of vibrations on Moraiolo olive harvesting. Acta Horticulturae 286,
413416.
Antognozzi, E., Cartechini, A., Tombesi, A. and Proietti, P. (1990b) Effect of cultivar and
vibration characteristics on mechanical harvesting of olives. Acta Horticulturae
286, 417420.
Antognozzi, E., Famiani, F., Proietti, P., Pannelli, G. and Alfei, B. (1994) Frost resistance
of some olive cultivars during the winter. Acta Horticulturae 356, 152155.
References
359
Antognozzi, E., Pilli, M., Proietti, P. and Romani, F. (1990c) Analysis of some factors
affecting frost resistance in olive trees. In: XXIII International Horticultural Congress,
Florence, Italy. Abstracts of contributed papers (2. Poster), p. 4289.
Antonopoulou, C., Dimassi, K., Chatzissavvidis, C., Therios, I. and Papadakis, I. (2006)
Effect of BA and GA3 on the micropropagation and vitrication of olive (Olea
europaea L.) explants (cv. Chondrolia Chalkidikis). In: Proceedings of the 2nd
International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo,
Italy, 1, pp. 477480.
Aparicio, R., Morales, M.T. and Alonso, V. (1997) Authentication of European virgin
olive oils by their chemical compounds, sensory attributes and consumers
attitudes. Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 45, 10761083.
Arags, R., Puy, A., Royo, A. and Espada, J.L. (2005) Three-year eld response of
young olive trees (Olea europaea L., cv. Arbequina) to soil salinity: trunk growth
and leaf ion accumulation. Plant and Soil 271, 265273.
Aviram, M. and Elias, K. (1993) Dietary olive oil reduces low-density lipoprotein uptake
by macrophages and decreases the susceptibility of lipoprotein to undergo lipid
peroxidation. Annals of Nutrition and Metabolism 37, 7584.
Ayers, B.S. and Westcot, D.W. (1985) Water Quality for Agriculture. Irrigation and
drainage paper 29, FAO, Rome.
Ayerza, R. and Coates, W. (2004) Supplemental pollination increasing olive (Olea
europaea) yields in hot, arid environments. Exploratory Agriculture 40, 480491.
Ayerza, R. and Sibbett, G.S. (2001) Thermal adaptability of olive (Olea europaea L.) to the
Arid Chaco of Argentina. Agriculture, Ecosystems and Environment 84, 277285.
Aziz, N.H., Farag, S.E., Mousa, L.A. and Abo-Zaid, M.A. (1998) Comparative
antibacterial and antifungal effects of some phenolic compounds. Microbios 93,
4354.
Bacon, M.A. (2004) Water use efciency in plant biology. In: Bacon, M.A. (ed.) Water
Use Efciency in Plant Biology. Blackwell Publishing/CRC Press, Boca Raton,
Florida, 327 pp.
Badaawi, A., Awadallah, A.M. and Foda, S.M. (1976) On the biology of the olive leaf
moth Palpita unionalis Hb. (Lepidoptera: Pyralidae). Zeitschift ang Entomologisches
81(1), 103110.
Baggio, G., Pagnam, A., Muraca, M., Martini, S., Opportuno, A., Bonanome, A., Bottista
Ambrosio, G., Ferrari, S., Guarini, P., Piccolo, D., Monzato, E., Corrocher, R. and
Crepaldi, G. (1988) Olive oil-enriched diet: effect on serum lipoprotein levels and
biliary cholesterol saturation. American Journal of Clinical Nutrition 47, 960964.
Balatsouras, G. (1990) Edible olive cultivars, chemical composition of fruit, harvesting,
transportation, processing, sorting and packaging, styles of black olives,
deterioration, quality standards, chemical analysis, nutritional and biological
value of the end product, pp. 291330.
Balatsouras, G. (1995) Table Olives: Varieties, Chemical Composition of Fruit, Commercial
Types, Quality Characteristics, Packaging and Marketing. 2nd edn, Athens, 438
pp. [in Greek]. Publisher unknown.
Baldoni, L., Guerriero, C., Sossey-Aloui, K., Abbott, A.G., Angiolillo, A. and Lumaret, R.
(2002) Phylogenetic relationships among Olea species based on nucleotide
variation at a non-coding chloroplast DNA region. Plant Biology 4, 346351.
Bandelj, D., Jakse, J. and Javornik, B. (2002) DNA ngerprinting of olive varieties by
microsatellite markers. Food Technology and Biotechnology 40(3), 185190.
360
References
Bandelj, D., Jakse, J. and Javornik, B. (2004) Assessment of genetic variability of olive
varieties by microsatellite and AFLP markers. Euphytica 136(1), 93102.
Bari, A., Martin, A., Boulouba, B., Gonzalez-Andujar, J.L., Barranco, D., Ayad, G. and
Padulosi, S. (2003) Use of fractals and moments to describe olive cultivars. Journal
of Agricultural Science 141, 6371.
Barranco, D., Cimato, A., Fiorino, P., Rallo, L., Touzani, A., Castaeda, C., Sefarani, F.
and Trujillo, I. (eds) (2000) Catlogo Mundial de las Variedades de Olivo, p. 360.
Barranco, D., Ruiz, N. and Gmez-del-Campo, M. (2005) Frost tolerance of eight olive
cultivars. HortScience 40(3), 558560.
Bartoli, R., Fernandez-Banares, F., Navarro, E., Costell, E., Ma, J., Alvarez, M., Pastor,
C., Cabr, E. and Gassull, M.A. (2000) Effect of olive oil on early and late events of
colon carcinogenesis in rats: modulation of arachidonic acid metabolism and local
prostaglandin E (2) synthesis. Gut 46, 191199.
Bartolini, G., Mazuelos, C. and Troncoso, A. (1991) Inuence of Na2SO4 and NaCl salts
on survival, growth and mineral composition of young olive plants in inert sand
culture. Advances in Horticultural Science 5, 7376.
Bartolozzi, F. and Fontanazza, G. (1995) Preliminary results on olive germplasm for
frost hardiness. Olea 23, 27.
Bartolozzi, F. and Fontanazza, G. (1999) Assessment of frost tolerance in olive (Olea
europaea L.). Scientia Horticulturae 81, 309319.
Bartolozzi, F., Rocchi, P., Camerini, F. and Fontanaza, G. (1999) Changes of biochemical
parameters in olive (Olea europaea L.) leaves during an entire vegetative season, and
their correlation with frost resistance. Acta Horticulturae 474, 435440.
Bazakos, C. (2007) Means to detect adulteration in olive oil. Ms thesis, Mediterranean
Agronomic Institute of Chania, Crete.
Beede, R.H. and Goldhamer, D.A. (1994) Olive irrigation management. In: Ferguson, L.,
Sibbett, G.S. and Martin, G.C. (eds) Olive Production Manual. University of
California, Division of Agriculture and Natural Resources, Berkeley, California,
Publication 3353, pp. 6168.
Belaj, A., Cipriani, G., Testolin, R., Rallo, L. and Trujillo, I. (2004) Characterization and
identication of the main Spanish and Italian olive cultivars by Simple-sequencerepeat markers. HortScience 39, 15571561.
Belaj, A., Trujillo, I., Rossa, R., Rallo, L. and Gimenez, M.J. (2001) Polymorphism and
discrimination capacity of randomly amplied polymorphic markers in an olive
germplasm bank. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science 126,
6471.
Bellahcene, M., Fortas, Z., Fernandez, D. and Nicole, M. (2005) Vegetative compatibility
of Verticillium dahliae isolated from olive tress (Olea europaea L.) in Algeria. African
Journal of Biotechnology 4(9), 963967.
Bellahcene, M., Fortas, Z., Geiger, J.P., Matallah, A. and Henni, D. (2000) Verticillium
wilt in olive in Algeria: geographical distribution and extent of the disease. Olivae
82, 4143.
Beltran-Heredia, A.J., Torregrosa, A.J., Garcia-Araya, J.F., Dominguez-Vargas, J.R. and
Tierno, J.C. (2001) Degradation of olive mill wastewater by the combination of
Fentons reagent and ozonation with an aerobic biological treatment. Water
Science and Technology 44, 103108.
Ben Ruina, B., Taamallah, H. and Ammar, E. (1999) Vegetation water used as fertilizer
on young olive plants. Acta Horticulturae 474, 353355.
References
361
Benavente-Garcia, O., Castillo, J., Lorente, J., Ortuo, A. and Del Rio, J.A. (2000)
Antioxidant activity of phenolics extracted from Olea europaea L. leaves. Food
Chemistry 68, 457462.
Benitez, M.L., Pedrajas, V.M., del Campillo, M.C. and Torrent, J. (2002) Iron chlorosis in
olive in relation to soil properties. Nutrient Cycling in Agroecosystems 62, 4752.
Benlloch, M., Arboleda, F., Barrano, D. and Fernndez-Escobar, R. (1991) Response of
young olive trees to sodium and boron excess in irrigation water. HortScience 26,
867870.
Benlloch, M., Marn, L. and Fernndez-Escobar, R. (1994) Salt tolerance of various olive
varieties. Acta Horticulturae 356, 215217.
Ben-Shalow, N., Kahn, V., Harel, E. and Mayer, A.M. (1977) Olive catechol oxidase
changes during fruit development. Journal of Science, Food and Agriculture 28,
545550.
Ben-Tal, Y. (1987) Improving ethephons effect on olive fruit abscission by glycerine.
HortScience 22, 869871.
Ben-Tal, Y. (1992) Quantication of ethephon requirements for abscission in olive
fruits. Plant Growth Regulation 11, 397403.
Ben-Tal, Y. and Lavee, S. (1976a) Increasing the effectiveness of ethephon for olive
harvesting. HortScience 11, 489490.
Ben-Tal, Y. and Lavee, S. (1976b) Ethylene inuence on leaf and fruit detachment in
Manzanillo olive trees. Scientia Horticulturae 4, 337340.
Ben-Tal, Y. and Lavee, S. (1984) Girdling olive trees, a partial solution to biennial
bearing. The inuence of consecutive mechanical girdling on owering and yield.
Rivista Ortoorofrutticultura Italiana 68, 441452.
Ben-Tal, Y. and Wodner, M. (1997) Chemical loosening of olive pedicels for mechanical
harvesting. Acta Horticulturae 356, 297301.
Ben-Tal, Y., Lavee, S. and Klein, I. (1979) The role of the source of ethylene in the
development of an abscission zone in olive pedicels. In: Geissbuhler, H. (ed.)
Advances in Pesticide Science: Proceedings of the 4th International Congress of Pesticide
Chemistry, 2428 July 1978, Zurich, Switzerland, 2, 347350.
Berenguer, M.J., Grattam, S.R., Connell, J.H., Polito, V.S. and Vossen, P.M. (2004) Irrigation
management to optimize olive oil production and quality. Acta Horticulturae 664,
7985.
Berenguer, M.J., Vossen, P.M., Grattan, S.R., Connell, J.H. and Polito, V.S. (2006) Tree
irrigation levels for optimum chemical and sensory properties of olive oil.
HortScience 4, 427432.
Bertolini, E., Olmos, A., Martinez, M.C., Gorris, M.T. and Cambra, M. (2001) Single-step
multiplex RT-PCR for simultaneous and colorimetric detection of six RNA viruses
in olive trees. Journal of Virological Methods 96, 3341.
Besnard, G. and Bervill, A. (2002) On chloroplast DNA variations in the olive (Olea
europaea L.) complex: comparison of RFLP and PCR polymorphisms. Theoretical and
Applied Genetics 104(67), 11571163.
Besnard, G., Breton, C., Baradat, P., Khadari, B. and Bervill, A. (2001) Cultivar
identication in olive based on RAPD markers. Journal of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 126, 668675.
Besnard, G., Khadari, B., Villemur, P. and Berville, A. (2000) Cytoplasmic male sterility
in the olive (Olea europaea L.). Theoretical and Applied Genetics 100, 10181024.
362
References
Bianchi, G. (2003) Lipids and phenols in table olives. European Journal of Lipid Science and
Technology 105, 229242.
Bieleski, R.L. (1982) Sugar alcohols. In: Loewus, F.. and Tanner, W. (eds) Encyclopedia of
Plant Physiology. New Series VI3A, Plant Carbohydrates. 1. Intercellular Carbohydrates.
Springer-Verlag, New York, pp. 158192.
Bisingnano, G., Tomaino, A., Lo Cascio, R., Crisa, G., Uccella, N. and Saija, A. (1999)
On the in vitro antimicrobial activity of oleuropein and hydroxytyrosol. Journal of
Pharmacy and Pharmacology 51, 971974.
Blanco-Lpez, M.A., Jimnez-Daz, R.M. and Caballero, J.M. (1984) Symptomatology,
incidence and distribution of Verticillium wilt of olive trees in Andalusia.
Phytopathologia Mediterranea 23, 18.
Bogani, P., Cavalieri, D., Petruccelli, R., Polsinelli, L. and Roselli, G. (1994) Identication
of olive tree cultivars by using random amplied polymorphic DNA. Acta
Horticulturae 356, 98101.
Bonachela, S., Orgaz, F., Villalobos, F.J. and Fereres, E. (2001) Soil evaporation from
drip-irrigated olive orchards. Irrigation Science 20(2), 6571.
Bongi, G. (1986) Oleuropein: an Olea europaea secoiridoid active on growth regulation.
Acta Horticulturae 179, 245249.
Bongi, G. and Loreto, F. (1989) Gas-exchange properties of salt-stressed olive (Olea
europaea L.) leaves. Plant Physiology 90, 14081416.
Bongi, G., Mancuccini, M. and Fontanazza, G. (1987) Photosynthesis of olive leaves:
effect of light, ux density, leaf age, temperature, peltates and H2O vapour pressure
decit on gas exchange. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science 112,
143148.
Bottalico, G., Saponari, M., Campanale, A., Mondelli, G., Gallucci, C., Serino, E., Savino,
V. and Martelli, G.P. (2004) Sanitation of virus-infected olive trees. Journal of Plant
Pathology 86(4), 311.
Bouat, A. (1961) Variabilet de lalimentation minrale chez lolivier. Informations
Olicoles Internationales (N.S.) 16, 1931.
Bouaziz, A. (1990) Behavior of some olive varieties irrigated with brackish water and
grown intensively in the central part of Tunisia. Acta Horticulturae 286, 247250.
Bouma, J. (1997) Precision agriculture: introduction to the spatial and temporal
variability of environmental quality. In: Lake, J.V., Bock, G.L. and Goode, J.A. (eds)
Precision Agriculture: Spatial and Temporal Variability of Environmental Quality. Ciba
Foundation 210, Symposium Wiley, Wageningen, Netherlands, pp. 517.
Bravo, L. (1999) Polyphenols: chemistry, dietary sources, metabolism and nutritional
signicance. Nutritional Reviews 56, 317333.
Breton, C., Medail, F., Pinatel, C. and Berville, A. (2006) From olive tree to Oleaster:
origin and domestication of Olea europaea L. in the Mediterranean basin. Cahiers
Agriculture 15(4), 329336.
Briante, R., Patumi, M., Limongelli, S., Febbraio, F., Vaccaro, C., Di Salle, A., La Cara, F.
and Nucci, R. (2002a) Changes in phenolic and enzymatic activities during fruit
ripening in two Italian cultivars of Olea europaea L. Plant Science 162(5), 791798.
Briante, R., Patumi, M., Terenziani, S., Bismuto, E., Febbraio, F., and Nucci, R. (2002b)
Olea europaea L. leaf extract and derivatives: antioxidant properties. Journal of
Agriculture and Food Chemistry 50(17), 49344940.
Briccoli Bati, C., Nuzzo, V. and Godino, G. (2000) Preliminary agronomic evaluation of
two cultivars of trees obtained from micropropagation methods. Acta Horticulturae
586, 867870.
References
363
Briccoli Bati, C., Basta, P., Tocci, C. and Turco, C. (1994) Inuence of irrigation with
saline water upon young olive plants. Olivae 53, 3538 [in Italian].
Broglie, K., Chet, I., Holliday, M., Cressman, R., Biddle, P., Knowlton, S., Mauvaic, C.J.
and Broglie, R. (1991) Transgenic plants with enhanced resistance to the fungal
pathogen Rhizoctonia solani. Science 254, 11941197.
Brooks, R.M. (1948) Seasonal incidence of perfect and staminate olive owers.
Proceedings of the American Society of Horticultural Science 52, 213218.
Bucci, R., Magri, D., Magri, A.L., Marini, D. and Marini, F. (2002) Chemical
authentication of extra virgin olive oil varieties by supervised chemometric
procedures. Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 50, 413418.
Burke, M.J., Gusta, L.V., Quamme, H.A., Weiser, C.J. and Li, P.H. (1976) Freezing and
injury in plants. Annual Review of Plant Physiology 27, 507528.
Caballero, J.M. and del Rio, C. (1990) Rootstock inuence on productivity parameters of
two olive cultivars. Abstracts of the 23rd International Horticultural Congress,
Florence, Italy.
Cadogan, G. (1980) Palaces of Minoan Crete. Corrected edition. Methuen, London.
Cain, J.C. (1972) Hedgerow orchard design for most efcient interception of solar
radiation. Effects of tree size, shape, spacing and row direction. New York State
Agricultural Experimental Station Search Agriculture 2, 114.
Campbell, W.H. (1988) Nitrate reductase and its role in nitrate assimilation in plants.
Physiologia Plantarum 74, 214219.
Campion, D.G., McVeigh, L.J. and Polyrakis, J. (1979) Laboratory and eld studies of the
female sex pheromone of the olive moth, Prays oleae. Experientia 35(9), 11461147.
Caas, L.A. and Benbadis, A. (1988) Plant regeneration from cotyledon fragments of
the olive tree (Olea europaea L.). Plant Science 54, 6574.
Caas, L.A., Wyssmann, A.M. and Benbadis, M.C. (1987) Isolation, culture and
division of olive (Olea europaea L.) protoplasts. Plant Cell Reproduction 6, 369371.
Capasso, R., Evidente, A., Avolio, S. and Solla, F. (1999) A highly convenient synthesis
of hydroxytyrosol and its recovery from agricultural waste waters. Journal of
Agriculture and Food Chemistry 47, 17451748.
Capasso, R., Evidente, A., Schivo, L., Orru, G., Marcialis, M.A. and Cristinzio, G. (1995)
Antibacterial polyphenols from olive oil mill waste waters. Journal of Applied
Bacteriology 79, 393398.
Carriero, F., Fontanazza, G., Cellini, F. and Giorro, (2002) Identication of simple
sequence repeats (SSRs) in olive (Olea europaea L.). Theoretical and Applied Genetics
104, 301307.
Castro, J., Fernndez, A., Aguilera, P., Orgaz, F., Garcia, J.A. and Jimenez, B. (2006) Oil
quality and response to irrigation in traditional olive orchards. In: Proceedings of the
2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del
Vallo, Italy, 2, pp. 157160.
Cegarra, J., Paredes, C., Roing, A., Bernal, M.P. and Garcias, D. (1996) Use of olive mill
wastewater compost for crop production. International Biodeterioration and
Biodegradation 38(34), 193203.
Centritto, M., Lucas, M.E. and Jarvis, P.G. (2002) Gas exchange, biomass, whole-plant
water-use efciency and water uptake of peach seedlings in response to elevated
[CO2] and water availability. Tree Physiology 22, 699706.
Centritto, M., Wahbi, S., Serraj, R. and Chaves, M.M. (2005) Effects of partial rootzone
drying (PRD) on adult olive trees (Olea europaea) in eld conditions under arid
364
References
References
365
Christakis, G., Fordyce, M.K. and Kurtz, C.S. (1982) The Biological and Medical Aspects of
Olive Oil. International Olive Oil Council, Madrid.
Chuine, I., Cour, P. and Rousseau, D.D. (1998) Fitting models predicting dates of
owering of temperate zone trees using simulated annealing. Plant Cell
Environment 21, 455466.
Cimato, A., Cantini, C. and Sillari, B. (1990) A method of pruning for the recovery of
olive productivity. Acta Horticulturae 286, 251254.
Cirulli, M. (1981) Attuali cognizioni sulla Verticilliosi dellolivo. Informatore
Fitopatologico 31, 101105 [in Italian].
Clodoveo, M.L., Delcuratolo, D., Gomes, T. and Colleli, G. (2007) Effect of different
temperatures and storage atmospheres on Coratina olive oil quality. Food
Chemistry 102, 571576.
Close, T.J. (1997) Dehydrins: a commonality in the response of plants to dehydration
and low temperature. Physiologia Plantarum 100, 291296.
Cobb, D., Feber, R., Hopkins, A., Stockdale, L., ORiordan, T., Clements, B., Firbank, L.,
Goulding, K., Jarvi, S.S. and Macdonald, D. (1999) Integrating the environmental
and economic consequences of converting to organic agriculture: evidence from a
case study. Land Use Policy 16(4), 207221.
Cohen, L.A. and Wydner, E.I. (1990) Do dietary monounsaturated fatty acids play a
protective role in carcinogenesis and cardiovascular disease? Medical Hypotheses
31, 8389.
Collier, T.R. and Van Steenway, K.R.A. (2003) Prospects for integrated control of olive
fruit y are promising in California. California Agriculture 57(1), 2831.
Conacher, J. and Conacher, A. (1998) Organic farming and the environment, with
particular reference to Australia: a review. Biological Agriculture and Horticulture
16(2), 145171.
Conde, C., Silva, P., Agasse, A., Lemoine, R., Delrot, S., Tavares, R. and Gers, H. (2007)
Utilization and transport of mannitol in Olea europaea and implications for salt
stress tolerance. Plant and Cell Physiology 48(1), 4253.
Coni, E., Di Benedetto, R., Di Pasquale, M., Masella, R., Modesti, D., Mattei, R. and
Carlini, E.A. (2000) Protective effect of oleuropein, an olive oil biophenol, on low
density lipoprotein oxidizability in rabbits. Lipids 35, 4554.
Connell, J.H. and Catlin, P.B. (1994) The olive tree and fruit. Root physiology and
rootstock characteristics. In: Olive Production Manual, University of California,
Division of Agriculture and Natural Resources, Berkeley, California, Publication
3353, pp. 4350.
Connor, D.J. (2005) Adaption of olive (Olea europaea L.) to water-limited environments.
Australian Journal of Agricultural Research 56, 11811189.
Connor, D.J. (2006) Towards optimal designs for hedgerow olive orchards. Australian
Journal of Agricultural Research 57(10), 10671072.
Costagli, G., Gucci, R. and Rapoport, H.F. (2003) Growth and development of fruits of
olive Frantoio under irrigated and rainfed conditions. Journal of Horticultural
Science and Biotechnology 78(1), 119124.
Cramer, G.R., Lauchli, A. and Polito, V.S. (1985) Displacement of Ca2+ by Na+ from the
plasmalemma of root cells. Plant Physiology 79, 207211.
Cresti, M., Ciampolini, F., Tattini, M. and Cimato, A. (1994) Effect of salinity on
productivity and oil quality of olive (Olea europaea L.) plants. Advances in
Horticultural Science 8, 211214.
366
References
Cresti, M., Linskens, H.F., Mulcahy, D.L., Bush, S., Di Stilio, V., Xu, M.Y., Vignani, R. and
Cimato, A. (1996) Preliminary communication about the identication of DNA in
leaves and in olive oil of Olea europaea. Advances in Horticultural Science 10, 105107.
Cuevas, J. and Polito, V.S. (2004) The role of staminate owers in the breeding system of
Olea europaea (Oleaceae): an andromonoecious, wind-pollinated taxon. Annals of
Botany 93(5), 547553.
Cuevas, J. and Rallo, L. (1990) Response to cross-pollination in olive trees with different
levels of owering. Acta Horticulturae 286, 179182.
Cuevas, J., Diaz-Hermoso, A.J., Galin, D., Hucso, J.J., Pinillos, V., Pricto, M., Sola, D. and
Polito, V.S. (2001) Response to cross pollination and choice of pollinators for the
olive cultivars (Olea europaea L.) Manzanilla de Sevilla, Hojiblanca and Picual.
Olivae 85, 2632.
Cuevas, J., Pinney, K. and Polito, V.S. (1999) Flower differentiation pistil development
and pistil abortion in olive Olea europaea L. Manzanillo. Acta Horticulturae 474,
293296.
Cuevas, J., Rallo, L. and Rapoport, H.F. (1994a) Crop load effects on oral quality in
olive. Scientia Horticulturae 59, 123130.
Cuevas, J., Rallo, L. and Rapoport, H.F. (1994b) Staining procedure for the observation
of olive pollen tube behavior. Acta Horticulturae 356, 264267.
Cuevas, J., Rallo, L. and Rapoport, H.F. (1995) Relationships among reproductive
processes and fruitlets abscission in Arbequina olive. Advances in Horticultural
Science 9, 9296.
DAndria, R., Morelli, G., Patumi, M. and Fontanazza, G. (2002) Irrigation regime
affects yield and oil quality of olive trees. Acta Horticulturae 586, 273276.
DAngeli, S. and Altamura, M.M. (2007) Osmotin induces cold protection in olive trees
by affecting programmed cell death and cytoskeleton organization. Planta 225,
11471163.
DAngeli, S., Malho, R. and Altamura, M.M. (2003) Low temperature sensing in olive
tree: calcium signaling and cold acclimation. Plant Science 165, 13031313.
Dag, A., Avidan, B., Birger, R. and Lavee, S. (2006) High-density olive orchards in Israel.
In: Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, 2, 3135.
Damtoft, S., Franzyk, H. and Jensen, S.R. (1993) Biosynthesis of secoiridoid glucosides
in Oleaceae. Phytochemistry 34, 12911299.
Darral, N.M. and Wareing, P.F. (1981) The effect of nitrogen nutrition on cytokinin
activity and free amino acids in Betula pendula Roth and Acer pseudoplatanus L.
Journal of Experimental Botany 32, 369379.
De la Puerta, R., Martinez Dominguez, M.E., Ruiz-Gutierrez, V., Flavill, J.A., Robin, J. and
Hoult, S. (2001) Effects of virgin olive oil phenolics on scavenging of reactive nitrogen
species and upon nitrergic neurotransmission. Life Sciences 69, 12131222.
de la Rosa, R., James, C.M. and Tobutt, K.R. (2002) Isolation and characterization of
polymorphic microsatellites in olive (Olea europaea L.) and their transferability to
other genera in the Oleaceae. Molecular Ecology Notes 2, 265267.
de la Rosa, R., James, C.M. and Tobutt, K.R. (2004) Using microsatellites for paternity
testing in olive progenies. HortScience 39(2), 351354.
De Melo-Abreu, J.P., Barranco, D., Cordeiro, A.M., Tous, J., Rogado, B.M. and Villalobos,
F.J. (2004) Modeling olive owering date using chilling for dormancy release and
thermal time. Agricultural Forest Meteorology 125, 117127.
References
367
368
References
References
369
Fabbri, A. (2006) Olive propagation: new challenges and scientic research. In:
Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Seminars and invited lectures, pp. 411421.
Fabbri, A. and Ganino, T. (2002) Organic olive growing in Italy. Advances in Horticultural
Science 16(34), 204217.
Fabbri, A. Bartolini G., Lambardi, M. and Kailis, S.G. (2004) Olive Propagation Manual.
CSIRO Publishing, Canberra.
Fabbri, A., Hormaza, J.I. and Polito, V.S. (1995) Random amplied polymorphic DNA
analysis of olive (Olea europaea L.) cultivars. Journal of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 120, 538542.
Faci, J.M., Berenguer, M.J., Espada, J.L. and Garcia, S. (2002) Effect of variable irrigation
supply in olive (Olea europaea cv. Arbequina) in Araga (Spain). I. Fruit and oil
production. Acta Horticulturae 586, 342344.
Fadzilla, N.M., Robert, P., Finch, R.P. and Burdon, R.H. (1997) Salinity, oxidative stress
and antioxidant response in shoot cultures of rice. Journal of Experimental Botany
48, 325351.
Faggioli, F. and Barba, M. (1995) An elongated virus isolated from olive Olea europaea L.
Acta Horticulturae 386, 593599.
Faggioli, F., Ferretti, L., Albanese, G., Scriarroni, R., Pasquini, G., Lumia, V. and Barba,
M. (2005) Distribution of olive tree viruses in Italy as revealed by one step RT-PCR.
Journal of Plant Pathology 87(1), 4955.
FAOSTAT (2003) FAO Primary Crops Statistical Database. Food and Agriculture
Organization, Rome.
Farinelli, D., Boco, M. and Tombesi, A. (2002) Intensity and growth period of the fruit
components of olive varieties. Acta Horticulturae 568, 607610.
Farinelli, D., Boco, M. and Tombesi, A. (2006) Results of four years of observations on
self-sterility behaviour of several olive cultivars and signicance of cross-pollination.
Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, 1, pp. 275282.
Fehri, B., Aiache, J.M., Memmi, A., Korbi, S., Yacoubi, M.T., Mrad, S. and Lamaison, J.L.
(1994) Hypotension, hypoglycemia and hypouricemia recorded after repeated
administration of aqueous leaf extract of Olea europaea L. Journal de Pharmacie
Belgique 49, 101108.
Felix, M.R.F. and Clara, M.I.E. (2002) Two necrovirus with properties of Olive latent virus
1 and Tobacco necrosis virus from olive in Portugal. Acta Horticulturae 586,
725728.
Fereres, E. and Castel, J.R. (1981) Drip Irrigation Management. Division of Agricultural
Sciences, University of California, Berkeley, California, Publication leaet 21259.
Fereres, E., Pruit, W.D., Beutel, J.A., Henderson, D.W., Holzaptel, E., Schulbach, H. and
Uriu, K. (1981) In: Fereres, E. (ed.) Evapotranspiration and Irrigation Scheduling. Drip
Irrigation Management, Division of Agricultural Sciences, University of California,
Berkeley, California, Publication leaet 21259, pp. 813.
Ferguson, L. (2006) The table olive industry in California. In: Proceedings of the 2nd
International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo,
Italy, Seminars and invited lectures, pp. 199204.
Ferguson, L., Krueger, W.H., Reyes, H. and Methney, P. (2002) Effect of mechanical
pruning on California Black Ripe (Olea europaea) cv. Manzanillo table olive yield.
Acta Horticulturae 586, 281284.
370
References
Ferguson, L., Sibbett, G.S. and Martin, G.C. (1994) Olive Production Manual. University
of California, Division of Agriculture and Natural Resources, Oakland, California,
Publication 3353, 156 pp.
Fernandes Serrano, J.M., Serrano, M. and Amaral, E. (2002) Effect of different hormone
treatments on rooting of Olea europaea cv. Galega vulgar cuttings. Acta
Horticulturae 586, 875877.
Fernndez, J.E. (2006) Irrigation management in olive. In: Proceedings of the 2nd
International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo,
Italy, Seminars and invited lectures, pp. 295305.
Fernndez, J.E. and Moreno, F. (1999) Water use by the olive tree. Journal of Crop
Production 2, 101162.
Fernndez, J.E., Diaz-Espejo, A., Infante, J.M., Durn, P., Palomo, M.J., Chamorro, V., Girn,
I.F. and Villagarcia, L. (2006) Water relations and gas exchange in olive trees under
regulated decit irrigation and partial rootzone drying. Plant and Soil 284, 271287.
Fernndez, J.E., Moreno, F. and Martin-Aranda, J. (1990) Study of root dynamics of olive
trees under drip irrigation and dry farming. Acta Horticulturae 286, 263266.
Fernndez, J.E., Moreno, F., Girn, I.F. and Blazquez, O.M. (1997) Stomatal control of
water use in olive tree leaves. Plant Soil 190, 179192.
Fernndez, J.E., Palomo, M.J., Diaz-Espejo, A. and Giron, I.F. (1999) Calibrating the
compensation heat-pulse technique for measuring sap ow in olive. Acta
Horticulturae 474, 455457.
Fernndez, J.E., Palomo, M.J., Diaz-Espejo, A., and Girn, I.F. (2003) Inuence of partial
soil wetting on water relation parameters of the olive tree. Agronomie 23, 545552.
Fernndez, J.E., Palomo, M.J., Diaz-Espejo, A., Clothier, B.E., Green, S.R., Girn, I.F. and
Moreno, F. (2001) Heat-pulse measurements of sap ow in olives for automating
irrigation: tests, root ow and diagnostics of water stress. Agricultural Water
Management 51, 99123.
Fernndez-Bolanos, J., Rodriguez, R., Guillen, R., Jimenez, A. and Heredia, A. (1995)
Activity of cell wall-associated enzymes in ripening olive fruit. Physiologia
Plantarum 93, 651658.
Fernndez-Escobar, R. and Marn, L. (1999) Nitrogen fertilization in olive orchards.
Acta Horticulturae 474, 333335.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Barranco, D. and Benlloch, M. (1993) Overcoming iron
chlorosis in olive and peach trees using a low-pressure trunk-injection method.
HortScience 28, 192194.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Benlloch, M., Herrera, E. and Garcia-Novelo, J.M. (2004a) Effect
of traditional and slow-release N fertilizers on growth of olive nursery plants and N
losses by leaching. Scientia Horticulturae 101, 3949.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Benlloch, M., Navarro, C. and Martin, G.C. (1992) The time of
oral induction in the olive. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science
117, 304307.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Garcia Barragn, T. and Benlloch, M. (1994) Estado nutritive de
las plantaciones de olivar en la provincial de Granada. ITEA 90, 3949.
Fernndez-Escobar, R., Garcia-Novelo, J.M., Snchez-Zamora, M.A., Uceda, M., Beltrn,
G. and Aguilera, M.P. (2002) Efeto del abonado nitrogenado en la produccin y la
calidad del aceite de oliva. Direccin General de Investigacin y Formacin Agraria
y Resquera (ed.) Jounadas de Investigacin y Transferencia de Technologia al Sector
Oleicola, Cordoba (Spain), pp. 299302.
References
371
372
References
Gaddi, A.V., Bove, M., Cicero, A., Nascetti, S. and Covas, M.I. (2006) Role of olive oil in
the health: results from the Eurolive study. In: Proceedings of the 2nd International
Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Special
seminars and invited lectures, pp. 273280.
Galn, C., Garcia-Mozo, H., Carianos, P., Alczar, P. and Dominguez-Vilches, E. (2001)
The role of temperature in the onset of the Olea europaea L. pollen season in
southwestern Spain. International Journal of Biometeorology 45, 812.
Galn, C., Garca-Mozo, H., Vsquez, L., Ruiz, L., Guardia, C.D. and Trigo, M.M. (2005)
Heat requirement for the onset of the Olea europaea L. pollen season in several sites
in Andalusia and the effect of the expected future climate change. International
Journal of Biometeorology 49, 184188.
Galindo, P., de Luna, E., Castro, J., Polo, M.J. and Navarro, C. (2006) Herbicides used in
olive orchards: behavior in supercial runoff ow. In: Proceedings of the 2nd
International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo,
Italy, 2, pp. 6975.
Galli, C. and Visioli, F. (1999) Antioxidant and other activities of phenolics in
olives/olive oil, typical components of the Mediterranean diet. Lipids 34, 523526.
Ganino, T., Bartolini, G. and Fabbri, A. (2006) The classication of olive germplasm a
review. Journal of Horticultural Science and Biotechnology 81(3), 319334.
Garcia, J.L., Avidan, N., Troncoso, A., Sarmiento, R. and Lavee, S. (2000) Possible
juvenile-related proteins in olive tree tissues. Scientia Horticulturae 85(4), 271284.
Garcia, J.L., Lin, J., Sarmiento, R. and Troncoso, A. (1999) Effect of different N forms
and concentrations on olive seedlings growth. Acta Horticulturae 474, 323327.
Garcia, J.L., Troncoso, J., Sarmiento, R. and Troncoso, A. (2002) Inuence of carbon
and concentration on the in vitro development of olive zygotic embryos and
explants raised from them. Plant Cell, Tissue and Organ Culture 69(1), 95100.
Garcia, J.M., Seller, S. and Perez-Camino, M.C. (1996) Inuence of fruit ripening on olive
oil quality. Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 44, 35163520.
Garcia-Frriz, L., Ghorbel, R., Ybarra, M., Mari, A., Belay, A. and Trujillo, I. (2000)
Micropropagation from adult olive trees. Acta Horticulturae 586, 879882.
Garcia-Ortiz, A., Fernandez, A., Pastor, M. and Humanes, J. (1997) In: Barranco, D.,
Fernandez-Escobar, R. and Rallo, L. (eds) El Cultivo del Olivo. 2nd edn, MundiPrensa, Madrid, pp. 307343.
Garrido-Fernndez, A., Lpez Lpez, A. and Garia, P. (2006) Table olives in Spain. In:
Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Seminars and invited lectures, pp. 205212.
Gaspar, T., Kevers, C. and Hausman, J.F. (1997) Indissociable chief factors in the
inductive phase of adventitious rooting. In: Altman, A and Waisel, Y. (eds) Biology
of Root Formation and Development. Plenum Press, New York, pp. 5563.
Gaspar, T., Kevers, C., Hausman, J.F. and Ripetti, V. (1994) Peroxidase activity and
endogenous free auxin during adventitious root formation. In: Lumsden, P.J.,
Nicholas, J.R. and Davis, W.J. (eds) Physiology, Growth and Development of Plants in
Culture. Kluwer Academic Publishers, Dordrecht, Netherlands, p. 430.
Gavalas, N.A. (1978) Inorganic Nutrition and Fertilization of Olive. Benaki
Phytopathological Institute, Kissia, Athens.
Gerasopoulos, D., Metzidakis, I. and Naoufel, E. (1999) Ethephon sprays affect harvest
parameters of Mastoides olives. Acta Horticulturae 474, 223226.
References
373
Giametta, G. (1988) Olive mechanical pruning tests. In: 2nd International Meeting on
Mediterranean Tree Crops, 24 November 1988, Chania, Crete, pp. 207215.
Giametta, G. (2001) Innovazione nella meccanizzazione della raccolta delle olive. Olivo
e Olio 10, 3538.
Giametta, G. and Zimbalatti, G. (1993) Possibilities of mechanical pruning in
traditional olive groves. In: 2nd International Symposium on Olive Growing,
610 September 1993, Jerusalem, Israel, pp. 311314.
Giametta, G. and Zimbalatti, G. (1997) Mechanical pruning in new olive groves. Journal
of Agricultural Engineering and Research 68, 1520.
Giorgelli, F., Lorenzini, G., Minnocci, A., Panicucci, A. and Vitagliano, C. (1994) Effects
of long-term SO2 pollution on olive trees. Acta Horticulturae 356, 185188.
Giorgio, V., Gallotta, A., Camposeo, S., Roncasaglia, R. and Dradi, G. (2006) Advances
in improving micropropagation of olive (Olea europaea var. sativa L.): preliminary
results on 18 olive varieties belonging to Italian and Spanish germplasm. In:
Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, 1, pp. 441444.
Giorio, P. and dAndria, R. (2002) Sap ow estimated by compensation heat-pulse
velocity technique in olive trees under two irrigation regimes in Southern Italy.
Acta Horticulturae 586, 401403.
Gioulekas, D., Chatzigeorgiou, G., Lykogiannis, S., Papakosta, D., Mpalafoutis, C. and
Spieksma, F.T.M. (1991) Olea europaea 3-year pollen record in the area of
Thessaloniki, Greece, and its sensitizing signicance. Aerobiologia 7, 5761.
Godwin, I.D., Aitken, E.A.B. and Smith, L.W. (1997) Application of Inter Simple
Sequence Repeat (ISSR) markers to plant genetics. Electrophoresis 18, 15241528.
Goldhamer, D., Dunai, J. and Ferguson, L. (1994) Irrigation requirements of olive trees
and responses to sustained decit irrigation. Acta Horticulturae 356, 172176.
Goldhamer, D.A. and Fereres, E. (2001) Irrigation scheduling protocols using continuously
recorded trunk diameter measurements. Irrigation Science 20(3), 115125.
Gomez-Rico, A., Desamparados Salvator, M., La Greca, M. and Fregapane, G. (2006)
Phenolic and volatile compounds of extra virgin olive oil (Olea europaea L. cv.
Cornicabra) with regard to fruit ripening and irrigation management. Journal of
Agriculture and Food Chemistry 54, 71307136.
Goor, A. (1962) The place of the olive in the Holy Land and its history through the ages.
Economic Botany 20, 223.
Graniti, A. (1962) Osservazioni su Spilocaea oleagina (Cast.) Hugh.: sulla localizzazione
del micelio nelle foglie di olivo. Phytophathologia Mediterranea 1, 157165.
Grattan, S.R., Berenguer, M.J., Connell, J.H., Polito, V.S. and Vossen, P.M. (2006) Olive oil
production as inuenced by different quantities of applied water. Agricultural Water
Management 85, 133140.
Greenway, H. and Munns, R. (1980) Mechanisms of salt stress in non-halophytes.
Annual Review of Plant Physiology 31, 149190.
Grieco, F., Alkowni, R., Saponari, M., Savino, V. and Martelli, G.P. (2000) Molecular
detection of olive viruses. Bulletin EPPO/OEPP Bulletin 29, 127133.
Griggs, W.H., Hartmann, H.T., Bradley, M.V., Iwakiri, B.T. and Whisler, J.E. (1975) Olive
pollination in California. California Agriculture Experimental Station Bulletin 869,
49.
Gucci, R. and Cantini, C. (2004) Pruning and Training Systems for Modern Olive Growing.
CSIRO Publishing, Clayton South, Victoria, Australia, pp. 35, 144.
374
References
Gucci, R. and Tattini, M. (1997) Salinity tolerance in olive. Horticultural Review 21,
177214.
Gucci, R., Lombardini, L. and Tattini, M. (1997a) Analysis of leaf water relations in
leaves of two olive (Olea europaea) cultivars differing in tolerance to salinity. Tree
Physiology 17(1), 1321.
Gucci, R., Massai, R., Casano, S. and Costagli, G. (1997b) The effect of leaf age on CO2
assimilation and stomatal conductance of eld-grown olive trees. Acta
Horticulturae 474, 289292.
Guerin, J., Mekurra, G., Collins, G., Jones, G., Burr, M., Wirtensohn, M. and Sedgley, M.
(2002) Olive cultivar improvement through selection and biotechnology. Advances
in Horticultural Science 16(34), 198203.
Gutirrez, F., Perdiguero, S., Gutirrez, R. and Olias, J.M. (1992) Evaluation of the bitter
taste in virgin olive oil. Journal of the American Oil Chemists Society 69, 394395.
Guy, C.L., Huber, J.L. and Huber, S.C. (1992) Sucrose phosphate synthase and sucrose
accumulation at low temperature. Plant Physiology 100, 502508.
Haber, B. (1997) The Mediterranean diet: a view from history. American Journal of
Clinical Nutrition 66(4), 1053510575.
Hackett, W.P. 1985. Juvenility, maturation and rejuvenation in woody plants.
Horticultural Reviews 7, 109156.
Hackett, W.P. and Hartmann, H.T. (1963) Morphological development of olive as related
to low temperature requirement for inorescence formation. Botanical Gazette 124,
383387.
Hackett, W.P. and Hartmann, H.T. (1964) Inorescence formation in olive as inuenced
by low temperature, photoperiod and leaf area. Botanical Gazette 125, 6572.
Hackett, W.P. and Hartmann, H.T. (1967) The inuence of temperature on oral
initiation in the olive. Physiologia Plantarum 20, 430436.
Hagidimitriou, M. and Pontikis, C.A. (2005) Seasonal changes in CO2 assimilation in
leaves of ve major Greek olive cultivars. Scientia Horticulturae 104(1), 1124.
Hagidimitriou, M., Katsiotis, A., Menexes, G., Pontikis, C. and Loukas, M. (2005)
Genetic diversity of major Greek olive cultivars using molecular (AFLPs and
RAPDs) markers and morphological traits. Journal of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 130(2), 211217.
Hagin, J., Olsen, S.R. and Shaviv, A. (1990) Review of interaction of ammonium nitrate
and potassium nutrition of crops. Journal of Plant Nutrition 13, 12111226.
Hanbury, D. (1954) On the febrifuge properties of the olive (Olea europaea L.).
Pharmaceutical Journal of Provincial Transactions 1854, 353354.
Hangeveld, H.G. (2000) Projections for Canadas Climate Future. CCD 0001, Special
Edition (http:/www.MSc-smc.ec.gc.ca/apac/climate/ccsci-e.cfm).
Haniotakis, G.E., Kozyrakis, K. and Bonatsos, C. (1986) Control of the olive fruit y,
Dacus oleae Gmel. (Diptera: Tephritidae) by mass trapping: pilot-scale feasibility
study. Journal of Applied Entomology 101, 343352.
Hare, D.D. and Cress, W.A. (1997) Metabolic implication of stress-induced proline
accumulation in plants. Plant Growth Regulation 21, 79102.
Hare, P.D., Cress, W.A. and van Staden, J. (1997) The involvement of cytokinins in plant
responses to environmental stress. Plant Growth Regulation 23, 79103.
Hare, P.D., Cress, W.A. and van Staden, J. (1998) Dissecting the roles of osmolyte
accumulation during stress. Plant Cell and Environment 21, 535553.
References
375
Hare, P.D., Cress, W.A. and Van Staden, J. (1999) Proline synthesis and degradation: a
model system for elucidating stress-related signal transduction. Journal of
Experimental Botany 50(333), 413434.
Hartmann, H., Schnathorst, W.C. and Whisler, W.C. (1971) Oblonga, a clonal olive
rootstock resistant to Verticillium wilts. California Agriculture 25, 1225.
Hartmann, H.T. (1949) Growth of the olive fruit. Proceedings of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 54, 8649.
Hartmann, H.T. (1950) The effect of girdling on ower type, fruit set and yields in the
olive. Proceedings of the American Society of Horticultural Science 56, 217226.
Hartmann, H.T. (1953) Effect of winter chilling on fruit fullness and vegetative growth
in the olive. Proceedings of the American Society of Horticultural Science 62, 184186.
Hartmann, H.T. and Panetsos, C. (1962) Effect of soil moisture deciency during oral
development on fruitfulness in olives. Proceedings of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 78, 209217.
Hartmann, H.T. and Porlingis, I. (1957) Effect of different amounts of winter chilling on
fruitfulness of several olive varieties. Botanical Gazette 119, 102104.
Hartmann, H.T. and Whisler, J.E. (1970) Some rootstock and interstock inuences in
the olive (Olea europaea L.) cv. Sevillano. Journal of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 95, 562565.
Hartmann, H.T. and Whisler, J.E. (1975) Flower production in olive as inuenced by
various chilling temperature regimes. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural
Science 100, 670674.
Hartmann, H.T., Fadl, M.S. and Hackett, W.P. (1967) Initiation of owering and
changes in endogenous inhibitors and promoters in olive buds as a result of
chilling. Physiologia Plantarum 20, 746759.
Hartmann, H.T., Kester, D.E., Geneve, R.L. and Davis Jr, F.T. (2001) Plant Propagation.
Principles and Practices. 7th edn., Culinary and Hospitality Industry Publications
Services, Weimar, Texas, 896 pp.
Hartmann, H., Schnathorst, W.C. and Whirler, W.C. (1971) Oblonga, a clonal olive
rootstock resistant to Verticillium wilts. California Agriculture 25, 1225.
Hartmann, H.T., Tombesi, A. and Whisler, J. (1970) Promotion of ethylene evolution
and fruit abscission in the olive by 2-chloroethylphosphonic acid and
cycloheximide. Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science 95, 635640.
Hartmann, H.Y. (1951) Time of oral differentiation of the olive in California. Botanical
Gazette 112, 323327.
Hasegawa, P.M., Bressan, S.A., Zhu, J.K. and Bohnert, H.J. (2000) Plant cellular and
molecular responses to high salinity. Annual Review of Plant Physiology/Plant and
Molecular Biology 51, 463499.
Hassan, M.M. and Seif, S.A. (1990) Response of seven olive cultivars to water logging.
Gartenbauwissenschaft 55, 223.
Hassani, D., Buonaurio, R. and Tombesi, A. (2003) Response of some olive cultivars,
hybrid and open-pollinated seedlings to Pseudomonas savastanoi pv. pavastanoi. In:
Iacobellis, N.S. et al. (eds) Pseudomomas syringae and Related Pathogens. Kluwer
Academic Publishers, Dordrecht, Netherlands, pp. 489494.
Hatzopoulos, P., Banilas, G., Giannoulia, K., Gazis, F., Nikoloudakis, N., Milioni, D. and
Haralampidis, K. (2002) Breeding, molecular markers and molecular biology of
the olive tree. European Journal of Lipid Science and Technology 104, 574586.
376
References
Herenguer, M.J., Vossen, P.M., Grattan, S.R., Connell, J.H. and Polito, V.S. (2006) Tree
irrigation levels for optimum chemical and sensory properties of olive oil.
HortScience 41, 427432.
Hetherlington, A.M. and Woodward, F.I. (2003) The role of stomata in sensing and
driving environmental change. Nature 424, 901908.
Hilton, J.L., Scharen, A.L., St. John, J.B., Moreland, D.E. and Norris, K.H. (1969) Modes
of action of pyridazinone herbicides. Weed Science 17, 541547.
Hirayama, T., Ohto, C., Mizoguchi, T. and Shinozaki, K. (1995) A gene encoding a
phosphatidylinositol-specic phospholipase C is induced by dehydration and salt
stress in Arabidopsis thaliana. Proceedings of the Natural Academy of Sciences of the
United States of America 92, 39033907.
Ho, C.T., Lee, C.Y. and Huang, M.T. (eds) (1992) Phenolic Compounds in Foods and their
Effects on Health. Volume 1: Analysis, Occurrence and Chemistry. American
Chemistry Society, Washington, DC.
Hood, S. (1971) The Minoans. Crete in the Bronze Age. Thames and Hudson, London.
Howe, G.R., Hirohata T., Hislop, T.G., Iscivich, J.M., Yuan, J-M., Katsouyanni, K., Lubin,
F., Marubini, E., Modan, B., Rohan, T., Toniolo, P. and Shunzhang, Y. (1990)
Dietary factors and risk of breast cancer: combined analysis of 12 case-control
studies. Journal of the National Cancer Institute 82, 561569.
Iacobellis, N.S. (2001) Olive knot. In: Maloy, O.C. and Murray, T.D. (eds) Encyclopedia of
Plant Pathology. Vol. 2, John Wiley and Sons, New York, pp. 713715.
Iannotta, N. and Perri, E. (2006) Lesperienza della Spagna nellolivicoltura
superintensiva. LInformatore Agrario 1, 5963.
Iannotta, N., Noce, M.E., Scalercio, S. and Vizzarri V. (2006) Behavior of olive cultivars
to catch the knot disease caused by Pseudomonas savastanoi pv. savastanoi (Smith).
In: XIII Congresso Nazionale SIPaV, Foggia, Italy, 1215 September 2006.
Instanbouli, A. and Neville, P. (1979) tude de la dormance des semences dolivier
(Olea europaea L.). III. Inuence des enveloppes sur la germination. Annales de
Sciences Naturelles Botaniques Paris, 13 Sr. 1, 151165.
Intrieri, M.C., Muleo, R. and Buiatt,i M. (2007) Chloroplast DNA polymorphisms as
molecular markers to identify cultivars of Olea europaea L. Journal of Horticultural
Science and Biotechnology 82(1), 109113.
IPCC (2001) Climate Change 2001: Impacts, Adaptation and Vulnerability. Cambridge
University Press, Cambridge, UK.
Israilides, C.J., Vlyssides, A.G., Mourafeti, V.N. and Karvouni, G. (1997) Olive oil
wastewater treatment with the use of an electrolysis system. Bioresource Technology
61, 163170.
Jackson, J.E. (1980) Light interception and utilization by orchard systems. Horticultural
Reviews 2, 208267.
Jaglo-Ottosen, K.R., Gilmour, G.S.J., Zarka, D.G., Schabenberger, O. and Thomashow,
M.F. (1998) Arabidopsis CBF1 overexpression induces Cor genes and enhances
freezing tolerance. Science 280, 104106.
Janzen, H.H. and Chang, C. (1987) Cation nutrition of barley as inuenced by soil
solution composition in a saline soil. Canadian Journal of Soil Science 67, 619629.
Jimnez, A., Rodriguez, R., Fernndez-Caro, I., Guilln, R., Fernndez-Bolanos, J. and
Heredia, A. (2001) Olive fruit cell wall: degradation of cellulosic and hemicellulosic
polysaccharides during ripening. Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 49,
20082013.
References
377
Jones, H. (2004) What is water use efciency? In: Bacon, M.A. (ed.) Water Use Efciency
in Plant Biology. Blackwell Publishing/CRC Press, Boca Raton, Florida, 2741 pp.
Jordao, P.V., Marcelo, M.E. and Centeno, M.S.L. (1999) Effect of cultivar on leaf-mineral
composition of olive tree. Acta Horticulturae 474, 349352.
Juven, B. and Henis, Y. (1970) Studies on antimicrobial activity of olive phenolic
compounds. Journal of Applied Bacteriology 33, 721732.
Juven, B., Henis, Y. and Jacoby, B. (1972) Studies on the mechanism of the antimicrobial
action of oleuropein. Journal of Applied Bacteriology 35, 559567.
Juven, B., Samish, Z. and Henis, Y. (1968) Identication of oleuropein as a natural
inhibitor of lactic acid fermentation. Israeli Journal of Agricultural Research 18,
137138.
Kailis, S.G. and Considine, J.A. (2002) The olive Olea europaea L. in Australia: 2000
onwards. Advances in Horticultural Science 16(34), 299306.
Kapdan, I.K. and Kargi, F. (2006) Bio-hydrogen production from waste materials.
Enzyme and Microbial Technology 38, 569582.
Karabourniotis, G., Kotsabassidis, D. and Manetas, Y. (1995) Trichome density and its
protective potential against ultraviolet-B radiation damage to leaf development.
Canadian Journal of Botany 73, 376383.
Karabourniotis, G., Papadopoulos, K., Papamarkou, M. and Manetas, Y. (1992)
Ultraviolet-B radiation absorbing capacity of leaf hairs. Physiologia Plantarum 86,
414418.
Katsoyannos, P. (1992) Olive Pests and Their Control in the Near East. FAO Plant
Production and Protection Paper, 179 pp.
Kavallieratos, N.G., Athanassiou, C.G., Balotis, G.N., Tatsi, G.T. and Mazomenos, B.E.
(2005) Factors affecting male Prays olaeae (Lepidoptera: Yponomeutidae) captures
in pheromone-baited traps in olive orchards. Journal of Economic Entomology 98(5),
14991505.
Kavi Kishor, P.B.K., Hong, Z., Miao, G.H., Hu, C.A.A. and Verma, D.P.S. (1995)
Overexpression of 1-pyrroline-5-carboxylate synthetase increases proline
production and confers osmotolerance in transgenic plants. Plant Physiology 108,
13871394.
Keys, A. (1995) Mediterranean diet and public health: personal reections. American
Journal of Clinical Nutrition 61(6), 1321S1323S.
Khabou, W and Trigui, A. (1999) Optimization of hardwood-cutting as a method of
olive tree multiplication. Acta Horticulturae 474, 5557.
Khayyal, M.T., El-Ghazaly, M.A., Abdallah, D.M., Nassar, N.N., Okpanyi, S.N. and
Kreuter, M.H. (2002) Blood pressure lowering effect of an olive leaf extract (Olea
europaea) in L-NAME induced hypertension in rats. Arzneimittelforschung 52,
797802.
Kirschbaum, M.U.F. (2004) Direct and indirect climate-change effects on photosynthesis
and transpiration. Plant Biology 6, 242253.
Klein, I., Ben-Tal, Y. and David, I. (1992) Olive Irrigation with Saline Water. Volcani
Center Report, Bet-Dagan, Israel [in Hebrew].
Klein, I., Ben-Tal, Y., Lavee, S., De Malach, Y. and David, I. (1994) Saline irrigation of cv.
Manzanillo and Uovo di Piccione trees. Acta Horticulturae 356, 176180.
Klein, I., Epstein, E., Lavee, S. and Ben-Tal, Y. (1978) Environmental factors affecting
ethephon in olive (Olea europaea L.). Scientia Horticulturae 9, 2130.
378
References
Kovanci, B. and Kumral, N.A. (2004) Insect pests in olive groves of Bursa (Turkey). In:
5th International Symposium on Olive Growing, 27 September2 October 2004,
Izmir, Turkey.
Krueger, W.H., Heath, Z. and Deleonardis, D. (2004) Patch Budding: a Convenient Method
for Top-working. Olives. University of California, Berkeley, California, Publication
8115.
Kyritsakis, A. (1998) Olive Oil. 2nd edn, Food and Nutrition Press Inc., Trumbull,
Connecticut.
Kyritsakis, A. (2007) Olive Oil, Conventional and Biological. Table Olives and Olive Paste. P.
Sindika, Thessaloniki, Greece, pp. 131178 [in Greek].
La Porta, N., Zacchini, M., Bartolini, S., Viti, R. and Roselli, G. (1994) The frost
hardiness of some clones of olive cv. Leccino. Journal of Horticultural Science 69(3),
433435.
La Vecchia, C., Negri, E., Franceschi, S., Decarli, A., Giacosa, A. and Lipworth, L. (1995)
Olive oil, other dietary fats, and the risk of breast cancer. Cancer Causes and Control
6, 545550.
Lagarda, A. and Martin, G.C. (1983) Manzanillo olive seed dormancy as inuenced by
exogenous hormone application and endogenous abscisic acid concentration.
HortScience 18, 869871.
Lambardi, M. and Rugini, E. (2003) Micropropagation of olive (Olea europaea L.). In:
Jain, S.M. and Ishii, K. (eds) Micropropagation of Woody Trees and Fruits. Kluwer
Academic Publishers, Netherlands, pp. 621646.
Lambardi, M., Benelli, C., De Carlo, A., Fabbri, A., Grassi, S. and Lynch, P.T. (2002)
Medium and long-term in vitro conservation of olive germplasm (Olea europaea L.).
Acta Horticulturae 586, 109112.
Lambardi, M., Caccavale, A., Rugini, E. and Caricato, G. (1999) Histological observations
on somatic embryos of olive (Olea europaea L.). Acta Horticulturae 474, 6770.
Lambardi, M., Rinaldi, L.M.R., Menabeni, D. and Cimato, A. (1994) Ethylene effect on in
vitro olive seed germination (Olea europaea L.). Acta Horticulturae 356, 5457.
Lambert, S.J. (1996) Intense extratropical northern hemisphere winter cyclone events,
18991991. Journal of Geophysical Research 101, 219221, 325.
Lampkin, N. and Padel, S. (1994) Conversion to organic farming: an overview. In:
Lampkin, N. and Padel, S. (eds) The Economy of Organic Farming: an International
Perspective. CAB International, Wallingford, UK, pp. 295311.
Landa, M.C., Frago, N. and Tres, A. (1994) Diet and risk of breast cancer in Spain.
European Journal of Cancer Prevention 3, 313320.
Larbi, A., Ayadi, M., Mabrouk, M., Kharroubi, M., Kammoun, N. and Msallem, M.
(2006) Agronomic characteristics of some olive varieties cultivated under highdensity planting conditions. In: Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar
Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, 2, 135138.
Larson, K.D., Graetz, D.A. and Schaffer, B. (1991) Flood-induced chemical transformations in calcareous agricultural soils of South Florida. Soil Science 152, 33.
Lavee, S. (1989) Involvement of plant growth regulators and endogenous growth
substances in the control of alternate bearing. Acta Horticulturae 239, 311322.
Lavee, S. and Avidan, N. (1982) The involvement of phenolic substances in controlling
alternate bearing of the olive (Olea europaea L.). In: XXIth International Horticultural
Congress, 29 August4 September 1982, Hamburg, Germany, Abstract 1370.
References
379
Lavee, S. and Avidan, N. (1994) Protein content and composition of leaves and shoot
bark in relation to alternate bearing of olive trees (Olea europaea L.). Acta
Horticulturae 356, 143147.
Lavee, S. and Harshemesh, H. (1990) Climatic effect on ower induction in semijuvenile olive plants (Olea europaea). Olea 17, 89.
Lavee, S. and Haskal, A. (1993) Partial fruiting regulation of olive trees (Olea europaea
L.) with paclobutrazol and gibberellic acid in the orchard. Advances in Horticultural
Science 7, 8386.
Lavee, S. and Martin, G.C. (1981) In vitro studies of ethephon-induced abscission in
olive. II. The relation between ethylene evolution and abscission of various organs.
Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science 106(1), 1926.
Lavee, S. and Schachtel, J. (1999) Interaction of cultivar rootstock and water
availability on olive tree performance and fruit production. Acta Horticulturae 474,
399401.
Lavee, S. and Spiegel-Roy, P. (1967) The effect of time of application of two growth
substances on the thinning of olive fruits. Journal of the American Society of
Horticultural Science 91, 180186.
Lavee, S. and Wodner, M. (1991) Factors affecting the nature of oil accumulation in
fruit of olive (Olea europaea L.) cultivars. Journal of Horticultural Science 66,
583591.
Lavee, S. and Wodner, M. (2004) The effect of yield, harvest time and fruit size on the oil
content of irrigated olive trees (Olea europaea), cvs. Barnea and Manzanillo.
Scientia Horticulturae 99, 267277.
Lavee, S., Harshemesh, H. and Avidan, N. (1986) Endogenous control of alternate
bearing: possible involvement of phenolic acids. Olea 17, 6166.
Lavee, S., Haskal, A. and Ben-Tal, Y. (1983) Girdling olive trees, a partial solution to
biennial bearing. I. Methods, timing and direct tree response. Journal of
Horticultural Science 58, 209218.
Lavee, S., Rallo, L., Rapoport, H.F. and Troncoso, A. (1996) The oral biology of the
olive: effect of ower number, type and distribution on fruit set. Scientia
Horticulturae 66, 149158.
Lavee, S., Rallo, L., Rapoport, H.F. and Troncoso, A. (1999) The oral biology of the
olive: II. The effect of inorescence load and distribution per shoot on fruit set and
load. Scientia Horticulturae 82, 181192.
Lavee, S., Taryan J., Levin, J. and Haskal, A. (2002) The signicance of cross-pollination
for various olive cultivars under irrigated intensive growing conditions. Olivae 91,
2536.
Lavermicocca, P., Valerio, F., Lonigro, S.L., Lazzaroni, S., Evidente, A. and Visconti, A.
(2003) Control of olive knot disease with a bacteriocin. In: Iacobellis, N.S. et al.
(eds) Pseudomomas syringae and Related Pathogens, Kluwer Academic Publishers,
Dordrecht, Netherlands, pp. 451457.
Lee-Huang, S., Zhang, L., Huang, P.L., Chang, Y.T. and Huang, P.L. (2003) Anti-HIV
activity of olive leaf extract (OLE) and modulation of host cell gene expression by
HIV-1 infection and OLE treatment. Biochemical and Biophysical Research
Communications 307, 10291037.
Leifert, C., Pryce, S., Lumsden, P.J. and Waites, W.M. (1992) Effect of medium acidity on
growth and rooting of different plant species growing in vitro. Plant Cell, Tissue and
Organ Culture 30, 171179.
380
References
References
381
Loveys, B.R., Stoll, M. and Davies, W.J. (2004) Physiological approaches to enhance
water use efciency in agriculture: exploiting plant signaling in novel irrigation
practice. In: Bacon, M.A. (ed.) Water Use Efciency in Plant Biology. Blackwell
Publishing/CRC Press, Boca Raton, Florida, 327 pp.
Luna, G., Morales, M.T. and Aparicio, R. (2006) Characterization of 39 varietal virgin
olive oils by their volatile compositions. Food Chemistry 98(2), 243252.
Mafra, I., Lanza, B., Reis, A., Marsilio, V., Campestre, C., De Angelis, M. and Coimbra, M.A.
(2001) Effect of ripening on texture, microstructure and cell wall polysaccharide
composition of olive fruit (Olea europaea). Physiologia Plantarum 111, 439447.
Mahan, J.R., McMichel, B.L. and Wanjura, D.F. (1995) Methods for reducing the
adverse effects of temperature stress on plants: a review. Environmental and
Exploratory Botany 35(3), 251258.
Malik, N.S.A. and Bradford, J.M. (2005) Is chilling a prerequisite for owering and
fruiting in Arbequina olives? International Journal of Fruit Science 5, 2939.
Malik, N.S.A. and Bradford, J.M. (2006a) Regulation of owering in Arbequina olives
under non-chilling conditions: the effect of high daytime temperatures on
blooming. Journal of Food and Agricultural Environment 4(2), 283286.
Malik, N.S.A. and Bradford, J.M. (2006b) Changes in oleuropein levels during
differentiation and development of oral buds in Arbequina olives. Scientia
Horticulturae 110, 274278.
Malik, N.S.A. and Bradford, J.M. (2006c) Flowering and fruiting in Arbequina olives in
subtropical climates where olives normally remain vegetative. International Journal
of Fruit Science 5(4), 4756.
Mancini, M. and Rubba, P. (2000) The Mediterranean diet in Italy. In: Simopoulos, A.
and Visioli. F. (eds) Mediterranean Diets. World Review of Nutrition and Diet, Karger
Press, Basel, Switzerland, 87, 114126.
Mancuso, S. (2000) Electrical resistance changes during exposure to low temperature
measure chilling and freezing tolerance in olive tree (Olea europaea L.) plants. Plant
Cell Environment 23, 291299.
Mancuso, S. and Azzarello, E. (2002) Heat tolerance in olive. Advances in Horticultural
Science 16(34), 125130.
Mancuso, S. and Rinaldelli, E. (1996) Response of young mycorrhizal and nonmycorrhizal plants of olive tree (Olea europaea L.) to saline conditions. II. Dymamics
of electrical impedance parameters of shoots and leaves. Advances in Horticultural
Science 10, 135145.
Manna, C., Galletti, P., Cucciolla, V., Montedoro, G. and Zappia, V. (1999) Olive oil
hydroxytyrosol protects human erythrocytes against oxidative damage. Journal of
Nutritional Biochemistry 10, 159165.
Mannina, L., Patumi, M., Proietti, N. and Segre, A.L. (2001) PDO (Protected
Designation of Origin): geographical characterization of Tuscan extra virgin olive
oils using high-eld H-1 NMR spectroscopy. International Journal of Food Science
13(1), 5363.
Mannino, P. and Pannelli, G. (1990) Fully mechanized harvesting of olive fruit. Technical
and agronomical preliminary evaluations. Acta Horticulturae 286(12), 437440.
Maranto, J. and Krueger, W.H. (1994) Olive fruit thinning. In: Ferguson, L., Sibbett, G.S.
and Martin, G.C. (eds) Olive Production Manual. University of California, Division of
Agriculture and Natural Resources, Berkeley, California, Publication 3353,
pp. 8789.
382
References
References
383
Martins, P.C., Cordeiro, A.M. and Rapoport, H.F. (2006) Flower quality in orchards of
olive, Olea europaea L., cv. Morisca. Advances in Horticultural Science 20(4),
262266.
Mazomenos, B.A. (1983) Biosynthesis of a sex pheromone of the olive fruit y Dacus
oleae Gmel. PhD dissertation, Rijksuniversiteit, Gent, Netherlands, 137 pp.
Mazzuca, S., Spadafora, A. and Innocenti, A.M. (2006) Cell and tissue localization of
beta-glucosidase during the ripening of olive fruit (Olea europaea) by in situ activity
assay. Plant Science 171(6), 726733.
Meilan, R. (1997) Floral induction in woody angiosperms. New Forests 14(3), 179202.
Mencuccini, M. (1991) Protoplast culture isolated from different tissues of olive (Olea
europaea L.) cultivars. Physiologia Plantarum 82, 14.
Mencuccini, M. (2003) Effect of medium darkening on in vitro rooting capability and
rooting seasonality of olive (Olea europaea L.) cultivars. Scientia Horticulturae 97(2),
129139.
Mencuccini, M. and Rugini, E. (1993) In vitro regeneration from olive cultivar tissues.
Plant Cell, Tissue and Organ Culture 32, 283288.
Menendez, L., Vellon, R., Colomer, R. and Lupu, R. (2005) Oleic acid, the main
monounsaturated fatty acid of olive oil, suppresses Her-2/neu (erbB-2) expression
and synergistically enhances the growth inhibitory effects of trastuzumab
(Herceptin TM) in breast cancer cells with Her-2/neu oncogene amplication.
Annals of Oncology 16(3), 359371.
Mensik, R.P. and Katan, M.B. (1987) Effects of monounsaturated fatty acids versus
complex carbohydrates on HDL in healthy men and women. Lancet 338, 122125.
Metzidakis, I.T. (1999) Field studies for mechanical harvesting by using chemicals for
the loosening of olive pedicel on cv. Koroneiki. Acta Horticulturae 474, 197202.
Metzidakis, I.T. and Koubouris, G.C. (2006) Olive cultivation and industry in Greece. In:
Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Seminars and invited lectures, pp. 133140.
Michelakis, N. and Barbopoulou, E.A. (2002) Stem places and supporting frames
suitability for Dendrometers installation on olive trees. Acta Horticulturae 586,
423427.
Michelakis, N.Z.C., Vouyoucalou, E. and Clapaki, G. (1994) Soil moisture, depletion,
evapotranspiration and crop co-efcients for olive trees cv. Kalamon, for different
levels of soil water potential and methods of irrigation. Acta Horticulturae 356,
162167.
Minguez-Mosquera, M.I. and Garrido-Fernndez, J. (1989) Chlorophyll and carotenoid
presence in olive fruit (Olea europaea). Journal of Agricultural Food Chemistry 37(1),
17.
Minguez-Mosquera, M.I. and Garrido-Fernndez, J. (1989) Chlorophyll and carotenoid
presence in olive fruit (Olea europaea). Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry
37(1), 17.
Minnocci, A., Panicucci, A. and Vitagliano, C. (1995) Gas exchange and morphological
stomatal parameters in olive plants exposed to ozone. In: Lorenzini, E. and
Soldatini, G.F. (eds) Responses of Plants to Air Pollution: Biological and Economic
Aspects. Pacini, Pisa, Italy, pp. 7781.
Minnocci, A., Panicucci, A., Sebastiani, L., Lorenzini, G. and Vitagliano, C. (1999)
Physiological and morphological responses of olive plants to ozone exposure
during a growing season. Tree Physiology 19, 391397.
384
References
References
385
Nilsson, M.P. (1972) The Mycenaean Origin of Greek Mythology. A New Introduction and
Bibliography by E. Vermeule. University of California, Berkeley, California, p. 258.
Norman, J.M. and Welles, J.M. (1983) Radiative transfer in an array of canopies.
Agronomic Journal 75, 481488.
Oaks, A. and Hirel, B. (1986) Nitrogen metabolism in roots. Annual Review of Plant
Physiology 36, 345365.
Oddo, E., Saiano, F., Alonzo, G. and Bellini, E. (2002) An investigation of the seasonal
pattern of mannitol content in deciduous and evergreen species of the Oleaceae
growing in Northern Sicily. Annals of Botany 90, 239243.
Ohbogge, J.B. and Jaworski, J.G. (1997) Regulation of fatty acid synthesis. Annual Review
of Plant Biology 48, 109136.
Olsen, S.R. and Sommers, L.E. (1982) Phosphorus. In: Page, A.L., Miller, R.H. and
Keeney, D.R. (eds) Methods of Soil Analysis. Part 2: Chemical and Microbiological
Properties. 2nd edn, Agronomy 9, ASA, SSSA, Madison, Wisconsin, pp. 403430.
Orgaz, F. and Pastor, M. (2005) Fertirrigacin del olivo. Programacin de riegos. In:
Cadabia, C. (ed.) Fertirrigacin Cultivos Horticolas, Frutales y Ornamentales.
Ediciones Mundi-Prensa, Madrid, pp. 496533.
Orgaz, F., Testi, L., Villalobos, F.J. and Fereres, E. (2006) Water requirements of olive
orchards. II: determination of crop coefcients for irrigation scheduling. Irrigation
Science 24, 7784.
Orinos, T. and Mitrakos, K. (1991) Rhizogenesis and somatic embryogenesis in calli
from wild olive (Olea europaea var. sylvestris (Miller) Lehr) mature zygotic embryos.
Plant Cell, Tissue and Organ Culture 27, 183187.
Osborne, C.P., Chulne, I., Viner, D. and Woodward, E.L. (2000) Olive phenology as a
sensitive indicator of future climatic warming in the Mediterranean. Plant Cell
Environment 23, 701710.
Ouazzani, N., Lumaret, R., Villemur, P. and di Giusto, F. (1993) Leaf allozyme variation
in cultivated and wild olive trees (Olea europaea L.). Journal of Heredity 84, 3442.
Owen, R.W., Giacosa, A., Hull, W.E., Haubner, R., Spiegelhalder, B. and Bartsch, H.
(2000) The antioxidant/anticancer potential of phenolic compounds isolated from
olive oil. European Journal of Cancer 36, 12351247.
Ozkaya, M.T. and Celik, M. (1999) The effects of various treatments on endogenous
carbohydrate content of cuttings in easy-to-root and hard-to-root olive cultivars.
Acta Horticulturae 474, 5153.
Ozkaya, M.T., Celik, M. and Algan, G. (1997) Anatomy of adventitious root formation in
stem cuttings of the easy-to-root (Gemlik) and hard-to-root (Domat) olive
cultivars. In: 1st Balkan Botanical Congress, 1922 September 1997, Thessaloniki,
Greece.
Pacini, C., Wossink, A., Giesen, G., Vazzana, C. and Huirne, R. (2003) Evaluation of
sustainability of organic, integrated and conventional farming systems: a farm and
eld-scale analysis. Agriculture, Ecosystems and Environment 95(1), 273288.
Pallioti, A., Famiani, F., Proietti, P., Boco, M. and Guel, P. (1999) Effects of training
system on tree growth, yield and oil characteristics in different olive cultivars. Acta
Horticulturae 474, 189192.
Palliotti, A. and Bongi, G. (1996) Freezing injury in the olive leaf and effects of meuidide
treatment. Journal of Horticultural and Scientic Biotechnology 71(1), 5763.
Palta, J.P. and Weiss, L.S. (1993) Ice formation and freezing injury: an overview on the
survival mechanisms and molecular aspects of injury and cold acclimation in
386
References
herbaceous plants. In: Li, P.H. and Christersson, L. (eds) Advances in Cold Hardiness.
CRC Press, Boca Raton, Florida, pp. 143176.
Palya, F.T. (1993) Gene Expression under Low Temperature Stress. Harwood, New York,
pp. 103130.
Papadopoulos, I. (2006) Irrigation with Treated Wastewater and Efcient Fertilizer Use.
Agricultural Research Institute of Cyprus, Report 94, 10 pp.
Pardini, A., Faiello, C., Longhi, F. and Tallarico, R. (2003) A study of agronomic
parameters of cover crop species utilized in grape and olive organic production.
Advances in Horticultural Science 17(2), 6771.
Pardini, A., Faiello, C., Longhi, F., Mancuso, S., Elliot, J. and Snowball, R. (2002) Cover
crop species and their management in vineyards and olive groves. Advances in
Horticultural Science 16(34), 225234.
Parra-Lpez, C. and Calatrava-Requena, J. (2005) Factors related to the adoption of
organic farming in Spanish olive orchards. Spanish Journal of Agricultural Research
3, 516.
Parra-Lpez, C. and Calatrava-Requena, J. (2006) Comparison of farming techniques
actually implemented and their rationality in organic and conventional olive
groves in Andalusia, Spain. Biological Agriculture and Horticulture 24(1), 3559.
Parry, M. (1992) The potential effects of climate changes on agriculture and land use.
Advances in Ecological Research 22, 6391.
Patumi, M., dAndria, R., Fontanazza, G., Morelli, G., Giorio, P. and Sorrentino, G.
(1999) Yield and oil quality of intensively trained trees of three cultivars of olive
(Olea europaea L.) under different irrigation regimes. Journal of Horticultural Science
and Biotechnology 74, 729737.
Patumi, M., dAndria, R., Marsilio, V., Fontanazza, G., Morelli, G. and Lanza, B. (2002)
Olive and olive oil quality after intensive monocone olive growing (Olea europaea L.
cv. Kalamata) in different irrigation regimes. Food Chemistry 77, 2734.
Pavel, E.W. and Fereres, E. (1998) Low soil temperatures induce water decits in olive
(Olea europaea) trees. Physiologia Plantarum 104, 525532.
Peltier, J.P., Marigo, D. and Marigo, G. (1997) Involvement of malate and mannitol in the
diurnal regulation of the water status in members of Oleaceae. Trees 12, 2734.
Peng, Z., Lu, Q. and Verma, D.P.S. (1996) Reciprocal regulation of 1-pyrroline-5carboxylate synthetase and proline dehydrogenase genes controls proline levels
during and after osmotic stress in plants. Molecular and General Genetics 253,
334341.
Penyalver, R., Garcia, A., Ferrer, A., Bertolini, E., Quesada, J.M., Salcedo, C.I., Piquer, J.,
Perez-Panades, J., Carbinell, E.A., del Rio, C., Caballero, J.M. and Lpez, M.M. (2006)
Factors affecting Pseudomonas savastanoi pv. savastanoi plant inoculations and their
use for evaluation of olive cultivar susceptibility. Phytopathology 96(3), 313319.
Pereira, J.A., Casal, S., Bento, A. and Oliveira, M.B.P.P. (2002) Inuence of olive storage
period on oil quality of three Portuguese cultivars of Olea europaea Cobrancosa,
Madural and Verdeal Transmontana. Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry
50, 63356340.
Perri, E., Parlati, M.V., Mull, R. abd Fodale, A.S. (1994a) Attempts to generate haploid
plants from in vitro cultures of Olea europaea L. anthers. Acta Horticulturae 356:, 4750.
Perri, E., Parlati, M.V. and Rugini, E. (1994b) Isolation and culture of olive (Olea europaea
L.) cultivar protoplasts. Acta Horticulturae 356, 5153.
References
387
Petridou, M. and Voyiatzis, D.G. (1993) The benecial effect of girdling, auxin, Tween20 and paclobutrazol by an improved method of mount layering. Acta Horticulturae
356, 2427.
Petridou, M. and Voyiatzis, D.G. (2002) Difcult to root cv. Kalamon can easily be
propagated by softwood layers with an improved method of mound-layering. Acta
Horticulturae 586, 915918.
Pilbeam, D.J. and Kirkby, A. (1992) Some aspects of the utilization of nitrate and
ammonium by plants. In: Mengel, K. and Pilbeam, D.J. (eds) Nitrogen Metabolism of
Plants. Clarendon Press, Oxford, UK, pp. 5570.
Piney, K. and Polito, V.S. (1990) Flower initiation in Manzanillo olive. Acta
Horticulturae 286, 203206.
Pontikis, C.A., Loukas, M. and Kousonis, G. (1980) The use of biochemical markers to
distinguish olive cultivars. Journal of Horticultural Science 55, 333343.
Porlingis, I.C. and Dogras, K. (1969) Time of ower differentiation of the olive as related
to temperature and variety. Annals of the Agricultural and Forestry School,
Aristotelian University of Thessaloniki 13, 321341.
Porlingis, I.C. and Therios, I.N. (1976) Rooting response of juvenile and adult leafy olive
cuttings to various factors. Journal of Horticultural Science 51, 3139.
Porlingis, I.C. and Therios, I.N. (1979) The effect of the level of temperature on
inorescence induction, number of owers per inorescence and pistil development
in the olive tree. Scientic Annals of the School of Agriculture and Forestry Section of
Agriculture 22(6), 176193 [in Greek].
Porlingis, I.C. and Voyiatzis, D.G. (1999) Paclobutrazol decreases the harmful effect of
high temperatures on fruit set in olive trees. Acta Horticulturae 474, 241244.
Porras, A., Soriano, M.L. and Porras, A.P. (2003) Grafting olive cv. Cornicarba on
rootstocks tolerant to Verticillium dahliae reduces their susceptibility. Crop
Protection 22(2), 369374.
Prenzler, R.D., Lavee, S., Antolovich, M. and Robards, K. (2003) Quantitative changes in
phenolic content during physiological development of the olive (Olea europaea L.)
cultivar Hardys Mammoth. Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 51(9),
25322538.
Preziosi, P., Proietti, P., Famiani, F. and Alfei, B. (1994) Comparison between monocone
and vase training system on the olive cultivars Frantoio, Moraiolo and Nostrale
di Rigali. Acta Horticulturae 356, 306310.
Pritsa, T.S. and Voyiatzis, D.G. (2002) Effects of nutrient medium on the morphogenesis
of cotyledonary explants of olive. Acta Horticulturae 586, 923926.
Pritsa, T.S. and Voyiatzis, D.G. (2005) Correlation of ovary and leaf spermidine and
spermine content with the alternate bearing habit of olive. Journal of Plant
Physiology 162(11), 12841291.
Proietti, P. (2003) Changes in photosynthesis and fruit characteristics in olive in
response to assimilate availability. Photosynthetica 41(4), 559564.
Proietti, P. and Famiani, F. (2002) Diurnal and seasonal changes in photosynthetic
characteristics in different olive (Olea europaea L.) cultivars. Photosynthetica 40(2),
171176.
Proietti, P. and Tombesi, A. (1996a) Effects of gibberellic acid, asparagines and
glutamine on ower bud induction in olive. Journal of Horticultural Science and
Biotechnology 71(3), 383388.
388
References
References
389
Rapoport, H.F., Rallo, L. and Polito, V.S. (1990) Pit hardening in the olive. In: XXIIIth
International Horticultural Congress, Florence, Italy, Abstract 2364.
Raven, J.A., Handley, L.L. and Wollenweber, B. (2004) Plant nutrition and water use
efciency. In: Bacon, M.A. (ed.) Water Use Efciency in Plant Biology. Blackwell
Publishing/CRC Press, Boca Raton, Florida, 327 pp.
Ravetti, L.M. (2004) Evaluation of new olive mechanical harvesting technologies in
Australia. In: 5th International Symposium on Olive Growing, 29 September2 October
2004, Izmir, Turkey.
Reale, S., Doveri, S., Diaz, A., Angiolillo, A., Lucentini, L., Pilla, F., Martin, A., Donini, P.
and Lee, D. (2006) SNP-based markers for discriminatimg olive (Olea europaea L.)
cultivars. Genome 49, 11931205.
Restrepo, M., Benlloch, M. and Fernndez-Escobar, R. (2002) Inuencia del estes
hidrico y del estado nutritivo del olivo en la absorcion foliar del potasio. Direccin
General de Investigacin y Formacin Agraria y Resquera (ed.) Jounadas de
Investigacin y Transferencia de Technologia al Sector Oleicola, Cordoba, Spain,
pp. 307310.
Ribeiro, H., Cunha, M. and Abreu, I. (2006) Comparison of classical models for
evaluating the heat requirements of olive (Olea europaea L.) in Portugal. Journal of
Integrative Plant Biology 48(6), 664671.
Rinaldelli, E. and Mancuso, S. (1994) Cell transmembrane electropotentials in
adventitious roots of Olea europaea L. cv. Frantoio as related to temperature,
respiration, external potassium, anoxia and 2,4-dinitrophenol treatments.
Advances in Horticultural Science 8, 229234.
Rinaldi, L.M.R. (2000) Germination of seeds of olive (Olea europaea L.) and ethylene
production: effects of harvesting time and thidiazuron treatment. Journal of
Horticultural Science and Biotechnology 75(6), 727732.
Rio, C.D., Rallo, L. and Caballero, J.M. (1991) Effects of carbohydrate content on the
seasonal rooting vegetative and reproductive cuttings of olive. Journal of
Horticultural Science 66(3), 301309.
Roberts, A.G. (ADAS) (2002) Magnetic water treatment trials. Practical Hydroponics and
Greenhouses, pp. 1520. (Publishing details unavailable)
Rodriguez Diaz, J.A., Weatherhead, E.K., Knox, J.W. and Camacho, E. (2007) Climate
change impacts on irrigation water requirements in the Guadalquivir river basin in
Spain. Regional Environmental Change 7, 149159.
Romeo, F.V., De Luca, S., Piscopo, A. and Pojana, M. (2006) Table olive processing in
South Italy. The safety problem: from tradition to innovation. In: Proceedings of the
2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del
Vallo, Italy, Seminars and invited lectures, 213219.
Roselli, G. and Venora, G. (1990) Relationship between stomatal size and winter
hardiness in the olive. Acta Horticulturae 286, 8992.
Roselli, G., Benelli, G. and Morelli, D. (1989) Relationship between stomatal density and
winter hardiness in olive (Olea europaea L.). Journal of Horticultural Science 64(2),
199203.
Ross, J. (1981) The Radiation Regime and Architecture of Plant Stands. W. Junk Publishers,
The Hague, the Netherlands.
Rugini, E. (1984) In vitro propagation of some olive (Olea europaea L.) cultivars with
different root-ability, and medium development using analytical data from
developing shoots and embryos. Scientia Horticulturae 24, 123134.
390
References
Rugini, E. (1986) Olive (Olea europaea L.). In: Bajaj, Y.P.S. (ed.) Biotechnology in
Agriculture and Forestry. Springer, Berlin, pp. 253267.
Rugini, E. (1988) Somatic embryogenesis and plant regeneration in olive (Olea europaea
L.). Plant Cell, Tissue and Organ Culture 14, 207214.
Rugini, E. (1995) Somatic embryogenesis in olive (Olea europaea L.). In: Jain, S.M.,
Gupta, P.K. and Newton, R.J. (eds) Somatic Embryogenesis in Woody Plants, Vol. II.
Kluwer Academic Publishers, Dordrecht, Netherlands, pp. 171189.
Rugini, E. and Fedeli, E. (1990) Olive (Olea europaea L.) as an oilseed crop. In: Bajaj, Y.P.S.
(ed.), Biotechnology in Agriculture and Forestry Legume and Oilseed Crops, Vol. I.
Springer, Berlin, pp. 593641.
Rugini, E. and Tarini, P. (1986) Somatic embryogenesis in olive (Olea europaea L.). In:
Hennessy, M. (ed.) Proceedings of the Conference on Fruit Tree Biotechnology, Paris, p. 62.
Rugini, E., Bongi, G. and Fontanazza, G. (1982) Effects of ethephon on olive ripening.
Journal of the American Society of Horticultural Science 107, 835838.
Rugini, E., Di Francesco, G., Muganu, M., Astol, S. and Caricato, G. (1997) The effects of
polyamines and hydrogen peroxide on root formation in olive and the role of
polyamines as an early marker for rooting ability. In: Altman, A. and Waisel, Y. (eds)
Biology of Root Formation and Development. Plenum Press, New York, pp. 6574.
Rugini, E., Gutirrez-Pesce, P. and Muleo, R. (2006) Overview in the olive
biotechnologies. In: Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq,
510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Seminars and invited
lectures, 317 pp.
Rugini, E., Lupino, M., De Agazio, M. and Grego, S. (1992) Endogenous polyamine and
root morphogenesis variation under different treatment in cutting and in vitro
explants of olive. Acta Horticulturae 300, 225232.
Ruiz, N., Barranco, D. and Rapoport, H.F. (2006) Anatomical response of olive (Olea
europaea L.) to freezing temperatures. Journal of Horticultural Science and
Biotechnology 81(5), 783790.
Ruiz-Barba, J.L., Garrido-Fernandez, A. and Jimenez-Diaz, R. (1991) Bactericidal action
of oleuropein extracted from green olives against Lactobacillus plantarum. Letters in
Applied Microbiology 12, 6568.
Ryan, D., Robards, K. and Lavee, S. (1999) Changes in phenolic content of olive during
maturation. International Journal of Food Science and Technology 34, 265274.
Sano, H., Seo, S., Koizumi, N., Niki, T., Iwamura, H. and Ohashi, Y. (1996) Regulation by
cytokinins of endogenous levels of jasmonic and salicylic acids in mechanically
wounded tobacco plants. Plant and Cell Physiology 37, 762769.
Sarmiento, R., Garcia, J.L. and Mazuelos, C. (1990) Free amino acids in easy- and
difcult-to-root olive varieties. Acta Horticulturae 286, 105108.
Savino, V. and Gallitelli, D. (1981a) Cherry leafroll virus in olive. Phytopathologia
Mediterranea 20, 202204.
Savino, V. and Gallitelli, D. (1981b) Isolation of cucumber mosaic virus from olive in
Italy. Phytopathologia Mediterranea 22, 7677.
Savino, V., Gallitelli, D. and Barba, M. (1983) Olive latent rigspot virus, a newly
recognized virus infecting olive in Italy. Annals of Applied Biology 103, 243249.
Savour, A., Hua, X.J., Bertauche, N., van Montagu, M. and Verbuggen, N. (1997)
Abscisic acid-independent and abscisic acid-dependent regulation of proline
biosynthesis following cold and osmotic stress. Molecular and General Genetics 254,
104109.
References
391
Schnathorst, W.C. (1981) Life cycle and epidemiology of Verticillium. In: Mace, M.E.,
Bell, A.A. and Beckman, C.H. (eds) Fungal Wilt Diseases of Plants. Academic Press,
New York, pp. 81111.
Sebastiani, L. and Tognetti, R. (2004) Growing season and hydrogen peroxide effects on
root induction and development in Olea europaea L. (cvs Frantoio and Gentile di
Larino) cuttings. Scientia Horticulturae 100(1/4), 7582.
Sebastiani, L., Minnocci, A., Scebba, F., Vitagliano, C., Panicucci, A. and Lorenzini, G.
(2002a) Physiological and biochemical reactions of olive genotypes during siterelevant ozone exposure. Acta Horticulturae 586, 445448.
Sebastiani, L., Minnocci, A. and Tognetti, R. (2002b) Genotypic differences in the
response to elevated CO2 concentration of one-year-old olive cuttings (Olea
europaea L. cvs Frantoio and Moraiolo). Plant Biosystems 136, 199208.
Sebastiani, L., Tognetti, R., Di Paolo, P. and Vitagliano, C. (2002c) Hydrogen peroxide
and indole-3-butyric acid effects on root induction and development in cuttings of
Olea europaea L. (cv. Frantoio and Gentile di Larino). Advances in Horticultural
Science 16(1), 712.
Servili, M., Selvaggini, R., Esposto, S., Taticchi, A., Urbani, S. and Montedoro, G.F.
(2006) The effect of oil mechanical extraction processes in the phenolic
composition of virgin olive oil. Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar
Olivebiotech, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Special
seminars and invited lectures, pp. 339346.
Sessiz, A. and zcan, M.T. (2006) Olive removal with pneumatic branch shaker and
abscission chemical. Journal of Food Engineering 76, 148153.
Sharpley, A.N., Meisinger, J.J., Power, J.F. and Suarez, D.L. (1992) Root extraction of
nutrients associated with long-term soil management. Advances in Soil Science 19,
151217.
Shehata, W.A., Abou-Elkhair, S.S., Stefanos, S.S., Youssef, A.A. and Nasr, F.N. (2003)
Biological studies on the olive leaf moth, Palpita unionalis Hbner (Lepidoptera:
Pyralidae), and the olive moth, Prays oleae Bernard (Lepidoptera: Yponomeutidae).
Journal of Pest Science 76, 155158.
Sibbett, G.S. (1994) Pruning mature bearing olive trees. In: Ferguson, L., Sibbett, G.S.
and Martin, G.C. (eds) Olive Production Manual. University of California, Division of
Agriculture and Natural Resources, Oakland, California, Publication 3353,
pp. 5760.
Sibbett, G.S. and Martin, G.C. (1981) Olive Spray Thinning. Division of Agricultural
Sciences, University of California, Berkeley, California, Leaet 2475, p. 4.
Sibbett, G.S. and Osgood, J. (1994) Site selection and preparation, tree spacing and
design, planting and initial training. In: Ferguson, L., Sibbett, G.S. and Martin, G.C.
(eds) Olive Production Manual. University of California, Division of Agriculture and
Natural Resources, Berkeley, California, Publication 3353, pp. 3137.
Simantirakis, B. (2003) The olive tree in Mediterranean history and culture. In:
Stefanoudaki, E. (ed.) Proceedings of the International Symposium on the Olive Tree and
the Environment, 13 October 2003, Chania, Greece, pp. 37.
Sisto, A., Cipriani, M.G. and Morea, M. (2004) Knot formation caused by Pseudomonas
savastanoi subsp. savastanoi on olive plants is hrp-dependent. Phytopathology 94,
484489.
Smirnoff, N. and Cumbes, Q.J. (1989) Hydroxyl radical scavenging activity of
compatible solutes. Phytochemistry 28, 10571060.
392
References
References
393
Tabatabaei, S.J. (2006) Effects of salinity and N on the growth, photosynthesis and N
status of olive (Olea europaea L.) trees. Scientia Horticulturae 108, 432438.
Tapp, H.S., Defernez, M. and Kemsley, E.K. (2003) FTIR spectroscopy and multivariate
analysis can distinguish the geographic origin of extra virgin olive oils. Journal of
Agriculture and Food Chemistry 51(21), 61106115.
Tattini, M., Bertoni, P. and Caselli, S. (1992) Genotypic responses of olive plants to
sodium chloride. Journal of Plant Nutrition 15, 14671485.
Tattini, M., Gucci, R., Coradeschi, M.A., Ponzio, C. and Everard, J.D. (1995) Growth, gas
exchange and ion content in Olea europaea plants during salinity stress and
subsequent relief. Physiologia Plantarum 95(2), 203210.
Tattini, M., Gucci, R., Romani, A., Baldi, A. and Everand, J.D. (1996) Changes in nonstructural carbohydrates in olive (Olea europaea) leaves during root zone salinity
stress. Physiologia Plantarum 98(1), 117124.
Tattini, M., Lombardini, L. and Gucci, R. (1997) The effect of NaCl stress and relief on
gas exchange properties of two olive cultivars differing in tolerance to salinity. Plant
and Soil 197, 8793.
Tattini, M., Marzi, L., Tafani, R. and Traversi, M.L. (1999) A review on salinity-induced
changes in leaf gas exchange parameters of olive plants. Acta Horticulturae 474,
415418.
Tattini, M., Ponzio, C., Coradeschi, M.A., Tafani, R. and Traversi, M.L. (1994)
Mechanisms of salt tolerance in olive plants. Acta Horticulturae 356, 181184.
Tattini, M.V., Cimato, A., Bertoni, P. and Lombardo, M. (1990) Nitrogen nutrition of selfrooted olive in sand culture. Effect of NH4+-N/NO3-N on growth and nutritional
status. Acta Horticulturae 286, 311314.
Terral, J.F. (2000) Exploitation and management of the olive tree during prehistoric
times in Mediterranean France and Spain. Journal of Archaeological Science 27(2),
127133.
Testi, L., Villalobos, F.J., Orgaz, F. and Fereres, E. (2006) Water requirements of olive
orchards. I. Stimulation of daily evapotranspiration for scenario analysis. Irrigation
Science 24, 6976.
Teviotdale, B.L., Ferguson, L. and Vossen, P.M. (2005) UC IPM Pest Management
Guidelines: Olive. Diseases, University of California, Berkeley, California, Publication
3452, pp. 107109.
Thanassoulopoulos, C.C., Biris, D.A. and Tjamos, E.C. (1979) Survey of Verticillium wilt
of olive trees in Greece. Plant Disease Reports 63, 936940.
Therios, I. (2005a) Mineral Nutrition and Fertilizers. Gartaganis Publications,
Thessaloniki, Greece, 392 pp.
Therios, I. (2005b) Olive Production. Gartaganis Publications, Thessaloniki, Greece, 476 pp.
Therios, I. (2006) Mineral nutrition of olive trees. In: Proceedings of the 2nd International
Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy,
Seminars and invited lectures, pp. 403408.
Therios, I. and Karagiannidis, N. (1991) Effect of NaCl on growth and chemical
composition of four olive cultivars. Scientic Annals, School of Agriculture, Aristotle
University of Thessaloniki 28, 2947.
Therios, I.N. (1981) Nitrate absorption by olive plants (Olea europaea L., cv. Chondrolia
Chalkidikis). IFIGESIA Thesis, pp. 85 [in Greek].
Therios, I.N. and Misopolinos, N.D. (1988) Genotypic response to sodium chloride
salinity of four major olive cultivars (Olea europaea L.). Plant and Soil 106, 105116.
394
References
Therios, I.N. and Sakellariadis, S.D. (1982) Some effects of varied magnesium nutrition
on the growth and composition of olive plants (cultivar Chondrolia Chalkidikis).
Scientia Horticulturae 17, 3341.
Therios, I.N. and Sakellariadis, S.D. (1988) Effects of nitrogen form on growth and mineral
composition of olive plants (Olea europaea L.). Scientia Horticulturae 35, 167177.
Therios, I.N., Weinbaum, S.A. and Carlson, R.M. (1979) Nitrate uptake effectiveness
and utilization efciency of two plum clones. Physiologia Plantarum 47, 7376.
Thomashow, M.F. (1998) Role of cold-responsive genes in plant freezing tolerance. Plant
Physiology 118, 18.
Thomashow, M.F. (1999) Plant cold acclimation: freezing tolerance genes and
regulatory mechanisms. Annual Review of Plant Physiology and Plant Molecular
Biology 50, 571599.
Tisdale, S.L., Nelson, W.L., Beaton, J.D. and Havlin, J.L. (1993) Soil Fertility and
Fertilizers. 5th edn, Macmillan Publishing Co., New York, 634.
Tjamos, E.C. (1993) Prospects and strategies in controlling Verticillium wilt in olive.
Bulletin OEPP/EPPO Bulletin 23, 505512.
Tognetti, R., dAndria, R., Morelli, G. and Alvino, A. (2005) The effect of decit
irrigation on seasonal variations of plant water use in Olea europaea L. Plant and Soil
273, 139155.
Tognetti, R., dAndria, R., Morelli, G., Calandrelli, D. and Froignito, F. (2004) Irrigation
effects on daily and seasonal variations of trunk sap ow and leaf water relations in
olive trees. Plant and Soil 263, 249264.
Tognetti, R., Sebastiani, L., Minnocci, A., Vitagliano, C. and Raschi, A. (2002) Foliar
responses of olive trees (Olea europaea L.) under eld exposure to elevated CO2
concentration. Acta Horticulturae 586, 449452.
Tognetti, R., Sebastiani, L., Vitagliano, C., Raschi, A. and Minnocci, A. (2001)
Responses of two olive tree (Olea europaea L.) cultivars to elevated CO2
concentration in the eld. Photosynthetica 39, 403410.
Tomati, V. and Galli, E. (1992) The fertilizing value of waste waters from the olive
processing industry. In: Kubt, I. (ed.) Humus et Planta Proceedings. Elsevier Science,
Amsterdam, pp. 107126.
Tombesi, A. (2006) Planting systems, canopy management and mechanical harvesting.
In: Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, pp. 307316.
Tombesi, A. and Cartechini, A. (1986) Leffetto dellombreggiamento della chioma sulla
differenziazione delle gemme a ore dellolivo. Rivista Ortoorofrutticoltura Italiana
70, 277285.
Tombesi, A. and Ruffolo, M. (2006) Effects of olive cultivar and pruning intensity on
attacks of Spilocaea oleagina (Cast.) Hughes. In: Proceedings of the 2nd International
Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, 2,
pp. 231234.
Tombesi, A., Boco, M. and Pilli, M. (1999) Inuence of light exposure on olive fruit
growth and composition. Acta Horticulturae 474, 255260.
Tombesi, A., Guel, P. and Nottiano, G. (1998) Ottimizzazione della raccolta delle olive e
meccanizzazione. Informatore Agrario 46, 7984.
Touraine, B., Clarkson, D.T. and Muller, B. (1994) Regulation of nitrate uptake at the whole
plant level. In: Roy, J. and Garnier, E. (eds) A Whole Plant Perspective on CarbonNitrogen
Interactions. SPB Academic Publishing, The Hague, Netherlands, pp. 1130.
References
395
Tous, J., Romero, A. and Hermoso, J.F. (2006) High density planting systems,
mechanization and crop management in olive. In: Proceedings of the 2nd
International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del Vallo,
Italy, Special seminars and invited lectures, pp. 423430.
Tous, J., Romero, A., Planta, J. and Hermoso, J.F. (2004) Olive oil cultivars suitable for
very high-density planting conditions. In: 5th International Symposium on Olive
Growing, Izmir, Turkey, Extracts, p. 31.
Tovar, M.J., Romero, M.P., Girona, J. and Motilva, M.J. (2002) L-phenylalanine
ammonia-lyase activity and concentration of phenolics in developing olive (Olea
europaea L. cv. Arbequina) fruit grown under different irrigation regimes. Journal of
Science and Food Agriculture 82, 892898.
Trichopoulou, A., Lagiou, P., Kuper, H. and Trichopoulos, D. (2000) Cancer and
Mediterranean dietary traditions. Cancer Epidemiology, Biomarkers and Prevention
9(9), 869873.
Trichopoulou, A., Toupadaki, N., Tzonou, A., Katsouyanni, K., Manousos, O., Kada, E.
and Trichopoulos, D. (1993) The macronutrient composition of the Greek diet:
estimates derived from six case-control studies. European Journal of Clinical Nutrition
47, 549558.
Tripoli, E. Giammanco, M., Di Majo, D., Giammanco, S., La Guardia, M. and
Grescimanno, M. (2006) The phenolic compounds of olive oil and human health.
In: Proceedings of the 2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006,
Marsala-Mazara del Vallo, Italy, Special Seminars and invited lectures,
pp. 265271.
Tripoli, E., Giammanco, M., Tabacchi, G., Di Majo, D., Giammanco, S. and La Guardia,
M. (2005) The phenolic compounds of olive oil: structure, biological activity and
benecial effects on human health. Nutritional Research Review 18, 98112.
Troncoso, A., Lian, J., Cantos, M., Acebedo, M.M. and Rapoport, H.F. (1999) Feasibility
and anatomical development of an in vitro olive cleft-graft. Journal of Horticultural
Science and Biotechnology 74, 584587.
Troncoso, A., Lian, J., Prieto, J. and Cantos, M. (1990) Inuence of different olive
rootstocks on growth and production of Gordal Sevillana. Acta Horticulturae 286,
133136.
Troncoso, J., Lian, J., Cantos, M., Garcia, J.L. and Troncoso, A. (2004) In vitro selection
of salt-tolerant olive clones. In: 5th International Symposium on Olive Growing,
27 September2 October 2004, Izmir, Turkey, Abstract 222.
Tsambardoukas, V. (2006) Effects of N form on growth and mineral composition of the
olive cv. Kalamon. MSc thesis, Aristotelian University, School of Agriculture,
Thessaloniki, Greece [in Greek with English summary].
Tsatsarelis, C.A. (1987) Vibratory olive harvesting: the response of fruit stem system to
fruit-removing action. Journal of Agricultural Engineering Research 38(5), 7790.
UC Cooperative Extension, Sonoma County (2006) Olive Maturity Index. University of
California, Berkeley, California.
UCIPM (2001) Pest Management Guidelines: Olive. University of California, Department
of Agriculture and Natural Resources, Berkeley, California, Publication 3552, p. 6.
UCIPM (2004) Pest Management Guidelines 2004: Olive. Relative Toxicities of Insecticides
and Miticides used in Olives to Natural Enemies and Honey Bees. University of
California, Berkeley, Calfornia, Publication 3452.
396
References
lger, S., Baktir, I. and Kaynak, L (1999) Determination of the effects of endogenous
plant hormones on alternate bearing and ower bud formation in olives. Turkish
Journal of Agriculture and Forestry 23(7), 619623.
lger, S., Sonmez, S., Karkacier, M., Ertoy, N., Akdesir, O. and Aksu, M. (2004)
Determination of endogenous hormones, sugars and mineral nutrition levels
during the induction, initiation and differentiation stage and their effects on ower
formation in olive. Plant Growth Regulation 42, 8995.
Van Camp, W., Willenes, H., Bowler, C., Van Montagu, M., Inze, M., Reupold-Popp, P.,
Sandermann, H. and Langebartels, C. (1993) Elevated levels of superoxide
dismutase protect transgenic plants against ozone damage. Biotechnology 12,
165168.
Van Rensburg, L., Krger, G.H.J. and Krger, H. (1993) Proline accumulation as
drought tolerance selection criterion: its relationship to membrane integrity and
chloroplast ultrastructure in Nicotiana tobacum L. Journal of Plant Physiology 141,
188194.
Van Steenwyk, R.A., Ferguson, L. and Zalom, F.G. (2002) UC IPM Pest Management
Guidelines. Olive (Insects and Mites). UCANR Publication 3452, University of
Calfornia, Berkeley, Calfornia.
Vermeiren, I. and Jobling, J.A. (1980) Localized Irrigation. FAO, Rome, Paper 36, 202).
Vigh, L., Escriba, P.V., Sonnleitner, A., Sonnleitner, M., Piotto, S., Maresca, B., Horvath, I.
and Harwood, J.L. (2005) The signicance of lipid composition for membrane activity:
new concepts and ways of assessing function. Progress in Lipid Research 44, 303344.
Vigo, C. (1999) Effect of salinity (NaCl, Na2SO4, KCl) on growth and chemical
composition of olive plants (Olea europaea L.) cultivar Chondrolia Chalkidikis
grown in a greenhouse. MSc thesis, Aristotelian University, School of Agriculture,
Thessaloniki, Greece.
Vigo, C., Therios, I. and Bosabalidis, A. (2005) Plant growth, nutrient concentration
and leaf anatomy in olive plants irrigated with diluted seawater. Journal of Plant
Nutrition 28, 101102.
Vigo, C., Therios, I., Patakas, A., Karatassou, A and Nastou, A. (2002) Changes in
photosynthetic parameters and nutrient distribution of olive plants (Olea europaea
L.) cultivar Chondrolia Chalkidikis under NaCl, Na2SO4 and KCl salinities.
Agrochimica 46, 3346.
Visco, T., Molfese, M., Cipolletti, M., Corradetti, R. and Tombesi, A. (2004) The inuence
of vibration applied to the trunk and to the branches of different-sized olive trees on
the efciency of mechanical harvesting. In: 5th International Symposium on Olive
Growing, 29 September2 October, Izmir, Turkey.
Visioli, F. and Galli, C. (1994) Oleuropein protects low density lipoprotein from
oxidation. Life Sciences 55, 19651971.
Visioli, F. and Galli, C. (1997) Evaluating oxidation processes in relation to
cardiovascular disease: a current review of oxidant/antioxidant methodology.
Nutrition, Metabolism and Cardiovascular Disease 7, 459466.
Visioli, F. and Galli, C. (1998a) Olive oils and their potential effects on human health.
Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 46, 42924296.
Visioli, F. and Galli, C. (1998b) The effect of minor constituents of olive oil on
cardiovascular disease: new ndings. Nutritional Reviews 56, 142147.
Visioli, F., Bellomo, G. and Galli, C. (1998) Free radical-scavenging properties of olive oil
polyphenols. Biochemical and Biophysical Research Communications 247, 6064.
References
397
Visioli, F., Bellomo, G., Montedoro, G. and Galli, C. (1995a) Low density lipoprotein
oxidation is inhibited in vitro by olive oil constituents. Atherosclerosis 117, 2532.
Visioli, F., Caruso, D. Plasmati, E. Patelli, R., Mulinacci, N., Romani, A., Galli, G. and
Galli, C. (2001) Hydroxytyrosol, as a component of the olive oil mill waste water, is
dose-dependently absorbed and increases the antioxidant capacity of rat plasma.
Free Radical Research 34(3), 301305.
Visioli, F., Galli, C. and Bogani, P. (2006) Is olive oil good for you? In: Proceedings of the
2nd International Seminar Olivebioteq, 510 November 2006, Marsala-Mazara del
Vallo, Italy, Special seminars and invited lectures, pp. 255263.
Visioli, F., Romani, A., Mulinacci, N., Zarini, S., Conte, D., Vincieri, F.F. and Galli, C.
(1999) Antioxidants and other biological activities of olive mill waste waters.
Journal of Agriculture and Food Chemistry 47, 33973401.
Visioli, F., Vinceri, F.F. and Galli, C. (1995b) Waste waters from olive oil production are
rich in natural antioxidants. Experiential 51, 3234.
Vitagliano, C., Minocci, A., Sebastiani, L., Panicucci, A. and Lorenzini, G. (1999)
Physiological response of two olive genotypes to gaseous pollutants. Acta
Horticulturae 474, 431433.
Vlahov, G. (1992) Flavonoids in three olive (Olea europaea) fruit varieties during
maturation. Journal of Science and Food Agriculture 58, 157159.
Vlahov, G., Del Re, P. and Simone, N. (2003) Determination of geographical origin of
olive oils using C-13 nuclear magnetic resonance spectroscopy. I. Classication of
olive oils of the Puglia region with denomination of protected origin. Journal of
Agriculture and Food Chemistry 51(19), 56125615.
Vossen, P. (2006) The potential for super-high-density olive oil orchards in California
(from https://www.ucdavis.edu).
Voyiatzis, D.G. (1995) Dormancy and germination of olive embryos as affected by
temperature. Physiologia Plantarum 95(3), 444448.
Voyiatzis, D.G. and Porlingis, I.C. (1987) Temperature requirements for the germination
of olive seeds (Olea europaea L.). Journal of Horticultural Science 62, 405.
Wahrburg, U., Kratz, M. and Cullen, P. (2002) Mediterranean diet, olive oil and health.
European Journal of Lipid Science and Technology 104, 698705.
Walker, M. (1996a) Antimicrobial attributes of olive leaf extract. Townsend Letter for
Doctors and Patients 156, 8085.
Walker, M. (1996b) Olive leaf extract. The new oral treatment to counteract most types
of pathological organisms. Explore 7(4), 3137.
Watad, A.E.A., Reuveni, M., Bressan, R.A. and Hasegawa, P.M. (1991) Enhanced net K+
uptake capacity of NaCl-adapted cells. Plant Physiology 95, 12651269.
Weinbaum, S.A. (1984) Foliar application of urea to olive: Translocation of urea.
Nitrogen as inuenced by sink demand and nitrogen deciency. Journal of the
American Society of Horticultural Science 109(3), 356360.
Weis, K.G., Goren, R., Martin, G.C. and Webster, B.D. (1988) Leaf and inorescence
abscission in olive. Regulation by ethylene and ethephon. Botanical Gazette 149(4),
391397.
Weis, K.G., Webster, D.D., Goren, R. and Martin, G.C. (1991) Inorescence abscission in
olive. Anatomy and histochemistry in response to ethylene and ethephon.
Botanical Gazette 152(1), 5158.
Weiser, C.J. (1970) Cold resistance and acclimation in woody plants (a review).
HortScience 5, 403408.
398
References
INDEX
fruit 20
inorescences 19, 20
leaves 17, 18
main branches 17
root system 1517
trunk 17
Anchorage 15, 16
Anthocyanins 25, 26, 29, 238, 240, 241
Antioxidant activity 30, 31, 317
Antioxidants 145, 238, 295, 298, 299, 303,
310, 312, 313
Apical dominance 22, 214, 222, 223
Appropriate soil 52
Arbequina 47, 122, 126, 150, 155, 205,
219, 249, 265, 266
Arbequina IRTA-118 122
Arbosana 122, 147, 249
Armillaria mellea 114, 259, 335, 349, 350
Aromatic compounds 238, 239
Arpa 54
Ascolana tenera 269271
Ascolano 17, 44, 51, 269271, 349
Ascorbic acid 145
Aspidiotus nerii 344
Assessment of frost tolerance 58
chlorophyll uorescence 59
Ec measurement 5861
electrolyte leakage 59
stomata size and density 59
visual observations 58, 59, 62
Authenticity 286, 288
Authenticity standards 283
399
400
Index
Index
Cultivars taxonomy 256
Culture areas 78
Culture initiation 144
Curante virgin olive oil 280
Cuticle 18
Cutting types 132
Cuttings 5, 125133
Cycle length 77
Cycloartenol 28
Cytokinins 16, 130, 174, 214, 215
ethylene 215
plant stress 214
role 214
Cytoplasmic male sterility 94
Dark respiration (RD) 72
Darkness 146
Decit irrigation 163
Denitrication 185
Dense planting varieties 122
Density of planting 121
Desertication 78, 295
De-stoning 127, 271
Differential thermal analysis (DTA) 59, 61, 62
Dimethyloleuropein 28, 29
Discontinuous processing system 279
Disease control 319, 322
Disease growth 78
Disinfection 144
Distal end 129
Diuron 329, 330
DNA polymorphism 288
Dormancy 22, 57, 126, 128
Double sigmoid 22, 103
Double-bladed knife 143
Drip irrigation 161, 322
Driselase 149
Drupe 20, 22, 25, 229, 230
Dual purpose cultivars 23
Dwarng rootstocks 17, 43, 44, 114
Ecodormancy 22
Efciency of transpiration 167
Egg cell 100
Electrical conductance 68, 211
Electrical resistance blocks 68
Electrolyte release 61
Electronic leaf 133
Embryo dormancy 127
Embryo sac 22, 100
Endocarp (stone) 20, 22, 25, 26, 28, 229,
230, 235
401
Endodormancy 22
Endogenous hormones 106, 222, 224
Environmental problems 295
Epan 154
Epicarp 25, 27, 28, 230
Ethephon and ripening 230, 252
Ethrel 252
Etiolation 131, 354
European Union table olive consumption 41
European Union table olive production 40
Evapotranspiration 154
estimation methods 154, 162
Exocarp 20, 103
Explant rooting 146
Extra virgin olive oil 30, 38, 280, 281, 313
Farming systems 49
Fentons reaction 298, 299
Fermentation 164, 271273, 275, 276
aerobic 276
anaerobic 276
Fertilization 22, 52, 180, 186, 319, 321,
324, 331, 332, 345
Fertilization optimal rate 208
Field capacity 66
Flashpoint 284
Floranid 190
Florets 100
Flower bud induction 20, 22, 82
Flower distribution 97
Flower induction 81
Flower fertilization 93, 102
Flower initiation 81
Flower phenology 93
Flowering bud induction 16, 53, 54, 82
date of harvesting 90
defoliation 91
differentiation of owers 82
fruit thinning 90
growth regulators 87, 88
juvenility 85
LAS index 84
light quality 84
light shading 84
morphological changes 82
sugars natural elements 89
temperature chilling 86
variation of temperature 87
Flowering date prediction 79, 94
Flowering period 97
Fluorescence 73
402
Index
Gaidurolia 267
Galatsaniki 260
Gas spectroscopy 287
Gathering tools 247
Gene regulated by salt stress 219, 354
Genic male sterility 94
Genotypic difference 185
Gibberellic acid 16, 22, 87, 88, 130, 146
Girdling 73, 106, 221
Glaciers 9
Global table olive consumption 40
Global table olive production 36
Global warming 76
Globe system 120
Glutamine synthetase 186
Index
IAA production 130, 222224
IBA concentration 137
IBA solution 132, 133, 146
Imperfect ower 84, 183
In vitro culture 143150
micropropagation aims 143, 144
Inactivation of cytochrome P450 305
Incompatibility 43, 138
Indirect organogenesis 144
Inltration 153
Infrared thermography 161
Inorganic N sources 146
Insects 335346
Integrated management 323, 324
Integrated olive culture 319, 323, 324
Integrated weed management 331, 333
Internal CO2 (Cj) 72
Inter-simple Sequence repeats ((ISSR) 289
Iron 199
phosphorous solubility 199
Iron imbalance 199
Irrigation 15, 151166, 183, 186, 211, 241,
319, 323, 324, 345, 327, 328, 330,
350
Irrigation methods 28, 156
Irrigation need 156
root system 156
Irrigation programming methods 160
Irrigation quality 164
Ladolia 256
Lag phase 190
403
404
Index
kinetics 190194
light intensity 194
nitrogen deciency 193
pH 192
temperature 192
Nitrate accumulation 187
Nitrate assimilation 186
Nitrate concentration and absorption rate 190
Nitrate leaching 187189
Nitrate reductase (NR) 173, 174, 186, 190
Nitrate reduction 196
Nitrate transport systems 194
Nitrication 184
inhibition 188
Nitrogen 16, 20, 22, 52, 102, 179296, 215
excess and olive oil 186
translocation in soils 184
Nitrogen assimilation 179, 95, 195, 196
Nitrogen fertilization time 183
Nitrogen fertilizers 183, 184
Nitrogen form and growth 194
Nitrogen mobilization 185
Nitrogen and photosynthesis 185
Nitrogen and polyphenols 186
Nitrogen quantity 183
Nitrogen soil forms 184
Nitrous oxide 74
Non conventional methods 288, 289
Non-saponiable components of virgin
olive oil 236
N-serve 188
Nuclear Magnetic Resonance (NMR) 287
Number of olives 33, 34
Nutrient
concentration in olive fruits 204
concentration with the various plant
components 181
waste water 166
water use efciency 169
Nutrient deciency 181, 182, 185
Nutrient excess 182, 185
Nutrient sufciency 181, 182
Ocean acidication 76
o-diphenol 240
Off year 87
Oil bottling 281
Oil categories 280, 281
Oil stability 165
Oil storage 281
Olea 9, 12, 14, 43
Olea chrysophylla 10, 17, 43, 114, 127
Index
Olea europaea 5, 9, 14, 29, 30, 43, 57, 138,
255, 312
Olea excelsa 10
Olea noti 1
Olea oblonga 17, 4346, 114, 349
Olea oleaster 10, 14
Olea sativa 10, 14, 113, 139, 141
Olea sylvestris 127
Olea verrucosa 43, 114, 127
Oleic acid 122, 212, 236, 241, 285, 307,
309311, 356
antiongogenic action 307, 310
Oleuropein 2831, 89, 90, 235237, 241,
242, 272, 298, 299, 303305, 312,
315, 317
antimicrobial activity 303, 304
antimycoplasmal activity 315
antioxidant 303
atherogenetic disease 304
Oleuropein biosynthesis 29
Oleuropein degradation 29
Olive leaf extract 303306
anti-HIV activity 306
Olive Medium (OM) 145, 146
Olive mill by-products utilization 296
Olive mill products 289, 295
Olive mill waste water 296301
characteristics 300
Olive oil
Alzheimers disease 310
breast cancer 307
cardiovascular diseases 309
chlorophyll a and b 237, 233
colonic cancer 308
diabetes 310
endometrial cancer 308
human cancer 307
minor constituents 242
obesity 309
ovarian cancer 308
stone removal 242
Olive oil certication 282
Olive oil colour 285
Olive oil exports 38
Olive oil extraction systems 279, 295
Olive oil avor 242, 282, 285, 311
Olive oil pollution 285
Olive oil standards 282
Olive oil synthesis 229, 236
Olive oil varieties 255
Olive oil world production 34
Olive oils characteristics 280
Olive pomace 296, 297, 301
405
406
Phenols 28, 235, 239, 241, 242, 279, 297,
312, 313, 315
Phloeotribus scarabeoides 344, 345
Phoenician civilization 4
Phosphate fertilization 198
Phosphorous 166, 185, 197, 198
Phosphorous deciency 185
Phosphorous inorganic soil 198
Phosphorous ionic form 198
Phosphorous organic soil 198
Phosphorous roles 197
Photo-oxidation 298
Photosynthetic active radiation (PAR) 71
Phytouene 238
Phytoprotective materials 320
Pistil receptivity 94
Piston ow 188
Plant material choice 130
Plantation system 113, 114, 116
intensive 116
organic 117
semi-intensive 116
traditional 116
Planting 44, 113124, 319, 325, 327, 328
Planting date 137
Planting distances 114, 116, 137
Planting season 131, 133
Planting systems 44, 113, 324
Plastic nets 248, 322
Pleistocene period 9
Pn 156, 157, 204, 212, 213
Pneumatic beating poles 246248
linear poles 246
T-shaped poles 246, 247
Polarity 129
graft union 140
Pollen 1, 13, 53, 94100
antioxidative enzymes 94
Pollen dissemination 98
Pollen germination 97, 100
Pollen incompatibility 102
Pollen viability 96
Pollination 22, 51, 54, 83, 93102, 111,
230
Pollinators 96, 353
Polyconic system 118
Polygamous 84
Polyphenol content 164, 356
Polyphenol levels 233
Pomace olive oil 30, 281, 284, 286, 295
solvent extraction 297
Pore space 63
Index
Poseidon 2
Potassium 52, 166, 196, 197, 321
drought tolerance 208
Potassium-exchangeable 197
Potassium needs 197
Potassium-readily available 197
Potassium roles 196
Potassium-soil forms 197
Prays oleae 225, 270, 320, 322, 335, 339,
340, 355
Preformed roots 128
Pressure potential (p) 65
Processed olive types 273
Processing equipments 273
Proliferation media 147
Proline accumulation 175, 219
Proline biosynthesis, enzymes 176
Proline synthesis 175, 176
Propagation 125150
Protected Designation of Origin (PDO) 282,
289
Protected Geographical Indication (PGI) 283,
289
Protection of human erythrocytes from
oxidative damage 313, 314
Protein denaturation 29
Protoplasts 149
Proximal end 129, 140
Pruning cost 222, 224, 225
Pruning effects
ower bud induction 223
hormones 224
photosynthesis 223
shading 223
shoot length 224
Pruning frequency 227
Pruning intensity 222, 227
Pruning late 227
Pruning machinery 226
Pruning mature trees 225
Pruning objectives 221, 225
Pruning rules 222
Pruning season 227
Pruning shapes 226
Pruning techniques 221
Pruning tools 225
Pruning young trees 225
Pseudomonas syringae pv. savastanoi 122, 224,
259, 264, 265, 267, 269, 322, 335,
351, 352
Pungency 241
Purity standards 283
Index
Q10 quotient 192
407
408
Index
Table olives
characteristics 243, 244
most important varieties 271
ripening criteria 244
Table olives quality 278
Tanche 266
Taxonomy of olive 11, 13
T-budding 142
Temperature
effect on callus 139
fruit set 102
maximum 51
minimum 51
Temperature requirements 51
Temperature stress 52, 54
Tensiometry 68
Thasitiki 261
Thermal conductivity 68
Thermal requirements 53
Thermocouple psychometry 69
Thidiazuron 146, 148, 215
Thinning methods 110, 111, 112
chemical thinning 111
hand thinning 110
mechanical thinning 111
Tissue oxidation 144
Tocopherol concentrations of certain oils 239
Tocopherols 186, 235, 238, 239
-tocopherol 30, 165, 242, 317
Tolerance
abiotic stress 353, 354
heat stress 52
salt 204, 353
sea water 205
water stress 52, 168, 353
Tongue grafting 138
Toxic ions in waste water 166
Training 113, 117, 221
Transpiration 133, 151, 168
Transpiration quotient 151, 168
Transpiration rate 72
Tree crown 137, 349, 350
Triglycerids 236
Triterpenoids 28
Trunk diameter variation 160
Index
Trunk girth 156
Trunk shakers efciency 253
Trunk shrinkage 160
Tsunati 259
Tyrosol 2830, 239, 241, 312, 313, 315
409
Xylopode 15